Important Note: Personal Recollections of Joan
of Arc is a work of fiction by Samuel Langhorne Clemens (i.e.
Mark Twain). The pseudonymous author's name - Sieur Louis de Conte [initials SLC]
derives from Samuel Langhorne Clemens [initials SLC]. Joan of Arc did have a
servant named Louis and the the French word for "tale" is conte, hence
the name adopted for this story by Clemens.
Personal Recollections of Joan of Arc
By the Sieur Louis de Conte (her Page and Secretary) freely translated
out of the ancient French into modern English from the original unpublished manuscript in
the National Archives of France by Jean François Alden
by
Mark Twain
1870
To my wife
1895
Olivia Langdon Clemens
this book is tendered on our anniversary in grateful recognition of her
twenty-five years of valued service as my literary adviser and editor
the Author
Consider this unique an imposing distinction. Since the
writing of human history, Joan of Arc is the only person, of either sex, who has ever held
supreme command of the military forces of a nation at the age of seventeen.
Louis Kossuth
Translator's Preface
To arrive at a just estimate of a renowned mans
character one must judge it by the standards of his time, not ours. Judged by the
standards of one century, the noblest characters of an earlier one lose much of their
lustre; judged by the standards of today, there is probably no illustrious man of four or
five centuries ago whose character could meet the test at all points. But the character of
Joan of Arc is unique. It can be measured by the standards of all times without misgiving
or apprehension as to the result. Judged by any of them, judged by all of them, it is
still flawless, it is still ideally perfect; it still occupies the loftiest place possible
to human attainment, a loftier one than has been reached by any other mere mortal.
When we reflect that her century was the brutallest, the
wickedest, the rottenest in history since the darkest ages, we are lost in wonder at the
miracle of such a product from such a soil. The contrast between her and her century is
the contrast between day and night. She was truthful when lying was the common speech of
men; she was honest when honesty was become a lost virtue; she was a keeper of promises
when the keeping of a promise was expected of no one; she gave her great mind to great
thoughts and great purposes when other great minds wasted themselves upon pretty fancies
or upon poor ambitions; she was modest and fine and delicate when to be loud and course
might be said to be universal; she was full of pity when a merciless cruelty was the rule;
she was steadfast when stability was unknown, and honourable in an age which had forgotten
what honour was; she was a rock of convictions in a time when men believed in nothing and
scoffed at all things; she was unfailingly true in an age that was false to the core; she
maintained her personal dignity unimpaired in an age of fawnings and servilities; she was
of a dauntless courage when hope and courage had perished in the hearts of her nation; she
was spotlessly pure in mind and body when society in the highest places was foul in both -
she was all these things in an age when crime was the common business of lords and
princes, and when the highest personages in Christendom were able to astonish even that
infamous era and make it stand aghast at the spectacle of their atrocious lives black with
unimaginable treacheries, butcheries, and bestialities.
She was perhaps the only entirely unselfish person whose
name has a place in profane history. No vestige or suggestion of self-seeking can be found
in any word or deed of hers. When she had rescued her King from his vagabondage, and set
his crown upon his head, she was offered rewards and honours, but she refused them all,
and would take nothing. All she would take for herself - if the King would grant it - was
leave to go back to her village home, and tend her sheep again, and feel her mothers
arms about her, and be her housemaid and helper. The selfishness of this unspoiled general
of victorious armies, companion of princes, and idol of an applauding and grateful nation,
reached but that far and no farther.
The work wrought by Joan of Arc may fairly be regarded as
ranking with any in history, when one considers the conditions under which it was
undertaken, the obstacles in the way, and the means at her disposal. Caesar carried
conquest far, but he did it with the trained and confident veterans of Rome, and was a
trained soldier himself; and Napoleon swept away the disciplined armies of Europe, but he
also was a trained soldier, and he began his work with patriot battalions inflamed and
inspired by the miracle-working new breath of Liberty breathed upon them by the Revolution
- eager young apprentices to the splendid trade of war, not old and broken men-at-arms,
despairing survivors of an age-long accumulation of monotonous defeats; but Joan of Arc, a
mere child in years, ignorant, unlettered, a poor village girl unknown and without
influence, found a great nation lying in chains, helpless and hopeless under an alien
domination, its treasury bankrupt, its soldiers disheartened and dispersed, all spirit
torpid, all courage dead in the hearts of the people through long years of foreign and
domestic outrage and oppression, their King cowed, resigned to its fate, and preparing to
fly the country; and she laid her hand upon this nation, this corpse, and it rose and
followed her. She led it from victory to victory, she turned back the tide of the Hundred
Years War, she fatally crippled the English power, and died with the earned title of Deliver of France, which she bears to this day.
And for all reward, the French King whom she had crowned
stood supine and indifferent while French priests took the noble child, the most innocent,
the most lovely, the most adorable the ages have produced, and burned her alive at the
stake.
A peculiarity of Joan of Arc's history
The details of the life of Joan of Arc from a biography which is unique among the
worlds biographies in one respect: It is the only story of a human life which
comes to us under oath, the only one which comes to us from the witness-stand. The
official records of the Great Trial of 1431, and the of the Process of Rehabilitation of a
quarter of a century later, are still preserved in the National Archives of France, and
they furnish with remarkable fullness the facts of her life. The history of no other life
of that remote time is known with either the certainty or the comprehensiveness that
attaches to hers.
The Sieur Louis de Conte is faithful to her official history in his Personal
Recollections, and thus far his trustworthiness is unimpeachable; but his mass of added
particulars must depend for credit upon his own word alone.
The Translator
Contents
(The titles of the chapters are the transcribers and just
meant as a hint as to the content of the chapters.)
Book 1 - The Sieur Louis de Conte to his great-great-grand nephews and nieces
Chapter 1 - Opening words
Chapter 2 - The state of France
Chapter 3 - The Tree and the Fairies
Chapter 4 - Stormy night
Chapter 5 - The Patriot
Chapter 6 - Domremy attacked
Chapter 7 - The change in Joan
Chapter 8 - The first attempt
Chapter 9 - The Paladin's fianc=E9e
Book 2 - In court and camp
Chapter 1 - Leaving Domremy
Chapter 2 - The Governor
Chapter 3 - Departure by night
Chatper 4 - The incredible journey
Chapter 5 - Waiting to see the Dauphin
Chapter 6 - The royal audience
Chapter 7 - Waiting in Chinon
Chapter 8 - Inquest
Chapter 9 - General-in-Chief
Chapter 10 - Tours
Chapter 11 - The General's staff
Chapter 12 - In camp
Chapter 13 - To Orleans
Chapter 14 - Ultimatum
Chapter 15 - Waiting in Orleans
Chapter 16 - The Dwarf
Chapter 17 - Breakfast
Chapter 18 - Maid of Orleans
Chapter 19 - The ghosts
Chapter 20 - Taking the bastilles
Chapter 21 - Conversation with Chatherine
Chatper 22 - Injured
Chapter 23 - Du Lis
Chapter 24 - Honours
Chapter 25 - Wasted opportunity
Chapter 26 - War plans laid
Chapter 27 - Jargeau
Chapter 28 - Prophecy
Chapter 29 - On the march again
Chapter 30 - Patay
Chapter 31 - Significance of Patay
Chapter 32 - Jubilation
Chapter 33 - The accomplishments of Joan
Chapter 34 - Troyes
Chapter 35 - Rhiems and coronation
Chapter 36 - Celebration
Chapter 37 - Visitors from Domremy
Chapter 38 - War council
Chapter 39 - Triumphal march towards Paris
Chapter 40 - Retreat
Chapter 41 - Captured
Book 3 - Trail and martyrdom
Chapter 1 - Prisoner
Chapter 2 - To Rouen
Chapter 3 - Proces verbal
Chapter 4 - The trials begin
Chapter 5 - Joan takes the stand
Chapter 6 - Interrogation
Chapter 7 - Thwarting all comers
Chapter 8 - Corrupt court
Chapter 9 - More harassment
Chapter 10 - The trial continues
Chapter 11 - A new trial
Chapter 12 - The unwitting master stroke
Chapter 13 - The third trial
Chapter 14 - Weakened by illness
Chapter 15 - Eloquence
Chapter 16 - Vile Cauchon
Chapter 17 - Twelve Lies
Chapter 18 - Guilty
Chapter 19 - Pleasing the English
Chapter 20 - Submission
Chapter 21 - Saved?
Chapter 22 - Fatal answer
Chapter 23 - Condemned
Chapter 24 - The end
Conclusion
Book 1
Chapter 1
This is the year 1492. I am eighty-two years of age. The things I am going to tell you
about are things which I saw myself as a child and as a youth.
In all the tales and songs and histories of Joan of Arc which you and the rest of the
world read and sing and study in the books wrought in the late invented art of printing,
mention is made of me, the Sieur Louis de Conte. I was her page and secretary. I was with
her from the beginning until the end.
I was reared in the same village with her. I played with her every day, when we were
little children together, just as you play with your mates. Now that we perceive how great
she was, now that her name fills the whole world, it seems strange that what I am saying
is true; for it is as if a perishable paltry candle should speak of the eternal sun riding
in the heavens and say, He was gossip and housemate to me when we were candles
together.
And yet it is true. I was her playmate, and I fought at her side in the wars; to this
day I carry in my mind, fine and clear, the picture of her dear little figure, with breast
bent to the flying horses neck, charging at the head of the armies of France, her
hair streaming back, her silver mail ploughing steadily deeper and deeper into the thick
of the battle, sometimes nearly drowned from sight by tossing heads of horses, uplifted
sword-arms, wind-blown plumes, and intercepting shields! I was with her to the end; and
when that black day came whose accusing shadow will lie always upon the memory of the
mitred French slaves of England who were her assassins, and upon France who stood idle and
essayed no rescue, my hand was the last she touched in life.
As the years and the decades drifted by, and the spectacle of the marvellous
childs meteor-flight across the war-firmament of France and its extinction in the
smoke-clouds of the stake receded deeper and deeper into the past and grew ever more
strange and wonderful and divine and pathetic, I came to comprehend and recognise her at
last for what she was - the most noble life that was ever born into this world save only
One.
Chapter 2
I, the Sieur Louis de Conte, was born in Neufchâteau, the 6th of January, 1410; that
is to say, exactly two years before Joan of Arc was born in Domremy. My family had fled to
those distant regions from the neighbourhood of Paris in the first years of the century.
In politics they were Armagnacs - patriots: they were for our own French King, crazy and
impotent as he was. The Burgundian party, who were for the English, had stripped them, and
done it well. They took everything but my fathers small nobility, and when he
reached Neufchâteau he reached it in poverty and with a broken spirit. But the political
atmosphere there was the sort he liked, and that was something. He came to a region of
comparative quiet; he left behind him a region peopled with furies, madmen, devils, where
slaughter was a daily pastime, and no mans life safe for a moment. In Paris, mobs
roared through the streets nightly, sacking, burning, killing, unmolested, uninterrupted.
The sun rose upon wrecked and smoking buildings, and upon mutilated corpses lying here,
there, and yonder about the streets, just as they fell, and stripped naked by thieves, the
unholy gleaners after the mob. None had the courage to gather these dead for burial, they
were left there to rot and create plagues.
And plagues they did create. Epidemics swept away the people like flies, and the
burials were conducted secretly and by night; for public funerals were not allowed, lest
the revelation of the magnitude of the plagues work unman the people and plunge them
into despair. Then came, finally, the bitterest winter which had visited France in five
hundred years. Famine, pestilence, slaughter, ice, snow - Paris had all these at once. The
dead lay in heaps about the streets, and wolves entered the city in daylight and
devoured them.
Ah, France had fallen low - so low! For more than three-quarters of a century the
English fangs had been bedded in her flesh, and so cowed had her armies become by
ceaseless rout and defeat that it was said and accepted that the mere sight of an English
army was sufficient to put a French one to flight.
When I was five years old the prodigious disaster of Agincourt fell upon France; and
although the English King went home to enjoy his glory, he left the country prostrate and
a prey to roving bands of Free Companions in the service of the Burgundian party, and one
of these bands came riding through Neufchâteau one night, and by the light of our burning
roof-thatch I saw all that were dear to me in this world (save an elder brother, your
ancestor, left behind with the Court) butchered while they begged for mercy, and heard the
butchers laugh at their prayers and mimic their pleadings. I was overlooked, and escaped
without hurt. When the savages were gone I crept out and cried the night away watching the
burning houses; and I was all alone, except for the company of the dead and the wounded,
for the rest had taken flight and hidden themselves.
I was sent to Domremy, to the priest, whose house-keeper became a loving mother to me.
The priest in the course of time taught me to read and write, and he and I were the only
persons in the village who possessed this learning.
At the time that the house of this good priest, Guillaume Fronte, became my home. I was
six years old. We lived close by the village church, and the small garden of Joans
parents was behind the church. As to that family, there were Jacques dArc the
father, his wife Isabel Romée; three sons - Jacques, ten years old, Pierre, eight, and
Jean, seven; Joan, four, and her baby sister Catherine, about a year old. I had these
children for playmates from the beginning. I had some other playmates besides -
particularly four boys: Pierre Morel, Etienne Roze, Noël Rainguesson, and Edmond Aubrey,
whose father was maire at that time; also two girls, about Joans age, who by-and-by
became her favourites; one was named Haumette, the other was called Little Mengette. These
girls were common peasant children, like Joan herself. When they grew up, both married
common labourers. Their estate was lowly enough, you see; yet a time came, many years
after, when no passing stranger, howsoever great he might be, failed to go and pay his
reverence to those two humble old women who had been honoured in their youth by the
friendship of Joan of Arc.
These were all good children, just of the ordinary peasant type; not bright, of course
- you would not expect that - but good-hearted and companionable, obedient to their
parents and the priest; and as they grew up they became properly stocked with narrowness
and prejudices got at second-hand from their elders, and adopted without reserve; and
without examination also - which goes without saying. Their religion was inherited, their
politics the same. John Huss and his sort might find fault with the Church, in Domremy it
disturbed nobodys faith; and when the split came, when I was fourteen, and we had
three Popes at once, nobody in Domremy was worried about how to choose among them - the
Pope of Rome was the right one, a Pope outside Rome was no Pope at all. Every human
creature in the village was an Armagnac - a patriot - and if we children hotly hated
nothing else in the world, we did certainly hate the English and Burgundian name and
polity in that way.
Chapter 3
Our Domremy was like any other humble little hamlet of that remote time and region. It
was a maze of crooked narrow lanes and alleys shaded and sheltered by the overhanging
thatch roofs of the barn-like houses. The houses were dimly lighted by wooden-shuttered
windows - that is, holes in the walls which served for windows. The floors were of dirt,
and there was very little furniture. Sheep and cattle grazing was the main industry; all
the young folks tended flocks.
The situation was beautiful. From one edge of the village a flowery plain extended in a
wide sweep to the river - the Meuse; from the rear edge of the village a grassy slope rose
gradually, and at the top was the great oak forest - a forest that was deep and gloomy and
dense, and full of interest for us children, for many murders had been done in it by
outlaws in old times, and in still earlier times prodigious dragons that spouted fire and
poisonous vapours from their nostrils had their homes in there. In fact, one was still
living in there in our own time. It was as long as a tree, and had a body as big around as
a tierce, and scales like overlapping great tiles, and deep ruby eyes as large as a
cavaliers hat, and an anchor-fluke on its tail as big as I dont know what, but
very big, even unusually so for a dragon, as everybody said who knew about dragons. It was
thought that this dragon was of a brilliant blue colour, with gold mottlings, but no one
had ever seen it, therefore this was not known to be so, it was only an opinion. It was
not my opinion; I think there is no sense in forming an opinion when there is no evidence
to form it on. If you build a person without any bones in him, he may look fair enough to
the eye, but he will be limber and cannot stand up; and I consider that evidence is the bones of an opinion. But I will take up this matter more at large at another time,
and try to make the justness of my position appear. As to that dragon, I always held the
belief that its colour was gold and without blue, for that has always been the colour of
dragons. That this dragon lay but a little way within the wood at one time is shown by the
fact that Pierre Morel was in there one day and smelt it, and recognised it by the smell.
It gives one a horrid idea of how near to us the deadliest danger can be and we not
suspect it.
In the earliest times a hundred knights from many remote places in the earth would have
gone in there one after another, to kill the dragon and get the reward, but in our time
that method had gone out, and the priest had become the one that abolished dragons. Père
Guillaume Fronte did it in this case. He had a procession, with candles and incense and
banners, and marched around the edge of the wood and exorcised the dragon, and it was
never heard of again, although it was the opinion of many that the smell never wholly
passed away. Not that any had ever smelt the smell again, for none had; it was only an
opinion, like that other - and lacked bones, you see. I know that the creature was there
before the exorcism, but whether it was there afterwards or not is a thing which I cannot
be so positive about.
In a noble open space carpeted with grass on the high ground towards Vaucouleurs stood
a most majestic beech-tree with wide-reaching arms and a grand spread of shade, and by it
a limpid spring of cold water, and on summer days the children went there - oh, every
summer for more than five hundred years - went there and sang and danced around the tree
for hours together, refreshing themselves at the spring from time to time, and it was most
lovely and enjoyable. Also they made wreaths of flowers and hung them upon the tree and
about the spring to please the fairies that lived there; for they liked that, being idle,
innocent little creatures, as all fairies are, and fond of anything delicate and pretty
like wild flowers put together in that way. And in return for this attention the fairies
did any friendly thing they could for the children, such as keeping the spring always full
and clear and cold, and driving away serpents and insects that sting; and so there was
never any unkindness between the fairies and the children during more than five hundred
years - tradition said a thousand - but only the warmest affection and the most perfect
trust and confidence; and whenever a child died the fairies mourned just as that
childs playmates did, and the sign of it was there to see: for before the dawn on
the day of the funeral they hung a little immortelle over the place where that child was
used to sit under the tree. I know this to be true by my own eyes; it is not hearsay. And
the reason it was known that the fairies did it was this - that it was made all of black
flowers of a sort not known in France anywhere.
Now, from time immemorial all children reared in Domremy were called the Children of
the Tree; and they loved that name, for it carried with it a mystic privilege not granted
to any others of the children of this world. Which was this: whenever one of these came to
die, then beyond the vague and formless images drifting through his darkening mind rose
soft and rich and fair a vision of the Tree - if all was well with his soul. That was what
some said. Others said the vision came in two ways: once as a warning, one or two years in
advance of death, when the soul was the captive of sin, and then the Tree appeared in its
desolate winter aspect - then that soul was smitten with an awful fear. If repentance
came, and purity of life, the vision came again, this time summer-clad and beautiful; but
if it were otherwise with that soul the vision was withheld, and it passed from life
knowing its doom. Still others said that the vision came but once, and then only to the
sinless dying forlorn in distant lands and pitifully longing for some last dear reminder
of their home. And what reminder of it could go to their hearts like the picture of the
Tree that was the darling of their love and the comrade of their joys and comforter of
their small griefs all through the divine days of their vanished youth?
Now the several traditions were as I have said, some believing one and some another.
One of them I knew to be the truth, and that was the last one. I do not say anything
against the others; I think they were true, but I only knew that the last one was; and it
is my thought that if one keeps to the things he knows, and not trouble about the things
which he cannot be sure about, he will have the steadier mind for it - and there is profit
in that. I know that when the Children of the Tree die in a far land, then - if they be at
peace with God - they turn their longing eyes toward home, and there, far-shining, as
though a rift in a cloud that curtains heaven, they see the soft picture of the Fairy
tree, clothed in a dream of golden light; and they see the bloomy mead sloping away to the
river, and to their perishing nostrils is blown faint and sweet the fragrance of the
flowers of home. And then the vision fades and passes - but they know, they know! and by their transfigured faces you know also, you who stand looking on; yes, you
know the message that has come, and that it has come from heaven.
Joan and I believed alike about this matter. But Pierre Morel, and Jacques dArc,
and many others believed that the vision appeared twice - to a sinner. In fact, they and
many others said they knew it. Probably because their fathers had known it had
told them; for one gets most things at second hand in this world.
Now one thing that does make it quite likely that there were really two apparitions of
the Tree is this fact: From the most ancient times if one saw a villager of ours with his
face ash-white and rigid with a ghastly fright, it was common for every one to whisper to
his neighbour, Ah, he is in sin, and has got his warning. And the neighbour
would shudder at the thought and whisper back, Yes, poor soul, he has seen the
Tree.
Such evidences as these have their weight; they are not to be put aside with a wave of
the hand. A thing that is backed by the cumulative experience of centuries naturally gets
nearer and nearer to being proof all the time; and if this continue and continue, it will
some day become authority - and authority is bedded rock, and will abide.
In my long life I have seen several cases where the Tree appeared announcing a death
which was still far away; but in none of these was the person in a state of sin. No; the
apparition was in these cases only a special grace; in place of deferring the tidings of
that souls redemption till the day of death, the apparition brought them long
before, and with them peace - peace of God. I myself, old and broken, wait with serenity;
for I have seen the vision of the Tree. I have seen it, and am content.
Always, from the remotest times, when the children joined hands and danced around the
fairy Tree, they sang a song which was the Trees Song, the Song of LArbre
Fée de Bourlemont. They sang it to a quaint sweet air which has gone murmuring
through my dreaming spirit all my life when I was weary and troubled, resting me and
carrying me through night and distance home again. No stranger can know or feel what that
song has been, through the drifting centuries, to exiled Children of the Tree, homeless
and heavy of heart in countries foreign to their speech and ways. You will think it a
simple thing, that song, and poor perchance; but if you will remember what it was to us,
and what it brought before our eyes when it floated through our memories, then you will
respect it. And you will understand how the water wells up in our eyes and makes all
things dim, and our voices break and we cannot sing the last lines:
And when in exile wandring we
Shall fainting yearn for glimpse of thee,
O rise upon our sight!
And you will remember that Joan of Arc sang this song with us around the Tree when she
was a little child, and always loved it. And that hallows it - yes, you will grant that:
LARBRE FÉE DE BOURLEMONT
Song of the Children
Now, what has kept your leaves so green,
Arbre Fée de Bourlemont?
The childrens tears! They brought each grief,
And you did comfort them and cheer
Their bruised hearts, and steal a tear
That healed rose a leaf.
And what has built you up so strong,
Arbre Fée de Bourlemont?
The childrens love! Theyve loved you long:
Ten hundred years, in sooth,
Theyve nourished you with praise and song,
And warmed your heart and kept it young-
A thousand years of youth!
Bide alway green in our young hearts,
Arbre Fée de Bourlemont!
And we shall alway youthful be,
Not heeding Time his flight;
And when in exile wandring we
Shall fainting yearn for glimpse of thee,
O rise upon our sight.
The fairies were still there when we were children, but we never saw them; because, a
hundred years before that, the priest of Domremy had held a religious function under the
Tree and denounced them as being blood kin of the Fiend and barred out from redemption;
and then he warned them never to show themselves again, nor hang any more immortelles, on
pain of perpetual banishment from that parish.
All the children pleaded for the fairies, and said they were their good friends and
dear to them and never did them any harm, but the priest would not listen, and said it was
sin and shame to have such friends. The children mourned and could not be comforted; and
they made an agreement among themselves that they would always continue to hang
flower-wreaths on the Tree as a perpetual sign to the fairies that they were still loved
and remembered, though lost to sight.
But late one night a great misfortune befell. Edmond Aubreys mother passed by the
Tree, and the fairies were stealing a dance, not thinking anybody was by; and they were so
busy, and so intoxicated with the wild happiness of it, and with the bumpers of dew
sharpened up with honey which they had been drinking, that they noticed nothing; so Dame
Aubrey stood there astonished and admiring, and saw the little fantastic atoms holding
hands, as many as three hundred of them, tearing around in a great ring half as big as an
ordinary bedroom, and leaning away back and spreading their mouths with laughter and song,
which she could hear quite distinctly, and kicking their legs up as much as three inches
from the ground in perfect abandon and hilarity - oh, the very maddest and witchingest
dance the woman ever saw.
But in about a minute or two minutes the poor little ruined creatures discovered her.
They burst out in one heart-breaking squeak of grief and terror and fled every which way,
with their wee hazel-nut fists in their eyes and crying; and so disappeared.
The heartless woman - no, the foolish woman; she was not heartless, but only
thoughtless - went straight home and told the neighbours all about it, whilst we, the
small friends of the fairies, were asleep and not witting the calamity that was come upon
us, and all unconscious that we ought to be up and trying to stop these fatal tongues. In
the morning everybody knew, and the disaster was complete, for where everybody knows a
thing the priest knows it, of course. We all flocked to Père Fronte, crying and begging -
and he had to cry, too, seeing our sorrow, for he had a most kind and gentle nature; and
he did not want to banish the fairies, and said so; but said he had no choice, for it had
been decreed that if they ever revealed themselves to man again, they must go. This all
happened at the worst time possible, for Joan of Arc was ill of a fever and out of her
head, and what could we do who had not her gifts of reasoning and persuasion? We flew in a
swarm to her bed, and cried out, Joan, wake! Wake, there is no moment to lose! Come
and plead for the fairies - come and save them; only you can do it.
But her mind was wandering, she did not know what we said nor what we meant; so we went
away knowing all was lost. Yes, all was lost, for ever lost; the faithful friends of the
children for five hundred years must go, and never come back any more.
It was a bitter day for us, that day that Père Fronte held the function under the tree
and banished the fairies. We could not wear mourning that any could have noticed, it would
not have been allowed; so we had to be content with some poor small rag of black tied upon
our garments where it made no show; but in our hearts we wore mourning big and noble and
occupying all the room, for our hearts were ours; they could not get at them to
prevent that.
The great Tree - lArbre Fée de Bourlemont was its beautiful name - was
never afterward quite as much to us as it had been before, but it was always dear; is dear
to me yet when I go there, now, once a year in my old age, to sit under it and bring back
the lost playmates of my youth and group them about me and look upon their faces through
my tears and break my heart, oh, my God! No, the place was not quite the same afterward.
In one or two ways it could not be; for, the fairies protection had gone, the spring
lost much of its freshness and coldness, and more than two-thirds of its volume, and the
banished serpents and stinging insects returned, and multiplied, and became a torment and
have remained so to this day.
When that wise little child, Joan, got well, we realised how much her illness had cost
us; for we found that we had been right in believing she could save the fairies. She burst
into a great storm of anger, for so little a creature, and went straight to Père Fronte,
and stood up before him where he sat, and made reverence and said:
The fairies were to go if they showed themselves to people again, is it not
so?
Yes, that was it, dear.
If a man comes prying into a persons room at midnight when that person is
half naked, will you be so unjust as to say that that person is showing himself to that
man?
Well - no. The good priest looked a little troubled and uneasy when he said
it.
Is a sin a sin anyway, even if one did not intend to commit it?
Père Fronte threw up his hands and cried out -
Oh, my poor little child, I see all my fault, and he drew her to his side
and put his arm around her and tried to make his peace with her, but her temper was up so
high that she could not get it down right away, but buried her head against his breast and
broke out crying and said:
Then the fairies committed no sin, for there was no intention to commit one, they
not knowing that any one was by; and because they were little creatures and could not
speak for themselves and say the law was against the intention, not against the innocent
act, and because they had no friend to think that simple thing for them and say it, they
have been sent away from their home for ever, and it was wrong, wrong to do
it!
The good father hugged her yet closer to his side and said:
Oh, out of the mouths of babes and sucklings the heedless and unthinking are
condemned: would God I could bring the little creatures back, for your sake! And mine,
yes, and mine; for I have been unjust. There, there, dont cry - nobody could be
sorrier than your poor old friend - dont cry, dear.
But I cant stop right away, Ive got to. And it is no little
matter, this thing that you have done. Is being sorry penance enough for such an
act?
Père Fronte turned away his face, for it would have hurt her to see him laugh, and
said:
Oh, thou remorseless but most just accuser, no, it is not. I will put on
sackcloth and ashes; there - are you satisfied?
Joans sobs began to diminish, and she presently looked up at the old man through
her tears, and said, in her simple way:
Yes, that will do - if it will clear you.
Père Fronte would have been moved to laugh again, perhaps, if he had not remembered in
time that he had made a contract, and not a very agreeable one. It must be fulfilled. So
he got up and went to the fireplace, Joan watching him with deep interest, and took a
shovelful of cold ashes, and was going to empty them on his old grey head when a better
idea came to him, and he said:
Would you mind helping me, dear?
How father?
He got down on his knees and bent his head low, and said:
Take the ashes and put them on my head for me.
The matter ended there, of course. The victory was with the priest. One can imagine how
the idea of such a profanation would strike Joan or any other child in the village. She
ran and dropped upon her knees by his side and said:
Oh, it is dreadful. I didnt know that that was what one meant by sackcloth
and ashes - do please get up, father.
But I cant until I am forgiven. Do you forgive me?
I? Oh, you have done nothing to me, father; it is yourself that must forgive yourself for wronging those poor things. Please get up, father, wont you?
But I am worse off now than I was before. I thought I was earning your forgiveness, but if it is my own, I cant be lenient; it would not become me. Now
what can I do? Find me some way out of this with your wise little head.
The Père would not stir, for all Joans pleadings. She was about to cry again;
then she had an idea, and seized the shovel and deluged her own head with the ashes,
stammering out through her chokings and suffocations-
There - now it is done. Oh, please get up, father!
The old man, both touched and amused, gathered her to his breast and said -
Oh, you incomparable child! Its a humble martyrdom, and not of a sort
presentable in a picture, but the right and true spirit is in it; that I testify.
The he brushed the ashes out of her hair, and helped her scour her face and neck and
properly tidy herself up. He was in fine spirits now, and ready for further argument, so
he took his seat and drew Joan to his side again, and said:
Joan, you were used to make wreaths there at the Fairy Tree with the other
children; is it not so?
That was the way he always started out when he was going to corner me up and catch me
in something - just that gentle, indifferent way that fools a person so, and leads him
into the trap, he never noticing which way he is travelling until he is in and the door
shut on him. He enjoyed that. I knew he was going to drop corn along in front of Joan now.
Joan answered:
Yes, father.
Did you hang them on the Tree?
No, father.
Didnt hang them there?
No.
Why didnt you?
I - well, I didnt wish to.
Didnt wish to?
No, father.
What did you do with them?
I hung them in the church.
Why didnt you hang them on the Tree?
Because it was said that the fairies were of kin to the Fiend, and that it was
sinful to show them honour.
Did you believe it was wrong to honour them so?
Yes. I thought it must be wrong.
Then if it was wrong to honour them in that way, and if they were of kin to the
Fiend, they could be dangerous company for you and the other children, couldnt
they?
I suppose so - yes, I think so.
He studied a minute and I judged he was going to spring his trap, and he did. He said:
Then the matter stands like this. They were banned creatures, of fearful origin;
they could be dangerous company for the children. Now give me a rational reason, dear, if
you can think of any, why you call it wrong to drive them into banishment, and why you
would have saved them from it. In a word, what loss have you suffered by it?
How stupid of him to go and throw his case away like that! I could have boxed his ears
for vexation if he had been a boy. He was going along all right until he ruined everything
by winding up in that foolish and fatal way. What had she lost by it! Was he
never going to find out what kind of a child Joan of Arc was? Was he never going to learn
that things which merely concerned her own gain or loss she cared nothing about? Could he
never get the simple fact into his head that the sure way and the only way to rouse her up
and set her on fire was to show her where some other person was going to suffer
wrong or hurt or loss? Why, he had gone and set a trap for himself - that was all he had
accomplished.
The minute those words were out of his mouth her temper was up, the indignant tears
rose in her eyes, and she burst out on him with an energy and passion which astonished
him, but didn't astonish me, for I knew he had fired a mine when he touched off his
ill-chosen climax.
Oh, father, how can you talk like that? Who owns France?
God and the King.
Not Satan?
Satan, my child? This is the footstool of the Most High - Satan owns no handful
of its soil.
Then who gave those poor creatures their home? God. Who protected them in it all
those centuries? God. Who allowed them to dance and play there all those centuries and
found no fault with it? God. Who disapproved of Gods approval and put a threat upon
them? A man. Who caught them again in harmless sports that God allowed and a man forbade,
and carried out that threat, and drove the poor things away from the home the good God
gave them in His mercy and His pity, and sent down His rain and dew and sunshine upon it
five hundred years in token of His peace? It was their home - theirs, by the
grace of God and His good heart, and no man had a right to rob them of it. And they were
the gentlest, truest friends that children ever had, and did them sweet and loving service
all these five long centuries, and never any hurt or harm, and the children loved them,
and now they mourn for them, and there is no healing for their grief. And what had the
children done that they should suffer this cruel stroke? The poor fairies could have been dangerous company for the children? Yes, but never had been; and could is no argument. Kinsman of the Fiend? What of it? Kinsmen of the Fiend have rights,
and these had; and if I had been here I would have spoken - I would have begged for the
children and the fiends, and stayed your hand and saved them all. But now - oh, now, all
is lost; everything is lost, and there is no help more!
Then she finished with a blast at that idea that fairy kinsmen of the Fiend ought to be
shunned and denied human sympathy and friendship because salvation was barred against
them. She said that for that very reason people ought to pity them, and do every
humane and loving thing they could to make them forget the hard fate that had been put
upon them by accident of birth and no fault of their own. Poor little
creatures! she said. What can a persons heart be made of that can pity a
Christians child and yet cant pity a devils child, that a thousand times
more needs it!
She had torn loose from Père Fronte, and was crying with her knuckles in her eyes, and
stamping her small feet in a fury; and now she burst out of the place and was gone before
we could gather our senses together out of this storm of words and this whirlwind of
passion.
The Père had got upon his feet, toward the last, and now he stood there passing his
hand back and forth across his forehead like a person who is dazed and troubled; then he
turned and wandered toward the door of his little workroom, and as he passed through it I
heard him murmur sorrowfully:
Ah me, poor children, poor fiends, they have rights, and she said true -
I never thought of that. God forgive me, I am to blame.
When I heard that, I knew I was right in the thought that he had set a trap for
himself. It was so, and he had walked into it, you see. I seemed to feel encouraged, and
wondered if mayhap I might get him into one; but upon reflection my heart went down, for
this was not my gift.
Chapter 4
Speaking of this matter reminds me of many incidents, many things that I could tell,
but I think I will not try to do it now. It will be more to my present humour to call back
a little glimpse of the simple and colourless good times we used to have in our village
homes in those peaceful days - especially in the winter. In the summer we children were
out on the breezy uplands with the flocks from dawn till night, and then there was noisy
frolicking and all that; but winter was the cosy time, winter was the snug time. Often we
gathered in old Jacques dArcs big dirt-floored apartment, with a great fire
going, and played games, and sang songs, and told fortunes, and listened to the old
villagers tell tales and histories and lies and one thing and another till twelve
oclock at night.
One winters night we were gathered there - it was the winter that for years
afterwards they called the hard winter - and that particular night was a sharp one. It
blew a gale outside, and the screaming of the wind was a stirring sound, and I think I may
say it was beautiful, for I think it is great and fine and beautiful to hear the wind rage
and storm and blow its clarions like that, when you are inside and comfortable. And we
were. We had a roaring fire, and the pleasant spit-spit of the snow and sleet
falling in it down the chimney, and the yarning and laughing and singing went on at a
noble rate till about ten oclock, and then we had a supper of hot porridge and
beans, and meal cakes with butter, and appetites to match.
Little Joan sat on a box apart, and had her bowl and bread on another one, and her pets
around her, helping. She had more than was usual of them or economical, because all the
outcast cats came and took up with her, and homeless or unlovable animals of other kinds
heard about it and came, and these spread the matter to the other creatures, and they came
also; and as the birds and the other timid wild things of the woods were not afraid of
her, but always had an idea she was a friend when they came across her, and generally
struck up an acquaintance with her to get invited to the house, she always had samples of
those breeds in stock. She was hospitable to them all, for an animal was an animal to her,
and dear by mere reason of being an animal, no matter about its sort or social station;
and as she would allow of no cages, no collars, no fetters, but left the creatures free to
come and go as they liked, that contented them, and they came; but they didnt go, to
any extent, and so they were a marvellous nuisance, and made Jacques dArc swear a
good deal; but his wife said God gave the child the instinct, and knew what He was doing
when He did it, therefore it must have its course; it would be no sound prudence to meddle
with His affairs when no invitation had been extended. So the pets were left in peace, and
here they were, as I have said, rabbits, birds, squirrels, cats, and other reptiles, all
around the child, and full of interest in her supper, and helping what they could. There
was a very small squirrel on her shoulder, sitting up, as those creatures do, and turning
a rocky fragment of prehistoric chestnut-cake over and over in its knotty hands, and
hunting for the less indurated places, and giving its elevated bushy tail a flirt and its
pointed ears a toss when it found one - signifying thankfulness and surprise - and then it
filed that place off with those two slender front teeth which a squirrel carries for that
purpose and not for ornament, for ornamental they never could be, as any will admit that
have noticed them.
Everything was going fine and breezy and hilarious, but then there came an
interruption, for somebody hammered on the door. It was one of those ragged
road-stragglers - the eternal wars kept the country full of them. He came in, all over
snow, and stamped his feet and shook and brushed himself, and shut the door, and took off
his limp ruin of a hat and slapped it once or twice against his leg to knock off his
fleece of snow, and then glanced around on the company with a pleased look upon his thin
face, and a most yearning and famished one in his eye when it fell upon the victuals, and
then he gave us a humble and conciliatory salutation, and said it was a blessed thing to
have a fire like that on such a night, and a roof overhead like this, and that rich food
to eat, and loving friends to talk with - ah, yes, this was true, and God help the
homeless, and such as must trudge the roads in this weather.
Nobody said anything. The poor embarrassed creature stood there and appealed to one
face after the other with his eyes, and found no welcome in any, the smile on his own face
flickering and fading and perishing, meanwhile; then he dropped his gaze, the muscles of
his face began to twitch, and he put up his hand to cover this womanish sign of weakness.
Sit down!
This thunder-blast was from old Jacques dArc, and Joan was the object of it. The
stranger was startled, and took his hand away, and there was Joan standing before him
offering him her bowl of porridge. The man said:
God Almighty bless you, my darling! and then the tears came, and ran down
his cheeks, but he was afraid to take the bowl.
Do you hear me? Sit down, I say!
There could not be a child more easy to persuade than Joan, but this was not the way.
Her father had not the art; neither could he learn it. Joan said:
Father, he is hungry; I can see it.
'Let him go work for food, then. We are being eaten out of house and home by his like,
and I have said I would endure it no more, and will keep my word. He has the face of a
rascal anyhow, and a villain. Sit down, I tell you.'
I know not if he is a rascal or no, but he is hungry, father, and shall have my
porridge - I do not need it.
If you dont obey me Ill - Rascals are not entitled to help from
honest people, and no bite nor sup shall they have in this house. Joan!
She set her bowl down on the box and came over and stood before her scowling father,
and said:
Father, if you will not let me, then it must be as you say; but I would that you
would think - then you would see that it is not right to punish one part of his for what
the other part has done; for it is that poor strangers head that does the evil
things, but it is not his head that is hungry, it is his stomach, and it has done no harm
to anybody, but is without blame, and innocent, not having any way to do a wrong, even if
it was minded to it. Please let -
What an idea! It is the most idiotic speech I ever heard.
But Aubrey, the maire, broke in, he being fond of an argument, and having a pretty gift
in that regard, as all acknowledged. Rising in his place and leaning his knuckles upon the
table and looking about him with easy dignity, after the manner of such as be orators, he
began, smooth and persuasive:
I will differ with you there, gossip, and will undertake to show the
company - here he looked around upon us and nodded his head in a confident way -
that there is a grain of sense in what the child has said; for look you, it is of a
certainty most true and demonstrable that it is a mans head that is master and
supreme ruler over his whole body. Is that granted? Will any deny it? He glanced
around again; everybody indicated assent. Very well, then; that being the case, no
part of the body is responsible for the result when it carries out an order delivered it
by the head; ergo, the head is alone responsible for crimes done by a mans hands or
feet or stomach - do you get the idea? am I right thus far? Everybody said yes, and
said it with enthusiasm, and some said, one to another, that the maire was in great form
tonight and at his very best - which pleased the maire exceedingly and made his eyes
sparkle with pleasure, for he overheard these things; so he went on in the same fertile
and brilliant way. Now, then, we will consider what the term responsibility means,
and how it affects the case in point. Responsibility makes a man responsible for only
those things for which he is properly responsible - and he waved his spoon around in
a wide sweep to indicate the comprehensive nature of that class of responsibilities which
render people responsible, and several exclaimed, admiringly, He is right! - he has
put that whole tangled thing into a nutshell - it is wonderful! After a little pause
to give the interest opportunity to gather and grow, he went on: Very good. Let us
suppose the case of a pair of tongs that falls upon a mans foot, causing a cruel
hurt. Will you claim that the tongs are punishable for that? The question is answered: I
see by your faces that you would call such a claim absurd. Now, why is it absurd? It is
absurd because, there being no reasoning faculty - that is to say, no faculty of personal
command - in a pair of tongs, personal responsibility for the acts of the tongs is wholly
absent from the tongs; and therefore, responsibility being absent, punishment cannot
ensue. Am I right? A hearty burst of applause was his answer. Now, then, we
arrive at a mans stomach. Consider how exactly, how marvellously, indeed, its
situation corresponds to that of a pair of tongs. Listen - and take careful note, I beg
you. Can a mans stomach plan a murder? No. Can it plan a theft? No. Can it plan an
incendiary fire? No. Now answer me - Can a pair of tongs? (There were admiring
shouts of No! and The cases are just exact! and Dont
he do it splendid!) Now, then friends and neighbours, a stomach which cannot
plan a crime cannot be a principal in the commission of it - that is plain, as you see.
The matter is narrowed down by that much; we will narrow it further. Can a stomach, of its
own motion, assist at a crime? The answer is no, because command is absent, the reasoning
faculty is absent, volition is absent - as in the case of the tongs. We perceive, now, do
we not, that the stomach is totally irresponsible for crimes committed either in whole of
in part, by it? He got a rousing cheer for response. Then what do we arrive at
as our verdict? Clearly this: that there is no such thing in this world as a guilty
stomach; that in the body of the veriest rascal resides a pure and innocent stomach; that,
whatever its owner may do, it at least should be sacred in our eyes; and that
while God gives us minds to think just and charitable and honourable thoughts, it should
be and is our privilege, as well as our duty, not only to feed the hungry stomach
that resides in a rascal, having pity for its sorrow and its need, but to do it gladly,
gratefully, in recognition of its sturdy and loyal maintenance of its purity and innocence
in the midst of temptation and in company so repugnant to its better feelings. I am
done.
Well, you never saw such an effect! They rose - the whole house rose - and clapped, and
cheered, and praised him to the skies; and one after another, still clapping and shouting,
they crowded forward, some with moisture in their eyes, and wrung his hands, and said such
glorious things to him that he was clear overcome with pride and happiness, and
couldnt say a word, for his voice would have broken, sure. It was splendid to see;
and everybody said he had never come up to that speech in his life before, and never could
do it again. Eloquence is a power, there is no question of that. Even old Jacques
dArc was carried away, for once in his life, and shouted out -
Its all right, Joan - give him the porridge!
She was embarrassed, and did not seem to know what to say, and so didnt say
anything. It was because she had given the man the porridge long ago, and he had already
eaten it all up. When she was asked why she had not waited until a decision was arrived
at, she said the mans stomach was very hungry, and it would not have been wise to
wait, since she could not tell what the decision would be. Now that was a good and
thoughtful idea for a child.
The man was not a rascal at all. He was a very good fellow, only he was out of luck,
and surely that was no crime at that time in France. Now that his stomach was proved to be
innocent, it was allowed to make itself at home; and as soon as it was well filled and
needed nothing more, the man unwound his tongue and turned it loose, and it was really a
noble one to go. He had been in the wars for years, and the things he told, and the way he
told them, fired everybodys patriotism away up high, and set all hearts to thumping
and all pulses to leaping; then before anybody rightly knew how the change was made, he
was leading us a sublime march through the ancient glories of France, and in fancy we saw
the titanic forms of the twelve paladins rise out of the mists of the past and face their
fate; we heard the tread of the innumerable hosts sweeping down to shut them in; we saw
this human tide flow and ebb, ebb and flow, and waste away before that little band of
heroes; we saw each detail pass before us of that most stupendous, most disastrous, yet
most adored and glorious day in French legendary history; here and there and yonder,
across that vast field of the dead and dying, we saw this and that and the other paladin
dealing his prodigious blows with weary arm and failing strength, and one by one we saw
them fall, till only one remained - he that was without peer, he whose name gives name to
the Song of Songs, the song which no Frenchman can hear and keep his feelings down and his
pride of country cool, then, grandest and pitifulest scene of all, we saw his own pathetic
death; and our stillness, as we sat with parted lips and breathless, hanging upon this
mans words, gave us a sense of the awful stillness that reigned in that field of
slaughter when the last surviving soul had passed.
And now, in this solemn hush, the stranger gave Joan a pat or two on the head and said:
Little maid - whom God keep! - you have brought me from death to life this night;
now listen: here is your reward, and at that supreme time for such a heart-melting,
soul-rousing surprise, without another word he lifted up the most noble and pathetic voice
that was ever heard, and began to pour out the great Song of Roland!
Think of that, with a French audience all stirred up and ready. Oh, where was your
spoken eloquence now? what was it to this? How fine he looked, how stately, how inspired,
as he stood there with that mighty chant welling from his lips and his heart, his whole
body transfigured, and his rags along with it!
Everybody rose and stood while he sang, and their faces glowed and their eyes burned;
and the tears came and flowed down their cheeks, and their forms began to sway
unconsciously to the swing of the song, and their bosoms to heave and pant; and moanings
broke out, and deep ejaculations; and when the last verse was reached and Roland lay
dying, all alone, with his face to the field and to his slain, lying there in heaps and
windrows, and took off and held up his gauntlet to God with his failing hand, and breathed
his beautiful prayer with his paling lips, all burst out in sobs and wailings. But when
the final note died out and the song was done, they all flung themselves in a body at the
singer, stark mad with love of him and love of France and pride in her great deeds and old
renown, and smothered him with their embracings; but Joan was there first, hugged close to
his breast, and covering his face with idolatrous kisses.
The storm raged on outside, but that was no matter; this was the strangers home
now, for as long as he might please.
Chapter 5
All children have nicknames, and we had ours. We got one apiece early, and they stuck
to us; but Joan was richer in this matter, for as time went on she earned a second, and
then a third, and so on, and we gave them to her. First and last she had as many as half a
dozen. Several of these she never lost. Peasant girls are bashful naturally; but she
surpassed the rule so far, and coloured so easily, and was so easily embarrassed in the
presence of strangers, that we nicknamed her the Bashful. We were all patriots, but she
was called the Patriot, because our warmest feeling for our country was cold
beside hers. Also she was called the Beautiful; and this was not merely because of the
extraordinary beauty of her face and form, but because of the loveliness of her character.
These names she kept, and one other - the Brave.
We grew along up, in that plodding and peaceful region, and got to be good-sized boys
and girls - big enough, in fact, to begin to know as much about the wars raging
perpetually to the west and north of us as our elders, and also to feel as stirred up over
the occasional news from those red fields as they did. I remember certain of these days
very clearly. One Tuesday a crowd of us were romping and singing around the Fairy Tree,
and hanging garlands on it in memory of our lost little fairy friends, when little
Mengette cried out:
Look! What is that?
When one exclaims like that, in a way that shows astonishment and apprehension, he gets
attention. All the panting breasts and flushed faces flocked together, and all the eager
eyes were turned in one direction - down the slope, toward the village.
Its a black flag.
A black flag! No - is it?
You can see for yourself that it is nothing else.
It is a black flag, sure! Now, has any ever seen the like of that
before?
What can it mean?
Mean? It means something dreadful - what else?
That is nothing to the point; anybody knows that without the telling. But what? - that is the question.
It is a chance that he that bears it can answer as well as any that are here, if
you can contain yourself till he come.
He runs well. Who is it?
Some named one, some another; but presently all saw that it was Étienne Roze, called
the Sunflower, because he had yellow hair and a round, pock-marked face. His ancestors had
been Germans some centuries ago. He came straining up the slope, now and then projecting
his flag-stick aloft and giving his black symbol of woe a wave in the air, whilst all eyes
watched him, all tongues discussed him, and every heart beat faster and faster with
impatience to know his news. At last he sprang among us, and struck his flag-stick into
the ground, saying:
There! Stand there and represent France while I get my breath. She needs no other
flag, now.
All the giddy chatter stopped. It was as if one had announced a death. In that chilly
hush there was no sound audible but the panting of the breath-blown boy. When he was
presently able to speak, he said:
Black news is come. A treaty has been made at Troyes between France and the
English and Burgundians. By it France is betrayed and delivered over, tied hand and foot,
to the enemy. It is the work of the Duke of Burgundy and that she-devil the Queen of
France. It marries Henry of England to Catherine of France-
Is not this a lie? Marries the daughter of France to the Butcher of Agincourt? It
is not to be believed. You have not heard aright.
If you cannot believe that, Jacques dArc, then you have a difficult task
indeed before you, for worse is to come. Any child that is born of that marriage - if even
a girl - is to inherit the thrones of both England and France, and this double ownership
is to remain with its posterity for ever!
Now that is certainly a lie, for it runs counter to our Salic law, and
so is not legal and cannot have effect, said Edmond Aubrey, called the Paladin,
because of the armies he was always going to eat up some day. He would have said more, but
he was drowned out by the clamours of the others, who all burst into fury over this
feature of the treaty, all talking at once and nobody hearing anybody, until presently
Haumette persuaded them to be still, saying:
It is not fair to break him up so in his tale; pray let him go on. You find fault
with his history because it seems to be lies. That were reason for satisfaction - that kind of lies - not discontent. Tell the rest, Étienne.
There is but this to tell: Our King, Charles VI, is to reign until he dies, then
Henry V of England is to be Regent of France until a child of his shall be old enough to -
That man is to reign over us - the Butcher? It is lies! all lies!
cried the Paladin. Besides, look you what becomes of our Dauphin? What says the
treaty about him?
Nothing. It takes away his throne and makes him an outcast.
Then everybody shouted at once and said the news was a lie; and all began to get
cheerful again, saying, Our King would have to sign the treaty to make it good; and
that he would not do, seeing how it serves his own son.
But the Sunflower said: I will ask you this: Would the Queen sign a
treaty disinheriting her son?
That viper? Certainly. Nobody is talking of her. Nobody expects better of her.
There is no villainy she will stick at, if it feed her spite; and she hates her son. Her
signing it is of no consequence. The King must sign.
I will ask you another thing. What is the Kings condition? Mad isnt
he?
Yes, and his people love him all the more for it. It brings him near to them by
his sufferings; and pitying him makes them love him.
You say right, Jacques dArc. Well, what would you of one that is mad? Does
he know what he does? No. Does he do what others make him do? Yes. Now, then, I tell you
he has signed the treaty.
Who made him do it?
You know, without my telling. The Queen.
Then there was another uproar - everybody talking at once, and all heaping execrations
upon the Queen's head. Finally Jacques dArc said:
But many reports come that are not true. Nothing so shameful as this has ever
come before, nothing that cuts so deep, nothing that has dragged France so low; therefore
there is hope that this tale is but another idle rumour. Where did you get it?
The colour went out of his sister Joans face. She dreaded the answer; and her
instinct was right.
The curé of Maxey brought it.
There was a general gasp. We knew him, you see, for a trusty man.
Did he believe it?
The hearts almost stopped beating. Then came the answer:
He did. And that is not all. He said he knew it to be true.
Some of the girls began to sob; the boys were struck silent. The distress in
Joans face was like that which one sees in the face of a dumb animal that has
received a mortal hurt. The animal bears it making no complaint; she bore it also, saying
no word. Her brother Jacques put his hand on her head and caressed her hair to indicate
his sympathy, and she gathered the hand to her lips and kissed it for thanks, not saying
anything. Presently the reaction came, and the boys began to talk. Noël Rainguesson said:
Oh, are we never going to be men! We do grow along so slowly, and France never
needed soldiers as she needs them now, to wipe out this black insult.
I hate youth! said Pierre Morel, called the Dragonfly because his eyes
stuck out so. Youve always got to wait, and wait, and wait - and here are the
great wars wasting away for a hundred years, and you never get a chance. If I could only
be a soldier now!
As for me, Im not going to wait much longer, said the Paladin;
and when I do start youll hear from me, I promise you that. There are some
who, in storming a castle prefer to be in the rear; but as for me, give me the front or
none; I will have none in front of me but the officers.
Even the girls got the war spirit, and Marie Dupont said -
I would I were a man; I would start this minute! and looked very proud of
herself, and glanced about for applause.
So would I, said Cécile Letellier, sniffing the air like a war-horse that
smells the battle; I warrant you I would not turn back from the field though all
England were in front of me.
Pooh! said the Paladin; girls can brag, but thats all they are
good for. Let a thousand of them come face to face with a handful of soldiers once, if you
want to see what running is like. Heres little Joan - next shell be
threatening to go for a soldier!
The idea was so funny, and got such a good laugh, that the Paladin gave it another
trial, and said: Why you can just see her! - see her plunge into battle like any
other old veteran. Yes, indeed; and not a poor shabby common soldier like us, but an
officer - an officer, mind you, with armour on, and the bars of a steel helmet to blush
behind and hide her embarrassment when she finds an army in front of her that she
hasnt been introduced to. An officer? Why, shell be a captain! A captain, I
tell you, with a hundred men at her back - or maybe girls. Oh, no common-soldier business
for her! And, dear me, when she starts for that other army, youll think theres
a hurricane blowing it away!
Well, he kept it up like that till he made their sides ache with laughing; which was
quite natural, for certainly it was a very funny idea - at that time - I mean, the idea of
that gentle little creature, that wouldnt hurt a fly, and couldnt bear the
sight of blood, and was so girlish and shrinking in all ways, rushing into battle with a
gang of soldiers at her back. Poor thing, she sat there confused and ashamed to be so
laughed at; and yet at that very minute there was something about to happen which would
change the aspect of things, and make those young people see that when it comes to
laughing, the person that laughs last has the best chance. For just then a face which we
all knew and all feared projected itself from behind the Fairy Tree, and the thought that
shot through us all was, crazy Benoist has gotten loose from his cage, and we are as good
as dead! This ragged and hairy and horrible creature glided out from behind the Tree, and
raised an axe as he came. We all broke and fled, this way and that, the girls screaming
and crying. No, not all; all but Joan. She stood up and faced the man, and remained so. As
we reached the wood that borders the grassy clearing and jumped into its shelter, two or
three of us glanced back to see if Benoist was gaining on us, and that is what we saw -
Joan standing, and the maniac gliding stealthily toward her with his axe lifted. The sight
was sickening. We stood where we were, trembling and not able to move. I did not want to
see the murder done, and yet I could not take my eyes away. Now I saw Joan step forward to
meet the man, though I believed my eyes must be deceiving me. Then I saw him stop. He
threatened her with his axe, as if to warn her not to come further, but she paid no heed,
but went steadily on, until she was right in front of him - right under his axe. Then she
stopped, and seemed to begin to talk with him. It made me sick, yes, giddy, and everything
swam around me, and I could not see anything for a time - whether long or brief I do not
know. When this passed and I looked again, Joan was walking by the mans side toward
the village, holing him by his hand. The axe was in her other hand.
One by one the boys and girls crept out, and we stood there gazing, open-mouthed, till
those two entered the village and were hid from sight. It was then that we named her the
Brave.
We left the black flag there to continue its mournful office, for we had other matter
to think of now. We started for the village on a run, to give warning, and get Joan out of
her peril; though for one, after seeing what I had seen, it seemed to me that while Joan
had the axe the mans chance was not the best of the two. When we arrived the danger
was past, the madman was in custody. All the people were flocking to the little square in
front of the church to talk and exclaim and wonder over the event, and it even made the
town forget the black news of the treaty for two or three hours.
All the women kept hugging and kissing Joan, and praising her, and crying, and the men
patter her on the head and said they wished she was a man, they would send her to the wars
and never doubt but that she would strike some blows that would be heard of. She had to
tear herself away and go and hide, this glory was so trying to her diffidence.
Of course the people began to ask us for the particulars. I was so ashamed that I made
an excuse to the first comer, and got privately away and went back to the Fairy Tree, to
get relief from the embarrassment of those questionings. There I found Joan, but she was
there to get relief from the embarrassment of glory. One by one the others skirted the
inquirers and joined us in our refuge. Then we gathered around Joan, and asked her how she
had dared to do that thing. She was very modest about it, and said:
You make a great thing of it, but you mistake; it was not a great matter. It was
not as if I had been stranger to the man. I know him, and have known him long; and he
knows me, and likes me. I have fed him through the bars of his cage many times; and last
December when they chopped off two of his fingers to remind him to stop seizing and
wounding people passing by, I dressed his hand every day, till it was well again.
That is all well enough, said little Mengette, but he is a madman,
dear, and so his likings and his gratitude and friendliness go for nothing when his rage
is up. You did a perilous thing.
Of course you did, said the Sunflower. Didnt he threaten to
kill you with his axe?
Yes.
Didnt he threaten you more than once?
Yes.
Didnt you feel afraid?
No - at least not much - very little.
Why didnt you?
She though a moment, then said, quite simply-
I dont know.
It made everybody laugh. Then the Sunflower said it was like a lamb trying to think out
how it had come to eat a wolf, but had to give it up.
Cécile Letellier asked, Why didnt you run when we did?
Because it was necessary to get him to his cage; else he would kill some one.
Then he would come to the like harm himself.
It is noticeable that this remark, which implies that Joan was entirely forgetful of
her self and her own danger, and had thought and wrought for the preservation of other
people alone, was not challenged, or criticised, or commented upon by anybody there, but
was taken by all as matter of course and true. It shows how clearly her character was
defined, and how well it was known and established.
There was silence for a time, and perhaps we were all thinking of the same thing -
namely, what a poor figure we had cut in that adventure as contrasted with Joans
performance. I tried to think up some good way of explaining why I had run away and left a
little girl at the mercy of a maniac armed with an axe, but all of the explanations that I
gave the matter up and remained still. But others were less wise. Noël Rainguesson
fidgeted a while, then broke out with a remark which showed what his mind had been running
on:
The fact is, I was taken by surprise. That is the reason. If I had a moment to
think, I would no more have thought of running than I would think of running from a baby.
For, after all, what is Théophile Benoist, that I should seem to be afraid of him? Pooh!
the idea of being afraid of that poor thing! I only wish he would come along now -
Id show you!
So do I! cried Pierre Morel. If I wouldnt make him climb this
tree quicker than - well, youd see what I would do! Taking a person by surprise,
that way - why, I never meant to run; not in earnest, I mean. I never thought of running
in earnest, I only wanted to have some fun, and when I saw Joan standing there, and him
threatening her, it was all I could do to restrain myself from going there and just
tearing the livers and lights out of him. I wanted to do it bad enough, and if it
was to do over again, I would! If ever he comes fooling around me again,
Ill-
Oh, hush! said the Paladin, breaking in with an air of disdain; the
way you people talk, a person would think theres something heroic about standing up
and facing down that poor remnant of a man. Why, its nothing! Theres small
glory to be got in facing him down, I should say. Why I wouldnt want any
better fun than to face down a hundred like him. If he was to come along here now, I would
walk up to him just as I am now - I wouldnt care if he had a thousand axes - and say
-
And so he went on and on, telling the brave things he would say and the wonders he
would do and the others put in a word from time to time, describing over again the gory
marvels they would do if ever that madman ventured to cross their path again; for next
time they would be ready for him, and would soon teach him that if he thought he could
surprise them twice because he had surprised them once, he would find himself very
seriously mistaken, thats all.
And so, in the end, they all got back their self-respect; yes, and even added somewhat
to it; indeed, when the setting broke up they had a finer opinion of themselves than they
ever had before.
Chapter 6
They were peaceful and pleasant, those young and smoothly flowing days of ours; that
is, that was the case as a rule, we being remote from the seat of war, but at intervals
roving bands approached near enough for us to see the flush in the sky at night which
marked where they were burning some farmstead or village, and we all knew, or at least
felt, that some day they would come yet nearer, and we should have our turn. This dull
dread lay upon our spirits like a physical weight. It was greatly augmented a couple of
years after the Treaty of Troyes.
It was truly a dismal year for France. One day we had been over to have one of our
occasional pitched battles with those hated Burgundian boys of the village of Maxey, and
had been whipped, and were arriving on our side of the river after dark, bruised and
weary, when we heard the bell ringing the tocsin. We ran all the way, and when we got to
the square we found it crowded with the excited villagers, and weirdly lights by smoking
and flaring torches.
On the steps of the church stood a stranger, a Burgundian priest, who was telling the
people news which made them weep, and rave, and rage, and curse, by turns. He said our old
King was dead, and that now we and France and the crown were the property of an English
baby lying in his cradle in London. And he urged us to give that child our allegiance, and
be its faithful servants and well-wishers; and said we should now have a strong and stable
government at last, and that in a little time the English armies would start on their last
march, and it would be a brief one, for all that it would need to do would be to conquer
what odds and ends of our country yet remained under that rare and almost forgotten rag,
the banner of France.
The people stormed and raged at him, and you could see dozens of them stretched their
fists above the sea of torch-lighted faces and shake them at him, and it was all a wild
picture, and stirring to look at; and the priest was a first-rate part of it, too, for he
stood there in the strong glare and looked down on those angry people in the blandest and
most indifferent way, so that while you wanted to burn him at the stake, you still admired
the aggravating coolness of him. And his winding up was the coolest thing of all. For he
told them how, at the funeral of our old King, the French King-at-Arms had broken his
staff of office over the coffin of Charles VI and his dynasty, at the same time
saying, in a loud voice, God grant long life to Henry, King of France and England,
our sovereign lord! and then he asked them to join him in a hearty Amen to that!
The people were white with wrath, and it tied their tongues for the moment, and they
could not speak. But Joan was standing close by, and looked up in his face, and said in
her sober, earnest way -
I would I might see thy head struck from thy body! - then, after a pause,
and crossing herself - if it were the will of God.
This is worth remembering, and I will tell you why: it is the only harsh speech Joan
ever uttered in her life. When I shall have revealed to you the storms she went through,
and the wrongs and persecutions, then you will see that it was wonderful that she said but
one bitter thing while she lived.
From the day that dreary news came we had one scare after another, the marauders coming
almost to our doors every now and then; so that we lived in ever-increasing apprehension,
and yet were somehow mercifully spared from actual attack. But at last out turn did really
come. This was in the spring of 28. The Burgundians swarmed in with a great noise,
in the middle of a dark night, and we had to jump up and fly for our lives. We took the
road to Neufchâteau, and rushed along in the wildest disorder, everybody trying to get
ahead, and thus the movements of all were impeded; but Joan had a cool head - the only
cool head there - and she took command and brought order out of that chaos. She did her
work quickly and with decision and despatch, and soon turned the panic flight into a quite
steady-going march. You will grant that for so young a person, and a girl at that, this
was a good piece of work.
She was sixteen now, shapely and graceful, and a beauty so extraordinary that I might
allow myself any extravagance of language in describing it and yet have no fear of going
beyond the truth. There was in her face a sweetness and serenity and purity that justly
reflected her spiritual nature. She was deeply religious, and this is a thing which
sometimes gives a melancholy cast to a persons countenance, but it was not so in her
case. Her religion made her inwardly content and joyous; and if she was troubled at times,
and showed the pain of it in her face and bearing, it came of distress for her country; no
part of it was chargeable to her religion.
A considerable part of our village was destroyed, and when it became safe for us to
venture back there we realised what other people had been suffering in all the various
quarters of France for many years - yes, decades of years. For the first time we saw
wrecked and smoke-blackened homes, and in the lanes and alleys carcasses of dumb creatures
that had been slaughtered in pure wantonness - among them calves and lambs that had been
pets of the children; and it was pity to see the children lament over them.
And then, the taxes, the taxes! Everybody thought of that. That burden would fall
heavy, now, in the communes crippled condition, and all faces grew long with the
thought of it. Joan said:
Paying taxes with nought to pay them which is what the rest of France has been
doing these many years, but we never knew the bitterness of that before. We shall know it
now.
And se she went on talking about it and growing more and more troubled about it, until
one could see that it was filling all her mind.
At last we came upon a dreadful object. It was the madman - hacked and stabbed to death
in his iron cage in the corner of the square. It was a bloody and dreadful sight. Hardly
any of us young people had ever seen a man before who had lost his life by violence; so
this cadaver had an awful fascination for us; we could not take out eyes from it. I mean,
it had that sort of fascination for all of us but one. That one was Joan. She turned away
in horror, and could not be persuaded to go near it again. There - it is a striking
reminder that we are but creatures of use and custom; yes, and it is a reminder, too, of
how harshly and unfairly fate deals with us sometimes. For it was so ordered that the very
ones among us who were most fascinated with mutilated and bloody death were to live lives
in peace, while that other, who had a native and deep horror of it, must presently go
forth and have it as a familiar spectacle every day on the field of battle.
You may well believe that we had plenty of matter for talk, now, since the raiding of
our village seemed by long odds the greatest event that had really ever occurred in the
world, for although these dull peasants may have thought they recognised the
bigness of some of the previous occurrences that had filtered from the worlds
history dimly into their minds, the truth is that they hadnt. One biting little
fact, visible to their eyes of flesh and felt in their own personal vitals, became at once
more prodigious to them than the grandest remote episode in the worlds history which
they had got at second-hand and by hearsay. It amuses me now when I recall how our elders
talked then. They fumed and fretted in a fine fashion.
Ah yes, said old Jacques dArc, things are come to a pretty pass
indeed! The King must be informed of this. It is time that he cease from idleness and
dreaming, and get at his proper business. He meant our young disinherited King, the
hunted refugee, Charles VII.
You say well, said the maire. He should be informed, and that at
once. It is an outrage that such things should be permitted. Why, we are not safe in our
beds, and he taking his ease yonder. It shall be made known, indeed it shall - all France
shall hear of it!
To hear them talk, one would have imagined that all the previous ten thousand sackings
and burnings in France had been but fables, and this one the only fact. It is always the
way: words will answer as long as it is only a persons neighbour who is in trouble,
but when that person gets into trouble himself, it is time that the King rise up and do something.
The big event filled us young people with talk, too. We let it flow in a steady stream
while we tended the flocks. We were beginning to feel pretty important, now, for I was
eighteen and the other youths were from one to four years older - young men, in fact. One
day the Paladin was arrogantly criticising the patriot generals of France and said -
Look at Dunois, Bastard of Orleans - call him a general! Just put me in
his place once - never mind what I would do, it is not for me to say, I have no stomach
for talk, my way is to act and let others do the talking - but just put me in his place
once, thats all! And look at Saintrailles - pooh! and that blustering La Hire, now
what a general that is!
It shocked everybody to hear these great names so flippantly handled, for to us these
renowned soldiers were almost gods. In their far-off splendour they rose upon our
imagination dim and huge, shadowy and awful, and it was a fearful thing to hear them
spoken of as if they were mere men, and their acts open to comment and criticism. The
colour rose in Joans face, and she said -
I know not how any can be so hardy as to use such words regarding these sublime
men, who are the very pillars of the French State, supporting it with their strength and
preserving it at daily cost of their blood. As for me, I could count myself honoured past
all deserving if I might be allowed but the privilege of looking upon them once - at a
distance, I mean, for it would not become one of my degree to approach them too
near.
The Paladin was disconcerted for a moment, seeing by the faces around him that Joan had
put into words what the others felt, then he pulled his complacency together and fell to
fault-finding again. Joans brother Jean said -
If you dont like what our generals do, why dont you go to the great
wars yourself and better their work? You are always talking about going to the wars, but
you dont go.
Look you, said the Paladin, it is easy to say that. Now I will tell
you why I remain chafing here in a bloodless tranquillity which my reputation teaches you
is repulsive to my nature. I do not go because I am not a gentleman. That is the whole
reason. What can one private soldier do in a contest like this? Nothing. He is not
permitted to rise from the ranks. If I were a gentleman would I remain here? Not one
moment. I can save France - ah, you may laugh, but I know what is in me, I know what is
hid under this peasant cap. I can save France, and I stand ready to do it, but not under
these present conditions. If they want me, let them send for me; otherwise let them take
the consequences; I shall not budge but as an officer.
Alas, poor France - France is lost! said Pierre dArc.
Since you sniff so at others, why dont you go to the wars yourself, Pierre
dArc?
Oh, I havent been sent for, either. I am no more a gentleman than you. Yet
I will go; I promise to go. I promise to go as a private under your orders - when you are
sent for.
They all laughed, and the Dragonfly said -
So soon? Then you need to begin to get ready; you might be called for in five
years - who knows? Yes, in my opinion youll march for the wars in five years.
He will go sooner, said Joan. She said it in a low voice and musingly, but
several heard it.
How do you know that, Joan? said the Dragonfly, with a surprised look. But
Jean dArc broke in and said -
I want to go myself, but as I am rather young yet, I also will wait, and march
when the Paladin is sent for.
No, said Joan, he will go with Pierre.
She said it as one who talks to himself aloud without knowing, and none heard it but
me. I glanced at her and saw that her knitting-needles were idle in her hands, and that
her face had a dreamy and absent look in it. There were fleeting movements of her lips as
if she might be occasionally saying parts of sentences to herself. But there was no sound,
for I was the nearest person to her and I heard nothing. But I set my ears open, for those
two speeches had affected me uncannily, I being superstitious and easily troubled by any
little things of a strange and unusual sort.
Noël Rainguesson said -
There is one way to let France have a chance for her salvation. Weve got one gentleman in the commune, at any rate. Why cant the Scholar change name and
condition with the Paladin? Then he can be an officer. France will send for him then, and
he will sweep these English and Burgundian armies into the sea like flies.
I was the Scholar. That was my nickname, because I could read and write. There was a
chorus of approval and the Sunflower said -
That is the very thing - it settles every difficulty. The Sieur de Conte will
easily agree to that. Yes, he will march at the back of Captain Paladin and die early,
covered with common-soldier glory.
He will march with Jean and Pierre, and live till these wars are forgotten,
Joan muttered; and at the eleventh hour Noël and the Paladin will join these, but
not of their own desire. The voice was so low that I was not perfectly sure that
these were the words, but they seemed to be. It makes one feel creepy to hear such things.
Come, now, Noël continued, its all arranged; theres
nothing to do but organise under the Paladins banner and go forth and rescue France.
Youll all join?
All said yes, except Jacques dArc, who said -
Ill ask you to excuse me. It is pleasant to talk war, and I am with you
there, and Ive always thought I should go soldiering about this time, but the look
of our wrecked village and that carved-up and bloody madman have taught me that I am not
made for such work and such sights. I could never be at home in that trade. Face swords
and the big guns and death? It isnt in me. No, no; count me out. And besides,
Im the eldest son, and deputy prop and protector of the family. Since you are going
to carry Jean and Pierre to the wars, somebody must be left behind to take care of our
Joan and her sister. I shall stay at home, and grow old in peace and tranquillity.
He will stay at home, but not grow old,' murmured Joan.
The talk rattled on in the gay and ceaseless fashion privileged to youth, and we got
the Paladin to map out his campaigns and fight his battles and win his victories and
extinguish the English and put our King upon his throne and set his crown upon his head.
Then we asked him what he was going to answer when the King should require him to name a
reward. The Paladin had it all arranged in his head, and brought it out promptly:
He shall give me a dukedom, name me premier peer, and make me Hereditary Lord
High Constable of France.
And marry you to a princess - youre not going to leave that out, are
you?
The Paladin coloured a trifle, and said, Brusquely -
He may keep his princesses - I can marry more to my taste.
Meaning Joan, though nobody suspected it at that time. If any had, the Paladin would
have been finely ridiculed for his vanity. There was no fit mate in that village for Joan
of Arc. Every one would have said that.
In turn, each person present was required to say what reward he would demand of the
King if he could change places with the Paladin and do the wonders the Paladin was going
to do. The answers were given in fun, and each of us tried to outdo his predecessors in
the extravagance of the reward he would claim; but when it came to Joans turn and
they rallied her out of her dreams and asked her to testify, they had to explain to her
what the question was, for her thought had been absent, and she had heard none of this
latter part of our talk. She supposed they wanted a serious answer, and she gave it. She
sat considering some moments, then she said -
If the Dauphin out of his grace and nobleness should say to me, "Now that I
am rich and am come to my own again, choose and have," I should kneel and ask him to
give command that our village should nevermore be taxed.
It was so simple and out of her heart that it touched us and we did not laugh, but fell
to thinking. We did not laugh; but there came a day when we remembered that speech with a
mournful pride, and were glad that we had not laughed, perceiving then how honest her
words had been, and seeing how faithfully she made them good when the time came, asking
just that boon of the King and refusing to take even any least thing for herself.
Chapter 7
All through her childhood and up to the middle of her fourteenth year, Joan had been
the most light-hearted creature and the merriest in the village, with a hop-skip-and-jump
gait and a happy and catching laugh; and this disposition, supplemented by her warm and
sympathetic nature and frank and winning ways, had made her everybodys pet. She had
been a hot patriot all this time, and sometimes the war news had sobered her spirits and
wrung her heart and made her acquainted with tears, but always when these interruptions
had run their course her spirits rose and she was her old self again.
But now for a whole year and a half she had been mainly grave, not melancholy, but
given to thought, abstraction, dreams. She was carrying France upon her heart, and she
found the burden not light. I knew that this was her trouble, but others attributed her
abstraction to religious ecstasy, for she did not share her thinkings with the village at
large, yet gave me glimpses of them, and so I knew, better than the rest, what was
absorbing her interest. Many a time the idea crossed my mind that she had a secret - a
secret which she was keeping wholly to herself, as well from me as from the others. This
idea had come to me because several times she had cut a sentence in two and changed the
subject when apparently she was on the verge of a revelation of some sort. I was to find
this secret out, but not just yet.
The day after the conversation which I have been reporting we were together in the
pastures and fell to talking about France, as usual. For her sake I had always talked
hopefully before, but that was mere lying, for really there was not anything to hang a rag
of hope for France upon. Now it was such a pain to lie to her, and cost me such shame to
offer this treachery to one so snow-pure from lying and treachery, and even from suspicion
of such baseness in others, as she was, that I resolved to face about, now, and begin over
again, and never insult her more with deception. I started on the new policy by saying -
still opening up with a small lie, of course, for habit is habit, and not to be flung out
of the window by any man, but coaxed downstairs a step at a time -
Joan, I have been thinking the whole thing over, last night, and have concluded
that we have been in the wrong all this time; that the case of France is desperate; that
it has been desperate ever since Agincourt; and that today it is more than desperate, it
is hopeless.
I did not look her in the face while I was saying it; it could not be expected of a
person. To break her heart, to crush her hope with a so frankly brutal speech as that,
without one charitable soft place in it - it seemed a shameful thing, and it was. But when
it was out, the weight gone, and my conscience rising to the surface, I glanced at her
face to see the result.
There was none to see. At least none that I was expecting. There was a barely
perceptible suggestion of wonder in her serious eyes, but that was all; and she said, in
her simple and placid way -
The case of France hopeless? Why should you think that? Tell me.
It is a most pleasant thing to find that what you think would inflict a hurt upon one
whom you honour has not done it. I was relieved now, and could say all my say without and
furtiveness and without embarrassment. So I began:
Let us put sentiment and patriotic illusions aside, and look the facts in the
face. What do they say? They speak as plainly as the figures in a merchants
account-book. One has only to add the two columns up to see that the French house is
bankrupt, that one-half of its property is already in the English sheriffs hands and
the other half in nobodys - except those of irresponsible raiders and robbers
confessing allegiance to nobody. Our King is shut up with his favourites and fools in
inglorious idleness and poverty in a narrow little patch of the kingdom - a sort of back
lot, as one may say - and has no authority there or anywhere else, hasnt a farthing
to his name, nor a regiment of soldiers; he is not fighting, he is not intending to fight,
he means to make no further resistance; in truth there is but one thing that he is
intending to do - give the whole thing up, pitch his crown into the sewer, and run away to
Scotland. These are the facts. Are they correct?
Yes, they are correct.
Then it is as I have said: one needs but to add them together in order to realise
what they mean.
She asked, in an ordinary, level tone -
What - that the case of France of hopeless?
Necessarily. In face of these facts, doubt of it is impossible.
How can you say that? How can you feel like that?
How can I? How could I think or feel in any other way, in the circumstances?
Joan, with these fatal figures before you, have you really any hope for France - really
and actually?
Hope - oh, more than that! France will win her freedom and keep it. Do not doubt
it.
It seemed to me that her clear intellect must surely be clouded today. It must be so,
or she would see that those figures could mean only the one thing. Perhaps if I
marshalled them again she would see. So I said:
Joan, your heart, which worships France, is beguiling your head. You are not
perceiving the importance of these figures. Here - I want to make a picture of them, here
on the ground with a stick. Now, this rough outline is France. Through its middle, east
and west, I draw a river.
Yes; the Loire.
Now, then, this whole northern half of the country is in the tight grip of the
English.
Yes.
And this whole southern half is really in nobodys hands at all - as our
King confesses by mediating desertion and flight to a foreign land. England has armies
here; opposition is dead, she can assume full possession whenever she may choose. In very
truth, all France is gone, France is already lost, France has ceased to exist.
What was France is now a British province. Is this true?
Her voice was low, and just touched with emotion, but distinct:
Yes, it is true.
Very well. Now add this clinching fact, and surely the sum is complete: When have
French soldiers won a victory? Scotch soldiers, under the French flag, have won a barren
fight or two a few years back, but I am speaking of French ones. Since eight thousand
Englishmen nearly annihilated sixty thousand Frenchmen a dozen years ago at Agincourt,
French courage has been paralysed. And so it is a common saying, to day, that if you
confront fifty French soldiers with five English ones, the French will run.
It is a pity, but even these things are true.
Then certainly the day for hoping is past.
I believed the case would be clear to her now. I thought it could not fail to be as
clear to her, and that she would say, herself, that there was no longer any ground for
hope. But I was mistaken; and disappointed also. She said, without any doubt in her tone:
France will rise again. You shall see.
Rise? - with this burden of English armies on her back!
She will cast it off; she will trample it under foot!
This with spirit.
Without soldiers to fight with?
The drums will summon them. They will answer, and they will march.
March to the rear, as usual?
No; to the front - ever to the front - always to the front! You shall see.
And the pauper King?
He will mount his throne - he will wear his crown.
Well, of a truth this makes ones head dizzy. Why, if I could believe that
in thirty years from now the English domination would be broken and the French
monarchs head find itself hooped with a real crown of sovereignty -
Both will have happened before two years are sped.
Indeed? and who is going to perform all these sublime impossibilities?
God.
It was a reverent low note, but it rang clear.
What could have put those strange ideas in her head? This question kept running in my
mind during two or three days. It was inevitable that I should think of madness. What
other way was there to account for such things? Grieving and brooding over the woes of
France had weakened that strong mind, and filled it with fantastic phantoms - yes, that
must be it.
But I watched her, and tested her, and it was not so. Her eye was clear and sane, her
ways were natural, her speech direct and to the point. No, there was nothing the matter
with her mind; it was still the soundest in the village, and the best. She went on
thinking for others, planning for others, sacrificing herself for others, just as always
before. She went on ministering to her sick and to her poor, and still stood ready to give
the wayfarer her bed and content herself with the floor. There was a secret somewhere, but
madness was not the key to it. This was plain.
Now the key did presently come into my hands, and the way that it happened was this.
You have heard all the world talk of this matter which I am about to speak of, but you
have not heard an eye-witness talk of it before.
I was coming from over the ridge, one day - it was May 15, 28 - and when I got to
the edge of the oak forest and was about to step out of it upon the turfy open space in
which the haunted beech-tree stood, I happened to cast a glance from cover first - then I
took a step backward, and stood in the shelter and concealment of the foliage. For I had
caught sight of Joan, and thought I would devise some sort of playful surprise for her.
Think of it - that trivial conceit was neighbour, with but a scarcely measurable interval
of time between, to an event destined to endure for ever in histories and songs.
The day was overcast, and all that grassy space wherein the Tree stood lay in a soft
rich shadow. Joan sat on a natural seat formed by gnarled great roots of the Tree. Her
hands lay loosely, one reposing in the other, in her lap. Her head was bent a little
toward the ground, and her air was that of one who is lost in thought, steeped in dreams,
and not conscious of herself or of the world. And now I saw a most strange thing, for I
saw a white shadow come slowly gliding along the grass toward the Tree. It was of
grand proportions - a robed form, with wings - and the whiteness of this shadow was not
like any other whiteness that we know of, except it be the whiteness of the lightnings;
but even the lightnings are not so intense as it was, for one can look at them without
hurt, whereas this brilliancy was so blinding that it pained my eyes and brought water
into them. I uncovered my head, perceiving that I was in the presence of something not of
this world. My breath grew faint and difficult, because of the terror and the awe that
possessed me.
Another strange thing. The wood had been silent - smitten with the deep stillness which
comes when a storm-cloud darkens a forest, and the wild creatures lose heart and are
afraid; but now all the birds burst forth in song, and the joy, the rapture, the ecstasy
of it was beyond belief; and was so eloquent and so moving, withal, that it was plain it
was an act of worship. With the first note of those birds Joan cast herself upon her
knees, and bent her head low and crossed her hands upon her breast.
She had not seen the shadow yet. Had the song of the birds told her it was
coming? It had that look to me. Then the like of this must have happened before. Yes,
there might be no doubt of that.
The shadow approached Joan slowly; the extremity of it reached her, flowed over her,
clothed her in its awful splendour. In that immortal light her face, only humanly
beautiful before, became divine; flooded with that transforming glory, her mean peasant
habit was become like to the raiment of the sun-clothed children of God as we see them
thronging the terraces of the Throne in our dreams and imaginings.
Presently she rose and stood, with her head still bowed a little, and with her arms
down and the ends of her fingers lightly laced together in front of her; and standing so,
all drenched with that wonderful light, and yet apparently not knowing it, she seemed to
listen - but I heard nothing. After a little she raised her head, and looked up as one
might look up toward the face of a giant, and then clasped her hands, and lifted them
high, imploringly, and began to plead. I heard some of the words. I heard her say -
But I am so young! oh, so young to leave my mother and my home, and go out into
the strange world to undertake a thing so great! Ah, how can I talk with men, be comrade
with men? - soldiers! It would give me over to insult, and rude usage, and contempt. How
can I go to the great wars, and lead armies? - I, a girl, and ignorant of such things,
knowing nothing of arms, nor how to mount a horse, nor ride it
Yet - if it is
commanded-'
Her voice sank a little, and was broken by sobs, and I made out no more of her words.
Then I came to myself. I reflected that I had been intruding upon a mystery of God - and
what might my punishment be? I was afraid, and went deeper into the wood. Then I carved a
mark in the bark of a tree, saying to myself, it may be that I am dreaming, and have not
seen this vision at all. I will come again, when I know that I am awake and not dreaming,
and see if this mark is still here; then I shall know.
Chapter 8
I heard my name called. It was Joans voice. It startled me, for how could she
know I was there? I said to myself, it is all part of the dream; it is all dream - voice,
vision and all; the fairies have done this. So I crossed myself and pronounced the name of
God, to break the enchantment. I knew I was awake now and free from the spell, for no
spell can withstand this exorcism. Then I heard my name called again, and I stepped at
once from under cover, and there indeed was Joan, but not looking as she had looked in the
dream. For she was not crying, now, but was looking as she had used to look a year and a
half before, when her heart was light and her spirits high. Her old-time energy and fire
were back, and a something like exaltation showed itself in her face and bearing. It was
almost as if she had been in a trance all that time and had come awake again. Really, it
was just as if she had been away and lost, and was come back to us at last; and I was so
glad that I felt like running to call everybody and have them flock around her and give
her welcome. I ran to her excited, and said -
Ah, Joan, Ive got such a wonderful thing to tell you about! You would never
imagine it. Ive had a dream, and in the dream I saw you right here where you are
standing now, and-
But she put up her hand and said -
It was not a dream.
It gave me a shock, and I began to feel afraid again.
Not a dream? I said, how can you know about it, Joan?
Are you dreaming now?
I - I suppose not. I think I am not.
Indeed you are not. I know you are not. And you were not dreaming when you cut
the mark in the tree.
I felt myself turning cold with fright, for now I knew of a certainty that I had not
been dreaming, but had really been in the presence of a dread something not of this world.
Then I remembered that my sinful feet were upon holy ground - the ground where that
celestial shadow had rested. I moved quickly away, smitten to the bones with fear. Joan
followed, and said -
Do not be afraid; indeed there is no need. Come with me. We will sit by the
spring and I will tell you my secret.
When she was ready to begin, I checked her and said -
First tell me this. You could not see me in the wood; how did you know I cut a
mark in the tree?
Wait a little; I will soon come to that; then you will see.
But tell me one thing now; what was that awful shadow that I saw?
I will tell you, but do not be disturbed; you are not in danger. It was the
shadow of an archangel - Michael, the chief and lord of the armies of heaven.
I could but cross myself and tremble for having polluted that ground with my feet.
You were not afraid, Joan? Did you see his face - did you see his form?
Yes; I was not afraid, because this was not the first time. I was afraid the
first time.
When was that, Joan?
It is nearly three years ago, now.
So long? Have you seen him many times?
Yes, many times.
It is this, then, that has changed you; it was this that made you thoughtful and
not as you were before. I see it now. why did you not tell us about it?
It was not permitted. It is permitted now, and soon I shall tell all. But only
you, now. It must remain a secret a few days still.
Has none seen that white shadow before but me?
No one. It has fallen upon me before when you and others were present, but none
could see it. Today it has been otherwise, and I was told why; but it will not be visible
again to any.
It was a sign to me, then - and a sign with a meaning of some kind?
Yes, but I may not speak of that.
Strange - that that dazzling light could rest upon an object before ones
eyes and not be visible.
With it comes speech, also. Several saints come, attended by myriads of angels,
and they speak to me; I hear their voices, but others do not. They are very dear to me -
my Voices; that is what I call them to myself.
Joan, what do they tell you?
All manner of things - about France I mean.
What things have been used to tell you?
She sighed, and said -
Disasters - only disasters, and misfortunes, and humiliations. There was naught
else to foretell.
They spoke of them to you beforehand?
Yes. So that I knew what was going to happen before it happened. It made me grave
- as you saw. It could not be otherwise. But always there was a word of hope, too. More
than that; France was to be rescued, and made great and free again. But how and by whom -
that was not told. Not until today. As she said those last words a sudden deep glow
shone in her eyes, which I was to see there many times in after-days when the bugles
sounded the charge and learn to call it the battle-light. Her Breast heaved, and the
colour rose in her face. But today I know. God has chosen the meanest of His
creatures for this work; and by His command, and in His protection, and by His strength,
not mine, I am to lead His armies, and win back France, and set the crown upon the head of
His servant that is Dauphin and shall be King.
I was amazed, and said -
You, Joan? You, a child, lead armies?
Yes. For one little moment or two the thought crushed me; for it is as you say -
I am only a child; a child and ignorant - ignorant of everything that pertains to war, and
not fitted for the rough life of camps and the companionship of soldiers. But those weak
moments passed; they will not come again. I am enlisted, I will not turn back, God helping
me, till the English grip is loosed from the throat of France. My Voices have never told
me lies, they have not lied today. They say I am to go to Robert de Baudricourt, governor
of Vaucouleurs, and he will give me men-at-arms for escort and send me to the King. A year
from now a blow will be struck which will be the beginning of the end, and the end will
follow swiftly.
Where will it be struck?
My Voices have not said; nor what will happen this present year, before it is
struck. It is appointed me to strike it, that is all I know; and follow it with others,
sharp and swift, undoing in ten weeks Englands long years of costly labour, and
setting the crown upon the Dauphins head, for such is Gods will; my Voices
have said it, and shall I doubt it? No; it will be as they have said, for they say only
that which is true.
These were tremendous sayings. They were impossibilities to my reason, but to my heart
they rang true; and so, while my reason doubted, my heart believed - believed, and held
fast to its belief from that day. Presently I said -
Joan, I believe the things which you have said, and now I am glad that I am to
march with you to the great wars - that is, if it is with you I am to march when I
go.
She looked surprised and said -
It is true that you will be with me when I go to the wars, but how did you
know?
I shall march with you, and so also will Jean and Pierre, but not Jacques.
All true - it is so ordered, as was revealed to me lately, but I did not know
until today that the marching would be with me, or that I should march at all. How did you
know these things?
I told her when it was that she said them. But she did not remember about it. So then I
knew that she had been asleep, or in a trance or an ecstasy of some kind at that time. she
bade me keep these and the other revelations to myself for the present, and I said I
would, and kept the faith I promised.
None who met Joan that day failed to notice the change that had come over her. She
moved and spoke with energy and decision; there was a strange new fire in her eye, and
also a something wholly new and remarkable in her carriage and in the set of her head.
This new light in her eye and this new bearing were born of the authority and leadership
which had this day been vested in her by the decree of God, and they asserted that
authority as plainly as speech could have done it, yet without ostentation or bravado.
This outward expression of it, remained with her thenceforth until her mission was
accomplished.
Like the other villagers, she had always accorded me the deference due to my rank; but
now, without word said on either side, she and I changed places: she gave orders, not
suggestions, I received them with the deference due to a superior, and obeyed them without
comment. In the evening she said to me -
I leave before dawn. No one will know it but you. I go to speak with the governor
of Vaucouleurs as commanded, who will despise me and treat me rudely, and perhaps refuse
my prayer at this time. I go first to Burey, to persuade my uncle Laxart to go with me, it
not being meet that I go alone. I may need you in Vaucouleurs; for if the governor will
not receive me I will dictate a letter to him, and so must have some one by me who knows
the art of how to write and spell the words. You will go there from here tomorrow in the
afternoon, and remain in Vaucouleurs until I need you.
I said I would obey, and she went her way. You see how clear a head she had, and what a
just and level judgement. She did not order me to go with her; no, she would not subject
her good name to gossiping remark. She knew that the governor, being a noble, would grant
me, another noble, audience; but no, you see, she would not have that either. A poor
peasant girl presenting a petition through a young nobleman - how would that look? She
always protected her modesty from hurt; and so, for reward, she carried her good name
unsmirched to the end. I knew what I must do, now, if I would have her approval: go to
Vaucouleurs, keep out of her sight, and be ready when wanted.
I went the next afternoon, and took an obscure lodging; the next day I called at the
castle and paid my respects to the governor, who invited me to dine with him at noon of
the following day. He was an ideal soldier of the time; tall, brawny, gray-headed, rough,
full of strange oaths acquired here and there and yonder in the wars and treasured as if
they were decorations. He had been used to the camp all his life, and to his notion war
was Gods best gift to man. He had his steel cuirass on, and wore boots that came
above his knees, and was equipped with a huge sword; and when I looked at this martial
figure, and heard the marvellous oaths and guessed how little of poetry and sentiment
might be looked for in this quarter, I hoped the little peasant girl would not get the
privilege of confronting this battery, but would have to content herself with the dictated
letter.
I came again to the castle the next day at noon, and was conducted to the great
dining-hall and seated by the side of the governor at a small table which was raised a
couple of steps higher than the general table. At the small table sat several other guests
besides myself, and at the general table sat the chief officers of the garrison. At the
entrance door stood a guard of halberdiers, in morion and breastplate.
As for talk, there was but one topic, of course - the desperate situation of France.
There was a rumour, someone said, that Salisbury was making preparations to march against
Orleans. It raised a turmoil of excited conversation, and opinions fell thick and fast.
Some believed he would march at once, others that he could not accomplish the investment
before fall, others that the siege would be long, and bravely contested; but upon one
thing all voices agreed: that Orleans must eventually fall, and with it France. With that,
the prolonged discussion ended, and there was silence. Every man seemed to sink himself in
his own thoughts, and to forget where he was. This sudden and profound stillness, where
before had been so much animation, was impressive and solemn. Now came a servant and
whispered something to the governor, who said -
Would talk with me?
Yes, your Excellency.
Hm! A strange idea, certainly. Bring them in.
It was Joan and her uncle Laxart. At the spectacle of the great people the courage
oozed out of the poor old peasant, and he stopped midway and would come no further, but
remained there with his red night cap crushed in his hands and bowing humbly here, there
and everywhere, stupefied with embarrassment and fear. But Joan came steadily forward,
erect and self-possessed, and stood before the governor. She recognised me, but in no way
indicated it. There was a buzz of admiration, even the governor contributing to it, for I
heard him utter, By Gods grace, it is a beautiful creature! he inspected
her critically a moment or two, then said -
Well, what is your errand, my child?
My message is to you, Robert de Baudricourt, governor of Vaucouleurs, and it is
this: that you will send and tell the Dauphin to wait and not give battle to his enemies,
for God will presently send him help.
This strange speech amazed the company, and many murmured, The poor young thing
is demented. The governor scowled, and said -
What nonsense is this? The King - or the Dauphin, as you call him - needs no
message of that sort. He will wait - give yourself no uneasiness as to that. What
further do you desire to say to me?
This. To beg that you will give me an escort of men-at-arms and send me to the
Dauphin.
What for?
That he may make me his general, for it is appointed that I shall drive the
English out of France, and set the crown upon his head.
What - you? Why, you are but a child!
Yet am I appointed to do it, nevertheless.
Indeed? And when will all this happen?
Next year he will be crowned, and after will remain master of France.
There was a great and general burst of laughter, and when it had subsided the governor
said -
Who has sent you with these extravagant messages?
My Lord.
What Lord?
The King of Heaven.
Many murmured. Ah, poor thing, poor thing! and others, Ah, her mind
is but a wreck! The governor hailed Laxart, and said -
Harkye! - take this mad child home and whip her soundly. That is the best cure
for her ailment.
As Joan was moving away she turned and said with simplicity -
You refuse me the soldiers, I know not why, for it is my Lord that has commanded
you. Yes, it is He that has made the command; therefore must I come again, and yet again:
then I shall have the men-at-arms.
There was a great deal of wondering talk, after she was gone; and the guards and
servants passed the talk to the town, the town passed it to the country; Domremy was
already buzzing with it when we got back.
Chapter 9
Human nature is the same everywhere: it deifies success, it has nothing but scorn for
defeat. The village considered that Joan had disgraced it with her grotesque performance
and its ridiculous failure; so all the tongues were busy with the matter, and as bilious
and bitter as they were busy; insomuch that if the tongues had been teeth she would not
have survived her persecutions. Those persons who did not scold, did what was worse and
harder to bear; for they ridiculed her, and mocked at her, and ceased neither day nor
night from their witticisms and jeerings and laughter. Haumette and Little Mengette and I
stood by her, but the storm was too strong for her other friends, and they avoided her,
being ashamed to be seen with her because she was so unpopular, and because of the sting
of the taunts that assailed them on her account. She shed tears in secret, but none in
public. In public she carried herself with serenity, and showed no distress, nor any
resentment - conduct which should have softened the feeling against her, but it did not.
Her father was so incensed that he could not talk in measured terms about her wild project
of going to the wars like a man. He had dreamed of her doing such a thing, some time
before, and now he remembered that dream with apprehension and anger, and said that rather
than see her unsex herself and go away with the armies, he would require her brothers to
drown her; and that if they should refuse, he would do it with his own hands.
But none of these things shook her purpose in the least. Her parents kept a strict
watch upon her to keep her from leaving the village, but she said her time was not yet;
that when the time to go was come she should know it, and then the keepers would watch in
vain.
The summer wasted along; and when it was seen that her purpose continued steadfast, the
parents were glad of a chance which finally offered itself for bringing her projects to an
end through marriage. The Paladin had the effrontery to pretend that she had engaged
herself to him several years before, and now he claimed a ratification of the engagement.
She said his statement was not true, and refused to marry him. She was cited to appear
before the ecclesiastical court at Toul to answer for her perversity; when she declined to
have counsel, and elected to conduct her case herself, her parents and all her ill-wishers
rejoiced, and looked upon her as already defeated. And that was natural enough; for who
would expect that an ignorant peasant-girl of sixteen would be otherwise than frightened
and tongue-tied when standing for the first time in presence of the practised doctors of a
court? Yet all these people were mistaken. They flocked to Toul to see and enjoy this
fright and embarrassment and defeat, and they had their trouble for their pains. She was
modest, tranquil, and quite at her ease. She called no witnesses, saying she would content
herself with examining the witnesses for the prosecution. When they had testified, she
rose and reviewed their testimony in a few words, pronounced it vague, confused, and of no
force, then she placed the Paladin again on the stand and began to search him. His
previous testimony went rag by rag to ruin under her ingenious hands, until at last he
stood bare, so to speak, he that had come so richly clothed in fraud and falsehood. His
counsel began an argument, but the court declined to hear it, and threw out the case,
adding a few words of grave compliment for Joan, and referring to her as this
marvellous child.
After this victory, with this high praise from so imposing a source added, the fickle
village turned again, and gave Joan countenance, compliment, and peace. Her mother took
her back to her heart, and even her father relented and said he was proud of her. But the
time hung heavy on her hands, nevertheless, for the siege of Orleans was begun, the clouds
lowered darker and darker over France, and still her Voices said wait, and gave her no
direct commands. The winter set in, and wore tediously along; but at last there was a
change.
Book 2
Chapter 1
The 5th of January, 1429, Joan came to me with her uncle Laxart, and said -
The time is come. My Voices are not vague now, but clear, and they have told me
what to do. In two months I shall be with the Dauphin.
Her spirits were high, and her bearing martial. I caught the infection, and felt a
great impulse stirring in me that was like what one feels when he hears the roll of the
drums and the tramp of marching men.
I believe it, I said.
I also believe it, said Laxart. If she had told me before that she
was commanded of God to rescue France, I should not have believed; I should have let her
seek the governor by her own ways and held myself clear of meddling in the matter, not
doubting she was mad. But I have seen her stand before those nobles and mighty men
unafraid, and say her say; and she has not been able to do that but by the help of God.
That I know. Therefore with all humbleness I am at her command, to do with me as she
will.
My uncle is very good to me, Joan said. I sent and asked him to come
and persuade my mother to let him take me home with him to tend his wife, who is not well.
It is arranged, and we go at dawn tomorrow. From his house I shall go soon to Vaucouleurs,
and wait and strive until my prayer is granted. Who were the two cavaliers who sat to your
left at the governors table that day?
One was the Sieur Jean de Novelonpont de Metz, the other the Sieur Bertrand de
Poulengy.
Good metal - good metal, both. I marked them for men of mine... What is it I see
in your face? Doubt?
I was teaching myself to speak the truth to her, not trimming it or polishing it; so I
said -
They considered you out of your head, and said so. It is true they pitied you for
being in such misfortune, but still they held you to be mad.
This did not seem to trouble her in any way or wound her. She only said -
The wise change their minds when they perceive that they have been in error.
These will. They will march with me. I shall see them presently... You seem to doubt
again? Do you doubt?
N-no. Not now, I was remembering that it was a year ago, and that they did not
belong there, but only chanced to stop a day on their journey.
They will come again. But as to matters now in hand; I came to leave with you some
instructions. You will follow me in a few days. Order your affairs, for you will be absent
long.
Will Jean and Pierre go with me?
No; they would refuse now, but presently they will come, and with them they will
bring my parents blessing, and likewise their consent that I take up my mission. I
shall be stronger then - stronger for that; for lack of it I am weak now. She
paused a little while, and the tears gathered in her eyes; then she went on: I would
say goodbye to Little Mengette. Bring her outside the village at dawn; she must go with me
a little of the way-
And Haumette?
She broke down and began to cry, saying -
No, oh, no - she is too dear to me; I could not bear it, knowing I should never
look upon her face again.
Next morning I brought Mengette, and we four walked along the road in the cold dawn
till the village was far behind; then the two girls said their goodbyes, clinging about
each others neck, and pouring out their grief in loving words and tears, a pitiful
sight to see. And Joan took one long look back upon the distant village, and the Fairy
Tree, and the oak forest, and the flowery plain, and the river, as if she was trying to
print these scenes on her memory so that they would abide there always and not fade, for
she knew she would not see them any more in this life; then she turned, and went from us,
sobbing bitterly. It was her birthday and mine. She was seventeen years old.
Chapter 2
After a few days, Laxart took Joan to Vaucouleurs, and found lodging and guardianship
with Catherine Royer, a wheelwrights wife, an honest and good woman. Joan went to
mass regularly, she helped do the housework, earning her keep in that way, and if any
wished to talk with her about her mission - and many did - she talked freely, making no
concealments regarding the matter now. I was soon housed near by, and witnessed the
effects which followed. At once the tidings spread that a young girl was come who was
appointed of God to save France. The common people flocked in crowds to look at her and
speak with her, and her fair young loveliness won the half of their belief, and her deep
earnestness and transparent sincerity won the other half. The well-to-do remained away and
scoffed, but that is their way.
Next, a prophecy of Merlins, more than eight hundred years old, was called to
mind, which said that in a far future time France would be lost by a woman and restored by
a woman. France was now, for the first time, lost - and by a woman, Isabel of Bavaria, her
base Queen; doubtless this fair and pure young girl was commissioned of Heaven to complete
the prophecy.
This gave the growing interest a new and powerful impulse; the excitement rose higher
and higher, and hope and faith along with it; and so from Vaucouleurs wave after wave of
this inspiring enthusiasm flowed out over the land, far and wide, invading all the
villages and refreshing and revivifying the perishing children of France; and from these
villages came people who wanted to see for themselves, hear for themselves; and they did
see and hear, and believe. They filled the town; they more than filled it; inns and
lodgings were packed, and yet half of the inflow had to go without shelter. And still they
came, winter as it was, for when a mans soul is starving, what does he care for meat
and roof so he can but get that nobler hunger fed? Day after day, and still day after day,
the great tide rose. Domremy was dazed, amazed, stupefied, and said to itself, Was
this world-wonder in our familiar midst all these years and we too dull to see it?
Jean and Pierre went out from the village stared at and envied like the great and
fortunate of the earth, and their progress to Vaucouleurs was like a triumph, all the
country side flocking to see and salute the brothers of one with whom the angels had
spoken face to face, and into whose hands by command of God they had delivered the
destinies of France.
The brothers brought the parents blessing and God-speed to Joan, and their
promise to bring it to her in person later; and so, with this culminating happiness in her
heart and the high hope it inspired, she went and confronted the governor again. But he
was no more tractable than he had been before. He refused to send her to the King. She was
disappointed, but in no degree discouraged. She said -
I must still come to you until I get the men-at-arms; for so it is commanded, and
I may not disobey. I must go to the Dauphin, though I go on my knees.
I and the two brothers were with Joan daily, to see the people that came and hear what
they said; and one day, sure enough, the Sieur Jean the Metz came. He talked with her in a
petting and playful way, as one talks with children, and said -
What are you doing here, my little maid? Will they drive the King out of France,
and shall we all turn English?
She answered him in her tranquil, serious way -
I am come to bid Robert de Baudricourt take or send me to the King, but he does
not heed my words.
Ah, you have an admirable persistence, truly; a whole year has not turned you
from your wish. I saw you when you came before.
Joan said, as tranquilly as before -
It is not a wish, it is a purpose. He will grant it. I can wait.
Ah, perhaps it will not be wise to make too sure of that, my child.
These governors are stubborn people to deal with. In case he shall not grant your prayer
-'
He will grant it. He must. It is not matter of choice.
The gentlemans playful mood began to disappear - one could see that by his face.
Joans earnestness was affecting him. It always happened that people who began in
jest with her, ended by being earnest. They soon began to perceive depths in her that they
had not suspected; and then her manifest sincerity and the rocklike steadfastness of her
convictions were forces which cowed levity, and it could not maintain its self-respect in
their presence. The Sieur de Metz was thoughtful for a moment or two, then he began, quite
soberly -
Is it necessary that you go to the King soon? - that is, I mean -
Before Mid-Lent, even though I wear away my legs to the knees!
She said it with that sort of repressed fieriness that means so much when a
persons heart is in a thing. You could see the response in that noblemans
face; you could see his eye light up; there was sympathy there. He said, most earnestly -
God knows I think you should have the men-at-arms, and that somewhat would come
of it. What is it that you would do? What is your hope and purpose?
To rescue France. And it is appointed that I shall do it. For no one else in the
world, neither kings nor dukes, not any other, can recover the kingdom of France, and
there is no help but in me.
The words had a pleading and pathetic sound, and they touched that good nobleman. I saw
it plainly. Joan dropped her voice a little, and said: But indeed I would rather
spin with my poor mother, for this is not my calling; but I must go and do it, for it is
my Lords will.
Who is your Lord?
He is God.
Then the Sieur de Metz, following the impressive old feudal fashion, knelt and laid his
hands within Joans, in sign of fealty, and made oath that by Gods help he
himself would take her to the King.
The next day came the Sieur Bertrand de Poulengy, and he also pledged his oath and
knightly honour to abide with her and follow whithersoever she might lead.
This day, too, toward evening, a great rumour went flying abroad through the town -
namely, that the very governor himself was going to visit the young girl in her humble
lodgings. So in the morning the streets and lanes were packed with people waiting to see
if this strange thing would indeed happen. And happen it did. The governor rose in state,
attended by his guards, and the news of it went everywhere, and made a great sensation,
and modified the scoffings of the people of quality and raised Joans credit higher
than ever.
The governor had made up his mind to one thing: Joan was either a witch or a saint, and
he meant to find out which it was. So he brought a priest with him to exorcise the devil
that was in her, in case there was one there. The priest performed his office, but found
no devil. He merely hurt Joans feelings and offended her piety without need, for he
had already confessed her before this, and should have known, if he knew anything, that
devils cannot abide the confessional, but utter cries of anguish and the most profane and
furious cursings whenever they are confronted with that holy office.
The governor went away troubled and full of thought, and not knowing what to do. And
while he pondered and studied, several days went by and the 14th of February was come.
Then Joan went to the castle and said -
In Gods name, Robert de Baudricourt, you are too slow about sending me, and
have caused damage thereby, for this day the Dauphins cause lost a battle near
Orleans, and will suffer yet greater injury if you do not send me to him soon.
The governor was perplexed by this speech, and said -
Today, child, today? How can you know what has happened in that region
today? It would take eight or ten days for the word to come.
My Voices have brought the word to me, and it is true. A battle was lost today,
and you are in fault to delay me so.
The governor walked the floor a while, talking within himself, but letting a great oath
fall outside now and then; and finally he said -
Harkye! go in peace and wait. If it shall turn out as you say, I will give you
the letter and send you to the King, and not otherwise.
Joan said with fervour -
Now God be thanked, these waiting days are almost done. In nine days you will
fetch me the letter.
Already the people of Vaucouleurs had given her a horse and had armed and equipped her
as a soldier. She got no chance to try the horse and see if she could ride it, for her
great first duty was to abide at her post and lift up the hopes and spirits of all who
would come to talk with her, and prepare them to help in the rescue and regeneration of
the kingdom. This occupied every waking moment she had. But it was no matter. There was
nothing she could not learn - and in the briefest time, too. Her horse would find this out
in the first hour. Meantime the brothers and I took the horse in turn and began to learn
to ride. And we had teaching in the use of the sword and other arms, also.
On the 20th Joan called her small army together - the two knights and her two brothers
and me - for a private council of war. No, it was not a council - that is not the right
name, for she did not consult with us, she merely gave us orders. She mapped out the
course she would travel toward the King, and did it like a person perfectly versed in
geography; and this itinerary of daily marches was so arranged as to avoid here and there
peculiarly dangerous regions by flank movements - which showed that she knew her political
geography as intimately as she knew her physical geography; yet she had never had a
days schooling, of course, and was without education. I was astonished, but thought
her Voices must have taught her. But upon reflection I saw that this was not so. By her
references to what this and that and the other person had told her, I perceived that she
had been diligently questioning those crowds of visiting strangers, and that out of them
she had patiently dug all this mass of invaluable knowledge. The two knights were filled
with wonder at her good sense and sagacity.
She commanded us to make preparations to travel by night and sleep by day in
concealment, as almost the whole of our long journey would be through the enemys
country.
Also, she commanded that we should keep the date of our departure a secret, since she
meant to get away unobserved. Otherwise we should be sent off with a grand demonstration
which would advertise us to the enemy, and we should be ambushed and captured somewhere.
Finally she said -
Nothing remains, now, but that I confide to you the date of our departure, so
that you may make all needful preparation in time, leaving nothing to be done in haste and
badly at the last moment. We march the 23rd, at eleven of the clock at night.
Then we were dismissed. The two knights were startled - yes, and troubled; and the
Sieur Bertrand said -
Even if the governor shall really furnish the letter and the escort, he still may
not do it in time to meet the date she has chosen. Then how can she venture to name that
date? It is a great risk - a great risk to select and decide upon the date, in this state
of uncertainty.
I said -
Since she has named the 23rd, we may trust her. The Voices have told her, I
think. We shall do best to obey.
We did obey. Joans parents were notified to come before the 23rd, but prudence
forbade that they be told why this limit was named.
All day, the 23rd, she glanced up wistfully whenever new bodies of strangers entered
the house, but her parents did not appear. Still she was not discouraged, but hoped on.
But when night fell, at last, her hopes perished, and the tears came; however, she dashed
them away, and said -
It was to be so, no doubt; no doubt it was so ordered; I must bear it, and
will.
De Metz tried to comfort her by saying -
The governor sends no word; it may be that they will come tomorrow, and -
He got no further, for she interrupted him, saying -
To what good end? We start at eleven tonight.
And it was so. At ten the governor came, with his guard and torch bearers, and
delivered to her a mounted escort of men-at-arms, with horses and equipments for me and
for the brothers, and gave Joan a letter to the King. Then he took off his sword, and
belted it about her waist with his own hands, and said -
You said true child. The battle was lost, on the day you said. So I have
kept my word. Now go - come of it what may.
Joan gave him thanks, and he went his way.
The lost battle was the famous disaster that is called in history the Battle of the
Herrings.
All the lights in the house were at once put out, and a little while after, when the
streets had become dark and still, we crept stealthily through them and out at the western
gate and rode away under whip and spur.
Chapter 3
We were twenty-five strong, and well-equipped. We rode in double file, Joan and her
brothers in the centre of the column, with Jean de Metz at the head of it and the Sieur
Bertrand at its extreme rear. The knights were so placed to prevent desertions - for the
present. In two or three hours we should be in the enemys country, and then none
would venture to desert. By-and-by we began to hear groans and sobs and execrations from
different points along the line, and upon inquiry found that six of our men were peasants
who had never ridden a horse before, and were finding it very difficult to stay in their
saddles, and moreover were now beginning to suffer considerable bodily torture. They had
been seized by the governor at the last moment and pressed into the service to make up the
tale, and he had placed a veteran alongside of each with orders to help him stick to the
saddle, and kill him if he tried to desert.
These poor devils had kept quiet as long as they could, but their physical miseries
were become so sharp by this time that they were obliged to give them vent. But we were
within the enemys country now, so there was no help for them; they must continue the
march, though Joan said that if they chose to take the risk they might depart. They
preferred to stay with us. We modified our pace now, and moved cautiously, and the new men
were warned to keep their sorrows to themselves and not get the command into danger with
their curses and lamentations.
Toward dawn we rode deep into a forest, and soon all but the sentries were sound asleep
in spite of the cold ground and the frosty air.
I woke at noon out of such a solid and stupefying sleep that at first my wits were all
astray, and I did not know where I was nor what had been happening. Then my senses
cleared, and I remembered. As I lay there thinking over the strange events of the past
month or two the thought came into my mind, greatly surprising me, that one of Joans
prophecies had failed; for where were Noël and the Paladin, who were to join us at the
eleventh hour? By this time, you see, I had gotten used to expecting everything Joan said
to come true. So, being disturbed and troubled by these thought, I opened my eyes. Well,
there stood the Paladin leaning against a tree and looking down on me! How often that
happens: you think of a person, or speak of a person, and there he stands before you, and
you not dreaming he is near. It looks as if his being near is really the thing
that makes you think of him, and not just an accident, as people imagine. Well, be that as
it may, there was the Paladin, anyway, looking down in my face and waiting for me to wake.
I was ever so glad to see him, and jumped up and shook him by the hand, and led him a
little way from the camp - he limping like a cripple - and told him to sit down, and said
-
Now, where have you dropped down from? And how did you happen to light in this
place? And what do the soldier-clothes mean? Tell me all about it.
He answered -
I marched with you last night.
No! (To myself I said, The prophecy has not all failed - half of it
has come true.)
Yes, I did. I hurried up from Domremy to join, and was within a half minute of
being too late. In fact, I was too late, but I begged so hard that the governor was
touched by my brave devotion to my countrys cause - those are the words he used -
and so he yielded, and allowed me to come.
I thought to myself, this is a lie; he is one of those six the governor recruited by
force at the last moment; I know it, for Joans prophecy said he would join at the
eleventh hour, but not by his own desire. Then I said aloud -
I am glad you came; it is a noble cause, and one should not sit at home in times
like these.
Sit at home! I could no more do it than the thunder stone could stay hid in the
clouds when the storm calls it.
That is the right talk. It sounds like you.
That pleased him.
Im glad you know me. Some dont. But they will, presently. They will
know me well enough before I get done with this war.
That is what I think. I believe that wherever danger confronts you you will make
yourself conspicuous.
He was charmed with this speech, and it swelled him up like a bladder. He said -
If I know myself - and I think I do - my performances in this campaign will give
you occasion more than once to remember those words.
I were a fool to doubt it. That, I know.
I shall not be at my best, being but a common soldier; still, the country will
hear of me. If I were where I belong; if I were in the place of La Hire, or Saintrailles,
of the Bastard of Orleans - well, I say nothing, I am not of the talking kind, like Noël
Rainguesson and his sort, I thank God. But it will be something I take it - a
novelty in this world, I should say - to raise the fame of a private soldier above theirs,
and extinguish the glory of their names with its shadow.
Why, look here, my friend, I said, do you know that you have hit out
a most remarkable idea there? Do you realise the gigantic proportions of it? For look you:
to be a general of vast renown, what is that? Nothing - history is clogged and confused
with them; one cannot keep their names in his memory, there are so many. But a common
soldier of supreme renown - why, he would stand alone! He would be the one moon in a
firmament of mustard-seed stars; his name would outlast the human race! My friend, who
gave you that idea?
He was ready to burst with happiness, but he suppressed betrayal of it as well as he
could. He simply waved the compliment aside with his hand and said, with complacency -
It is nothing. I have them often - ideas like that - and even greater ones. I do
not consider this one much.
You astonish me; you do indeed. So it is really your own?
Quite. And there is plenty more where it came from - tapping his head with
his finger, and taking occasion at the same time to cant his morion over his right ear,
which gave him a very self-satisfied air- I do not need to borrow my ideas, like
Noël Rainguesson.
Speaking of Noël, when did you see him last?
Half an hour ago. He is sleeping yonder like a corpse. Rode with us last
night.
I felt a great upleap in my heart, and said to myself, now I am at rest and glad; I
will never doubt her prophecies again. Then I said aloud -
It gives me great joy. It makes me proud of our village. There is no keeping our
lion-hearts at home in these great times, I see that.
Lion-heart! Who - that baby? Why, he begged like a dog to be let off. Cried, and
said he wanted to go to his mother. Him a lion-heart! - that tumble-bug!
Dear me, why I supposed he volunteered, of course. Didnt he?
Oh, yes, volunteered the way people do to the headsman. Why, when he found I was
coming up from Domremy to volunteer, he asked me to let him come along in my protection,
and see the crowds and the excitement. Well, we arrived and saw the torches filing out at
the Castle, and ran there, and the governor had him seized, along with four more, and he
begged to be let off, and I begged for his place, and at last the governor allowed me to
join, but wouldnt let Noël off, because he was disgusted with him, he was such a
cry-baby. Yes, and much good hell do the Kings service: hell
eat for six and run for sixteen. I hate a pigmy with half a heart and nine stomachs!
Why, this is very surprising news to me, and I am sorry and disappointed to hear
it. I thought he was a very manly fellow.
The Paladin gave me an outraged look, and said:
I dont see how you can talk like that, Im sure I dont. I
dont see how you could have got such a notion. I dont dislike him, and
Im not saying these things out of prejudice, for I dont allow myself to have
prejudices against people. I like him, and have always comraded with him from the cradle,
but he must allow me to speak my mind about his faults, and I am willing he shall speak
his about mine, if I have any. And true enough, maybe I have; but I reckon theyll
bear inspection - I have that idea, anyway. A manly fellow! You should have heard him
whine and wail and swear, last night, because the saddle hurt him. Why didnt the
saddle hurt me? Pooh - I was as much at home in it as if I had been born there. And yet it
was the first time I was ever on a horse. All those old soldiers admired my riding; they
said they had never seen anything like it. But him - why, they had to hold him on, all the
time.
An odour as of breakfast came stealing through the wood; the Paladin unconsciously
inflated his nostrils in lustful response, and got up and limped painfully away, saying he
must go and look to his horse.
At bottom he was all right and a good-hearted giant, without any harm in him, for it is
no harm to bark, if one stops there and does not bite, and it is no harm to be an ass, if
one is content to bray and not kick. If this vast structure of brawn and muscle and vanity
and foolishness seemed to have a libellous tongue, what of it? There was no malice behind
it; and besides, the defect was not of his own creation; it was the work of Noël
Rainguesson, who had nurtured it, fostered it, built it up and perfected it, for the
entertainment he got out of it. His careless light heart had to have somebody to nag and
chaff and make fun of; the Paladin had only needed development in order to meet his
requirements, consequently the development was taken in hand and diligently attended to
and looked after, gnat-and-bull fashion, for years, to the neglect and damage of far more
important concerns. The result was an unqualified success. Noël prized the society of the
Paladin above everybody elses; the Paladin preferred anybodys to Noëls.
The big fellow was often seen with the little fellow, but it was for the same reason that
the bull is often seen with the gnat.
With the first opportunity, I had a talk with Noël. I welcomed him to our expedition,
and said -
It was fine and brave of you to volunteer, Noël.
His eye twinkled, and he answered -
Yes, it was rather fine I think. Still, the credit doesnt all belong to me;
I had help.
Who helped you?
The governor.
How?
Well, Ill tell you the whole thing. I came up from Domremy to see the
crowds and the general show, for I hadnt ever had any experience of such things, of
course, and this was a great opportunity; but I hadnt any mind to volunteer. I
overtook the Paladin on the road and let him have my company the rest of the way, although
he did not want it and said so; and while we were gawking and blinking in the glare of the
governors torches they seized us and four more and added us to the escort, and that
is really how I came to volunteer. But after all, I wasnt sorry, remembering how
dull life would have been in the village without the Paladin.
How did he feel about it? Was he satisfied?
I think he was glad.
Why?
Because he said he wasnt. He was taken by surprise, you see, and it is not
likely that he could tell the truth without preparation. Not that he would have prepared,
if he had had the chance, for I do not think he would. I am not charging him with that. In
the same space of time that he could prepare to speak the truth, he could also prepare to
lie; besides, his judgement would be too cool then, and would warn him against fooling
with new methods in an emergency. No, I am sure he was glad, because he said he
wasnt.
Do you think he was very glad?
Yes, I know he was. He begged like a slave, and bawled for his mother. He said
his health was delicate, and he didnt know how to ride a horse, and knew he
couldnt outlive the first march. But really he wasnt looking as delicate as he
was feeling. There was a cask of wine there, a proper life for four men. The
governors temper got afire, and he delivered an oath at him that knocked up the dust
where it struck the ground, and told him to shoulder that cask or he would carve him to
cutlets and send him home in a basket. The Paladin did it, and that secured his promotion
to a privacy in the escort without any further debate.
Yes, you seem to make it quite plain that he was glad to join - that is, if your
premises are right that you start from. How did he stand the march last night?
About as I did. If he made the more noise, it was the privilege of his bulk. We
stayed in our saddles because we had help. We are equally lame today. And if he likes to
sit down, let him; I prefer to stand.
Chapter 4
We were called to quarters and subjected to a searching inspection by Joan. Then she
made a short little talk in which she said that even the rude business of war could be
conducted better without profanity and other brutalities of speech than with them, and
that she should strictly require us to remember and apply this admonition. She ordered
half an hours horsemanship-drill for the novices then, and appointed one of the
veterans to conduct it. It was a ridiculous exhibition, but we learned something, and Joan
was satisfied and complemented us. She did not take any instruction herself or go through
the evolutions and manoeuvres, but merely sat her horse like a martial little statue and
looked on. That was sufficient for her, you see. She would not miss or forget a detail of
the lesson, she would take it all in with her eye and her mind, and apply it afterward
with as much certainty and confidence as if she had already practised it.
We now made three night-marches of twelve or thirteen leagues each, riding in peace and
undisturbed, being taken for a roving band of Free Companions. Countryfolk were glad to
have that sort of people go by without stopping. Still, they were very wearing marches,
and not comfortable, for the bridges were few and the streams many, and as we had to ford
them we found the water dismally cold, and afterward had to bed ourselves, still wet, on
frosty or snowy ground, and get warm as we might and sleep if we could, for it would not
have been prudent to build fires. Our energies languished under these hardships and deadly
fatigues, but Joans did not. Her step kept its spring and firmness and her eye its
fire. We could only wonder at this, we could not explain it.
But if we had hard times before, I know not what to call the five nights that now
followed, for the marches were as fatiguing, the baths as cold, and we were ambuscaded
seven times in addition, and lost two novices and three veterans in the resulting fights.
The news had leaked out and gone abroad that the inspired Virgin of Vaucouleurs was making
for the King with an escort, and all the roads were being watched now.
These five nights disheartened the command a good deal. This was aggravated by a
discovery which Noël made, and which he promptly made known at headquarters. Some of the
men had been trying to understand why Joan continued to be alert, vigorous, and confident
while the strongest men in the company were fagged with the heavy marches and exposure and
were become morose and irritable. There, it shows you how men can have eyes and yet not
see. All their lives those men had seen their own womenfolks hitched up with a cow and
dragging the plough in the fields while the men did the driving. They had also seen other
evidences that women have far more endurance and patience and fortitude than men - but
what good had their seeing these things been to them? None. It had taught them nothing.
They were still surprised to see a girl of seventeen bear the fatigues of war better than
trained veterans of the army. Moreover, they did not reflect that a great soul, with a
great purpose, can make a weak body strong and keep it so; and here was the greatest soul
in the universe; but how could they know that, those dumb creatures? No, they knew
nothing, and their reasonings were of a piece with their ignorance. They argued and
discussed among themselves, with Noël listening, and arrived at the decision that Joan
was a witch, and had her strange pluck and strength from Satan; so they made a plan to
watch for a safe opportunity and take her life.
To have secret plottings of this sort going on in our midst was a very serious
business, of course, and the knights asked Joans permission to hang the plotters,
but she refused without hesitancy. She said:
'Neither these men nor any others can take my life before my mission is accomplished,
therefore why should I have their blood upon my hands? I will inform them of this, and
also admonish them. Call them before me.
When they came she made that statement to them in a plain matter-of-fact way, and just
as if the thought never entered her mind that any one could doubt it after she had given
her word that it was true. The men were evidently amazed and impressed to hear her say
such a thing in such a sure and confident way, for prophecies boldly uttered never fall
barren on superstitious ears. Yes, this speech certainly impressed them, but her closing
remark impressed them still more. It was for the ringleader, and Joan said it sorrowfully
-
It is a pity that you should plot anothers death when your own is so close
at hand.
That mans horse stumbled and fell on him in the first ford which we crossed that
night, and he drowned before we could help him. We had no more conspiracies.
This night was harassed with ambuscades, but we got through without having any men
killed. One more night would carry us over the hostile frontier if we had good luck, and
we saw the night close down with a good deal of solicitude. Always before, we had been
more or less reluctant to start out into the gloom and the silence to be frozen in the
fords and persecuted by the enemy, but this time we were impatient to get under way and
have it over, although there was promise of more and harder fighting than any of the
previous nights had furnished. Moreover, in front of us about three leagues there was a
deep stream with a frail wooden bridge over it, and as a cold rain mixed with snow had
been falling steadily all day we were anxious to find out whether we were in a trap or
not. If the swollen stream had washed away the bridge, we might properly consider
ourselves trapped and cut off from escape.
As soon as it was dark we filed out from the depths of the forest where we had hidden
and began the march. From the time that we had begun to encounter ambushes Joan had ridden
at the head of the column, and she took this post now. By the time we had gone a league
the rain and snow had turned to sleet, and under the impulse of the stormwind it lashed my
face like whips, and I envied Joan and the knights who could close their visors and shut
up their heads in their helmets as in a box. Now, out of the pitchy darkness and close at
hand, came the sharp command -
Halt!
We obeyed. I made out a dim mass in front of us which might be a body of horsemen, but
one could not be sure. A man rode up and said to Joan in a tone of reproof -
Well, you have taken your time, truly. And what have you found out? Is she still
behind us, or in front?
Joan answered in a level voice -
She is still behind.
This news softened the strangers tone. He said -
If you know that to be true, you have not lost you time, Captain. But are you
sure? How do you know?
Because I have seen her.
Seen her! Seen the Virgin herself?
Yes, I have been in her camp.
Is it possible! Captain Raymond, I ask you to pardon me for speaking in that tone
just now. You have performed a daring and admirable service. Where was she camped?
In the forest, not more than a league from here.
Good! I was afraid we might be still behind her, but now that we know she is
behind us, everything is safe. She is our game. We will hang her. You shall hang her
yourself. No one has so well earned the privilege of abolishing this pestilent limb of
Satan.
I do not know how to thank you sufficiently. If we catch her, I -
If! I will take care of that; give yourself no uneasiness. All I want is just a
look at her, to see what the imp is like that has been able to make all this noise, then
you and the halter may have her. How many men has she?
I counted but eighteen, but she may have had two or three pickets out.
Is that all? It wont be a mouthful for my force. Is it true that she is
only a girl?
Yes; she is not more than seventeen.
It passes belief! Is she robust, or slender?
Slender.
The officer pondered a moment or two, then he said:
Was she preparing to break camp?
Not when I had my last glimpse of her.
What was she doing?
She was talking quietly with an officer.
Quietly? Not giving orders?
No, talking as quietly as we are now.
That is good. She is feeling a false security. She would have been restless and
fussy else - it is the way of her sex when danger is about. As she was making no
preparation to break camp, -
She certainly was not when I saw her last.
-and was chatting quietly and at her ease, it means that this weather is not to
her taste. Night-marching in sleet and wind is not for chits of seventeen. No; she will
stay where she is. She has my thanks. We will camp, ourselves; here is as good a place as
any. Let us get about it.
If you command it - certainly. But she has two knights with her. They might force
her to march, particularly if the weather should improve.
I was scared, and impatient to be getting out of this peril, and it distressed and
worried me to have Joan apparently set herself to work to make delay and increase the
danger - still, I thought she probably knew better than I what to do. The officer said -
Well, in that case we are here to block the way.
Yes, if they come this way. But if they should send out spies, and find out
enough to make them want to try for the bridge through the woods? Is it best to allow the
bridge to stand?
It made me shiver to hear her.
The officer considered a while, then said:
It might be well enough to send a force to destroy the bridge. I was intending to
occupy it with the whole command, but that is not necessary now.
Joan said, tranquilly -
With your permission, I will go and destroy it myself.
Ah, now I saw her idea, and was glad she had had the cleverness to invent it and the
ability to keep her head cool and think of it in that tight place. The officer replied -
You have it, Captain, and my thanks. With you to do it, it will be well done; I
could send another in your place, but not a better.
They saluted, and we moved forward. I breathed freer. A dozen times I had imagined I
heard the hoof-beats of the real Captain Raymonds troop arriving behind us, and had
been sitting on pins and needles all the while that that conversation was dragging along.
I breathed freer, but was still not comfortable, for Joan had given only the simple
command, Forward! Consequently we moved in a walk. Moved in a dead walk past a
dim and lengthening column of enemies at our side. The suspense was exhausting, yet it
lasted but a short while, for when the enemys bugles sang the Dismount!
Joan gave the word to trot, and that was a great relief to me. She was always at herself
you see. Before the command to dismount had been given somebody might have wanted the
countersign somewhere along the line if we came flying by at speed, but now we seemed to
be on our way to our allocated camping position, so we were allowed to pass unchallenged.
The further we went the more formidable was the strength revealed by the hostile force.
Perhaps it was only a hundred or two but to me it seemed a thousand. When we passed the
last of these people I was thankful, and the deeper we ploughed into the darkness beyond
them the better I felt. I came nearer and nearer to feeling good, for an hour; then we
found the bridge still standing, and I felt entirely good. We crossed it and destroyed it,
and then I felt - but I cannot describe what I felt. One has to feel it himself in order
to know what it is like.
We had expected to hear the rush of a pursuing force behind us, for we thought that the
real Captain Raymond would arrive and suggest that perhaps the troop that had been
mistaken for his belonged to the Virgin of Vaucouleurs; but he must have been delayed
seriously, for when we resumed our march beyond the river there were no sounds behind us
except those which the storm was furnishing.
I said that Joan had harvested a good many compliments intended for Captain Raymond,
and that he would find nothing of a crop left but a dry stubble of reprimands when he got
back, and a commander just in the humour to superintend the gathering of it in.
Joan said:
It will be as you say, no doubt; for the commander took a troop for granted, in
the night and unchallenged, and would have camped without sending a force to destroy the
bridge if he had been left unadvised, and none are so ready to find fault with others as
those who do things worthy of blame themselves.
The Sieur Bertrand was amused at Joans naïve way of referring to her advice as
if it had been a valuable present to a hostile leader who was saved by it from making a
censurable blunder of omission, and then he went on to admire how ingeniously she had
deceived that man and yet had not told him anything that was not the truth. This troubled
Joan, and she said -
I thought he was deceiving himself. I forbore to tell him lies, for that would
have been wrong; but if my truths deceived him, perhaps that made them lies, and I am to
blame. I would God I knew if I have done wrong.
She was assured that she had done right, and that in the perils and necessities of war
deceptions that help ones own cause and hurt the enemys were always
permissible; but she was not quite satisfied with that, and thought that even when a great
cause was in danger, one ought to have the privilege of trying honourable ways first. Jean
said -
Joan, you told us yourself that you were going to Uncle Laxarts to nurse
his wife, but you didnt say you were going further, yet you did go on to
Vaucouleurs. There!
I see, now, said Joan sorrowfully, I told no lie, yet I deceived. I
had tried all other ways first, but I could not get away, and I had to get away.
My mission required it. I did wrong, I think, and am to blame.
She was silent a moment, turning the matter over in her mind, then she added with quiet
decision, But the thing itself was right, and I would do it again.
It seemed an over-nice distinction, but nobody said anything. If we had known her as
well as she knew herself, and as her later history revealed her to us, we should have
perceived that she had a clear meaning there, and that her position was not identical with
ours, as we were supposing, but occupied a higher plane. She would sacrifice herself - and
her best self; that is, her truthfulness - to save her cause; but only that: she
would not buy her life at that cost; whereas our war-ethics permitted the
purchase of our lives, or any mere military advantage, small or great, by deception. Her
saying seemed commonplace at that time, the essence of its meaning escaping us; but one
sees, now, that it contained a principle which lifted it above that and made it great and
fine.
Presently the wind died down, the sleet stopped falling, and the cold was less severe.
The road was become a bog, and the horses laboured through it at a walk - they could do no
better. As the heavy time wore on, exhaustion overcame us, and we slept in our saddles.
Not even the dangers that threatened us could keep us awake.
This tenth night seemed longer than any of the others, and of course it was the
hardest, because we had been accumulating fatigue from the beginning, and had more of it
on hand now than at any previous time. But we were not molested again. When the dull dawn
came at last we saw a river before us and knew we it was the Loire; we entered the town of
Gien, and knew we were in a friendly land, with the hostiles all behind us. That was a
glad morning for us.
We were a worn and bedraggled and shabby-looking troop; and still, as always, Joan was
the freshest of us all, in both body and spirits. We had averaged above thirteen leagues a
night, by tortuous and wretched roads. It was a remarkable march, and shows what men can
do when they have a leader with a determined purpose and a resolution that never flags.
Chapter 5
We rested and otherwise refreshed ourselves two or three hours at Gien, but by that
time the news was abroad that the young girl commissioned of God to deliver France was
come; wherefore, such a press of people flocked to our quarters to get sight of her that
it seemed best to seek a quieter place, so we pushed on and halted at a small village
called Fierbois.
We were now within six leagues of the King, who was at the Castle of Chinon. Joan
dictated a letter to him at once, and I wrote it. In it she said she had come a hundred
and fifty leagues to bring him good news, and begged the privilege of delivering it in
person. She added that although she had never seen him, she would know him in any disguise
and would point him out.
The two knights rode away at once with the letter. The troop slept all the afternoon,
and after supper we felt pretty fresh and fine, especially our little group of young
Domremians. We had the comfort taproom of the village inn to ourselves, and for the first
time in ten unspeakably long days were exempt from bodings and terrors and hardships and
fatiguing labours. The Paladin was suddenly become his ancient self again, and was
swaggering up and down, a very monument of self-complacency. Noël Rainguesson said -
I think it is wonderful, the way he has brought us through.
Who? asked Jean.
Why, the Paladin.
The Paladin seemed not to hear.
What had he to do with it? asked Pierre dArc.
Everything. It was nothing but Joans confidence in his discretion that
enabled her to keep up her heart. She could depend on us and on herself for valour, but
discretion is the winning thing in war, after all; discretion is the rarest and loftiest
of qualities, and he has got more of it than any other man in France - more of it,
perhaps, than any other sixty men in France.
Now you are getting ready to make a fool of yourself Noël Rainguesson,
said the Paladin, and you want to coil some of that long tongue of yours around you
neck and stick the end of it in your ear, then youll be less likely to get into
trouble.
I didnt know he had more discretion than other people, said Pierre,
for discretion argues brains, and he hasnt any more brains than the rest of
us, in my opinion.
No, you are wrong there. Discretion hasnt anything to do with brains;
brains are an obstruction to it, for it does not reason, it feels. Perfect discretion
means absence of brains. Discretion is a quality of the heart - solely a quality of the
heart; it acts upon us through feeling. We know this because if it were an intellectual
quality, it would only perceive a danger, for instance, where a danger exists; whereas
-
Hear him twaddle - the damned idiot! muttered the Paladin.
-whereas, it being purely a quality of the heart, and proceeding by feeling, not
reason, its reach is correspondingly wider and sublimer, enabling it to perceive and avoid
dangers that havent any existence at all; as for instance that night in the fog,
when the Paladin took his horses ears for hostiles lances and got off and climbed a
tree -
Its a lie! A lie without shadow of foundation, and I call upon you all to
beware how you give credence to the malicious inventions of this ramshackle slander-mill
that has been doing its best to destroy my character for years, and will grind up your own
reputations for you, next. I got off to tighten my saddle-girth - I wish I may die in my
tracks if it isnt so - and whoever wants to believe it can, and whoever dont,
can let it alone.
There, that is the way with him, you see; he never can discuss a theme
temperately, but always flies off the handle and becomes disagreeable. And you notice his
defect of memory. He remembers getting off his horse, but forgets all the rest, even the
tree. But that is natural; he would remember getting off the horse because he was so used
to doing it. He always did it when there was an alarm and the clash of arms at the
front.
Why did he choose that time for it? asked Jean.
I dont know. To tighten up his girth, he thinks; to climb a tree, I think; I saw him climb nine trees in a single night.
You saw nothing of the kind! A person that can lie like that deserves no
ones respect. I ask you all to answer me. Do you believe what this reptile has
said?
All seemed embarrassed, and only Pierre replied. He said, hesitatingly -
I - well, I hardly know what to say. It is a delicate situation. It seems
offensive to refuse to believe a person when he makes so direct a statement, and yet I am
obliged to say, rude as it may appear, that I am not able to believe the whole of it - no,
I am not able to believe that you climbed nine trees.
There! cried the Paladin; now what do you think of yourself, Noël
Rainguesson? How many do you believe I climbed, Pierre?
Only eight.
The laughter that followed inflamed the Paladins anger to white heat, and he said
-
I bide my time - I bide my time. I will reckon with you all, I promise you
that!
Dont get him started, Noël pleaded; 'he is a perfect lion when he
gets started. I saw enough to teach me that, after the third skirmish. After it was over I
saw him come out of the bushes and attack a dead man single-handed.
It is another lie; and I give you fair warning that you are going too far. You
will see me attack a live one if you are not careful.
Meaning me, of course. This wounds me more than any number of injurious and
unkind speeches could do. Ingratitude to ones benefactor -
Benefactor? What do I owe you, I should like to know?
You owe me your life. I stood between the trees and the foe, and kept hundreds
and thousands of the enemy at bay when they were thirsting for your blood. And I did not
do it to display my daring, I did it because I loved you and could not live without
you.
There - you have said enough! I will not stay here and listen to these infamies.
I can endure your lies, but not your love. Keep that corruption for somebody with a
stronger stomach than mine. And I want to say this, before I go. That you peoples
small performances might appear the better and win you the more glory, I hid my own deeds
through all the march. I went always to the front where the fighting was thickest, to be
remote from you, in order that you might not see and be discouraged by the things I did to
the enemy. It was my purpose to keep this a secret in my own breast, but you force me to
reveal it. If you ask for my witnesses, yonder they lie, on the road we have come. I found
that country sterile, I fertilised it with blood. Time and again I was urged to go to the
rear because the command could not proceed on account of my dead. And yet you, you
miscreant, accuse me of climbing trees! Pah!
And he strode out, with a lofty air, for the recital of his imaginary deeds had already
set him up again and made him feel good.
Next day we mounted and faced toward Chinon. Orleans was at our back, now, and close
by, lying in the strangling grip of the English; soon, please God, we would face about and
go to their relief. From Gien the news had spread to Orleans that the peasant Maid of
Vaucouleurs was on her way, divinely commissioned to raise the siege. The news made a
great excitement and raised a great hope - the first breath of hope that poor souls had
breathed in five months. They sent commissioners at once to the King to beg him to
consider this matter, and not throw this help lightly away. These commissioners were
already at Chinon by this time.
When we were half-way to Chinon we happened upon yet one more squad of enemies. They
burst suddenly out of the woods, and in considerable force, too; but we were not the
apprentices we were ten or twelve days before; no, we were seasoned to this kind of
adventure now; our hearts did not jump into our throats and our weapons tremble in our
hands. We had learned to be always in battle array, always alert, and always ready to deal
with any emergency that might turn up. We were no more dismayed by the sight of those
people than our commander was. Before they could form, Joan had delivered the order,
Forward! and we were down upon them with a rush. They stood no chance; they
turned tail and scattered, we ploughing through them as if they had been men of straw.
That was our last ambuscade, and it was probably laid for us by that treacherous rascal
the Kings own minister and favourite, De la Tremouille.
We housed ourselves in an inn, and soon the town came flocking to get a glimpse of the
Maid.
Ah, the tedious King and his tedious people! Our two good knights came presently, their
patience well wearied, and reported. They and we reverently stood - wearied, and reported.
They and we reverently stood - as becomes persons who are in the presence of Kings and the
superiors of Kings - until Joan, troubled by this mark of homage and respect, and not
permitted ourselves to do otherwise since the day she prophesied that wretched
traitors death and he was straightway drowned, thus confirming many previous signs
that she was indeed an ambassador commissioned of God, commanded us to sit; then the Sieur
de Metz said to Joan:
The King has got the letter, but they will not let us have speech with him.
Who is it that forbids?
None forbids, but there be three or four that are nearest his person - schemers
and traitors every one - that put obstructions in the way, and seek all ways, by lies and
pretexts, to make delay. Chiefest of these are Georges de la Tremouille and that plotting
fox the Archbishop of Rheims. While they keep the King idle and in bondage to his sports
and follies, they are great and their importance grows; whereas if ever he assert himself
and rise and strike for crown and country like a man, their reign is done. So they thrive,
they care not if the crown go to destruction and the King with it.
You have spoken with others besides these?
Not of the Court, no - the Court are the meek slaves of those reptiles, and watch
their mouths and their actions, acting as they act, thinking as they think, saying as they
say: wherefore they are cold to us, and turn aside and go another way when we appear. But
we have spoken with the commissioners from Orleans. They said with heat: "It is a
marvel that any man in such desperate case as is the King can moon around in his torpid
way, and see his all go to ruin without lifting a finger to stay the disaster. What a most
strange spectacle it is! Here he is, shut up in this wee corner of the realm like a rat in
a trap; his royal shelter this huge gloomy tomb of a castle, with wormy rags for
upholstery and crippled furniture for use, a very house of desolation; in his treasury
forty francs, and not a farthing more, God be witness! no army, nor any shadow of one; and
by contrast with his hungry poverty you behold this crownless pauper and his shoals of
fools and favourites tricked out in the gaudiest silks and velvets you shall find in any
Court in Christendom. And look you, he knows that when our city falls - as fall it surely
will except succour come swiftly - France falls; he knows that when that day
comes he will be an outlaw and a fugitive, and that behind him the English flag will float
unchallenged over every acre of his great heritage; he knows these things, he knows that
our faithful city is fighting all solitary and alone against disease, starvation, and the
sword to stay this awful calamity, yet he will not strike one blow to save her, he will
not hear our prayers, he will not even look upon our faces." That is what the
commissioners said, and they are in despair.
Joan said, gently -
It is a pity, but they must not despair. The Dauphin will hear them presently.
Tell them so.
She almost always called the King Dauphin. To her mind he was not King yet, not being
crowned.
We will tell them so, and it will content them, for they believe you come from
God. The Archbishop and his confederate have for backer that veteran soldier Raoul de
Gaucourt, Grand Master of the Palace, a worthy man but simply a soldier, with no head for
any greater matter. He cannot make out to see how a country girl, ignorant of war can take
a sword in her small hand and win victories where the trained generals of France have
looked for defeats only, for fifty years - and always found them. And so he lifts his
frosty moustache and scoffs.
When God fights it is but small matter whether the hand that bears His sword is
big or little. He will perceive this in time. Is there none in the Castle of Chinon who
favours us?
Yes, the Kings mother-in-law, Yolande, Queen of Sicily, who is wise and
good. She spoke with the Sieur Bertrand.
She favours us, and hates those others, the Kings beguilers, said
Bertrand. She was full of interest, and asked a thousand questions, all of which I
answered according to my ability. Then she sat thinking over these replies until I thought
she was lost in a dream and would wake no more. But it was not so. At last she said,
slowly, and as if she were talking to herself: "A child of seventeen - a girl -
country bred - untaught - ignorant of war, the use of arms, and the conduct of battles -
modest, gentle, shrinking - yet throws away her shepherds crook and clothes herself
in steel, and fights her way through a hundred and fifty leagues of hostile territory,
never losing heart or hope and never showing fear, and comes - she to whom a king must be
a dread and awful presence - and will stand up before such a one and say, Be not afraid,
God has sent me to save you! Ah, whence could come a courage and conviction so sublime as
this but from very God Himself!" She was silent again awhile, thinking, and making up
her mind; then she said, "And whether she comes of God or no, there is that in her
heart that raises her above men - high above all men that breathe in France today - for in
her is that mysterious something that puts hearts into soldiers, and turns mobs of crowds
into armies of fighters that forget what fear is when they are in that presence - fighters
who go into battle with joy in their eyes and songs on their lips, and sweep over the
field like a storm - that is the spirit that can save France, and that alone, come it
whence it may! It is in her, I do truly believe, for what else could have borne up that
child on that great march, and made her despise its dangers and fatigues? The King must
see her face to face - and shall!" She dismissed me with those good words, and I know
her promise will be kept. They will delay her all they can - those animals - but she will
not fail, in the end.
Would she were King! said the other knight, fervently. For
there is little hope that the King himself can be stirred out of his lethargy. He is
wholly without hope, and is only thinking of throwing away everything and flying to some
foreign land. The commissioners say there is a spell upon him that makes him hopeless -
yes, and that it is shut up in a mystery which they cannot fathom.
I know the mystery, said Joan, with quiet confidence; I know it, and
he knows it, but no other but God. When I see him I will tell him a secret that will drive
away his trouble, then he will hold up his head again.
I was miserable with curiosity to know what it was that she would tell him, but she did
not say, and I did not expect she would. She was but a child, it is true, but she was not
a chatterer to tell great matters and make herself important to little people; no, she was
reserved, and kept things to herself, as the truly great always do.
The next day Queen Yolande got one victory over the Kings keepers, for in spite
of their protestations and obstructions she procured an audience for our two knights, and
they made the most they could out of their opportunity. They told the King what a spotless
and beautiful character Joan was, and how great and noble a spirit animated her, and they
implored him to trust in her, believe in her, and have faith that she was sent to save
France. They begged him to consent to see her. He was strongly moved to do this, and
promised that he would not drop the matter out of his mind, but would consult with his
council about it. This began to look encouraging. Two hours later there was a great stir
below, and the innkeeper came flying up to say a commission of illustrious ecclesiastics
was come from the King - from the King his very self, understand! - think of this vast
honour to his humble little hostelry! - and he was so overcome with the glory of it that
he could hardly find breath enough in his excited body to put the facts into words. They
were come from the King to speak with the Maid of Vaucouleurs. Then he flew downstairs,
and presently appeared again, backing into the room and bowing to the ground with every
step, in front of four imposing and austere bishops and their train of servants.
Joan rose, and we all stood. The bishops took seats, and for a while no word was said,
for it was their prerogative to speak first, and they were so astonished to see what child
it was that was making such a noise in the world and degrading personages of their dignity
to the base function of ambassadors to her in her plebeian tavern, that they could not
find any words to say, at first. Then presently their spokesman told Joan they were aware
that she had a message for the King, wherefore she was now commanded to put it into words,
briefly and without waste of time or embroideries of speech.
As for me, I could hardly contain my joy - our message was to reach the King at last!
And there was the same joy and pride and exultation in the faces of our knights, too, and
in those of Joans brothers. And I knew that they were all praying - as I was - that
the awe which we felt in the presence of these great dignitaries, and which would have
tied our tongues and locked our jaws, would not affect her in the like degree, but that
she would be enabled to word her message well, and with little stumbling, and so make a
favourable impression here, where it would be so valuable and so important.
Ah dear, how little we were expecting what happened then! We were aghast to hear her
say what she said. She was standing in a reverent attitude, with her head down and her
hands clasped in front of her; for she was always reverent toward the consecrated servants
of God. When the spokesman had finished, she raised her head and set her calm eye on those
faces, not any more disturbed by their state and grandeur than a princess would have been,
and said, with all her ordinary simplicity and modesty of voice and manner:
Ye will forgive me, reverend sirs, but I have no message save for the Kings
ear alone.
Those surprised men were dumb for a moment, and their faces flushed darkly; then the
spokesman said:
Harkye, do you fling the kings command in his face and refuse to deliver
this message of yours to his servants appointed to receive it?
God has appointed one to receive it, and anothers commandment may not take
precedence of that. I pray you let me have speech of his grace the Dauphin.
Forbear this folly, and come at your message! Deliver it, and waste no more time
about it.
You err indeed, most reverend fathers in God, and it is not well. I am not come
hither to talk, but to deliver Orleans, and lead the Dauphin to his good city of Rheims,
and set the crown upon his head.
Is that the message you send to the King?
But Joan only said, in the simple fashion which was her wont:
Ye will pardon me for reminding you again - but I have no message to send to any
one.
The Kings messengers rose in deep anger and swept out of the place without
further words, we and Joan kneeling as they passed.
Our countenances were vacant, our hearts full of a sense of disaster. Our precious
opportunity was thrown away; we could not understand Joans conduct, she who had been
so wise until this fatal hour. At last the Sieur Bertrand found courage to ask her why she
had let this great chance to get her message to the King go by.
Who sent them here? she asked.
The King.
Who moved the King to send them? She waited for an answer; none came
forward, for we began to see what was in her mind - so she answered herself: The
Dauphins council moved him to it. Are they enemies to me and to the Dauphins
weal, or are they friends?
Enemies, answered the Sieur Bertrand.
If one would have a message go sound and ungarbled, does one choose traitors and
tricksters to send it by?
I saw that we had been fools, and she wise. They saw it too, so none found anything to
say. Then she went on:
They had but small wit that contrived this trap. They thought to get my message
and seem to deliver it straight, yet deftly twist it from its purpose. You know that one
part of my message is but this - to move the Dauphin by argument and reasonings to give me
men-at-arms and send me to the siege. If an enemy carried these in the right words, the
exact words, and no word missing, yet left out the persuasions of gesture and supplicating
tone and beseeching looks that inform the words and make them live, where were the value
of that argument - whom could it convince? Be patient, the Dauphin will hear me presently;
have no fear.
The Sieur de Metz nodded his head several times, and muttered as to himself:
She was right and wise, and we are but dull fools, when all is said.
It was just my thought: I could have said it myself; and indeed it was the thought of
all there present. A sort of awe crept over us, to think how that untaught girl, taken
suddenly and unprepared, was yet able to penetrate the cunning devices of a Kings
trained advisers and defeat them. Marvelling over this, and astonished at it, we fell
silent and spoke no more. We had come to know that she was great in courage, fortitude,
endurance, patience, conviction, fidelity to all duties - in all things, indeed, that make
a good and trusty soldier and perfect him for his post; now we were beginning to feel that
maybe there were greatnesses in her brain that were even greater than these qualities of
the heart. It set us thinking.
What Joan did that day bore fruit the very day after. The King was obliged to respect
the spirit of a young girl who could hold her own and stand her ground like that, and he
asserted himself sufficiently to put his respect into an act instead of into polite and
empty words. He moved Joan out of that poor inn, and housed her, with us her servants, in
the Castle of Coudray, personally confiding her to the care of Madame de Bellier, wife of
old Raoul de Gaucourt, Master of the Palace. Of course this royal attention had an
immediate result: all the great lords and ladies of the Court began to flock there to see
and listen to the wonderful girl-soldier that all the world was talking about, and who had
answered the Kings mandate with a bland refusal to obey. Joan charmed them every one
with her sweetness and simplicity and unconscious eloquence, and all the best and
capablest among them recognised that there was an indefinable something about her that
testified that she was not made of common clay, that she was built on a loftier plane.
These spread her fame. She always made friends and advocates that way; neither the high
nor the low could come within the sound of her voice and the sight of her face and go out
from her presence indifferent.
Chapter 6
Well, anything to make delay. The Kings council advised him against arriving at a
decision in our matter too precipitately. He arrive at a decision too
precipitately! So they sent a committee of priests - always priests - into Lorraine to
inquire into Joans character and history - a matter which would consume several
weeks, of course. You see how fastidious they were. It was as if people should come to put
out the fire when a mans house was burning down, and they waited till they could
send into another country to find out if he had always kept the Sabbath or not, before
letting him try.
So the days poked along, dreary for us young people in some ways, but not in all, for
we had one great anticipation in front of us - we had never seen a king, and now some day
we should have the prodigious spectacle to see and to treasure in our memories all our
lives; so we were on the look-out, and always eager and watching for the chance. The
others were doomed to wait longer than I, as it turned out. One day great news came - the
Orleans commissioners, with Yolande and our knights, had at last turned the councils
position and persuaded the King to see Joan.
Joan received the immense news gratefully but without losing her head, but with us
others it was otherwise; we could not eat or sleep or do any rational thing for the
excitement and the glory of it. During two days our pair of noble knights were in distress
and trepidation on Joans account, for the audience was to be at night, and they were
afraid that Joan would be so paralysed by the glare of light from the long files of
torches, the solemn pomps and ceremonies, the great concourse of renowned personages, the
brilliant costumes, and the other splendours of the Court that she, a simple country maid,
and all unused to such things, would be overcome by these terrors and make a piteous
failure.
No doubt I could have comforted them, but I was not free to speak. Would Joan be
disturbed by this cheap spectacle, this tinsel show, with its small King and his butterfly
dukelets? - she who had spoken face to face with the princes of heaven, the familiars of
God, and seen their retinue of angels stretching back into the remoteness of the sky,
myriads upon myriads, like a measureless fan of light, a glory like the glory of the sun
streaming from each of those innumerable heads, the massed radiance filling the deeps of
space with a blinding splendour? I thought not.
Queen Yolande wanted Joan to make the best possible impression upon the King and the
Court, so she was strenuous to have her clothed in the richest stuffs, wrought upon the
princeliest pattern, and set off with jewels; but in that she had to be disappointed, of
course, Joan not being persuaded to it, but begging to be simply and sincerely dressed, as
became a servant of God, and one sent upon a mission of a serious sort and grave political
import. So then the gracious Queen imagined and contrived that simple and witching costume
which I have described to you so many times, and which I cannot think of even now in my
dull age without being moved just as rhythmical and exquisite music moves one; for that was music, that dress - that is what it was - music that one saw with the eyes and felt in
the heart. Yes, she was a poem, she was a dream, she was a spirit when she was clothed in
that.
She kept that raiment always, and wore it several times upon occasions of state, and it
is preserved to this day in the Treasury of Orleans, with two of her swords, and her
banner, and other things now sacred because they had belonged to her.
At the appointed time the Count of Vendôme, a great lord of the Court, came richly
clothed, with his train of servants and assistants, to conduct Joan to the King, and the
two knights and I went with her, being entitled to this privilege by reason of our
official positions near her person.
When we entered the great audience hall, there it all was, just as I have already
painted it. Here were ranks of guards in shining armour and with polished halberds; two
sides of the hall were like flower-gardens for variety of colour and the magnificence of
the costumes; light streamed upon these masses of colour from two hundred and fifty
flambeaux. There was a wide free space down the middle of the hall, and at the end of it
was a throne royally canopied, and upon it sat a crowned and sceptred figure nobly clothed
and blazing with jewels.
It is true that Joan had been hindered and put off a good while, but now that she was
admitted to an audience at last, she was received with honours granted to only the
greatest personages. At the entrance door stood four heralds in a row, in splendid
tabards, with long slender silver trumpets at their mouths, with square silken banners
depending from them embroidered with the arms of France. As Joan and the Count passed by,
these trumpets gave forth in unison one long rich note, and as we moved down the hall
under the pictured and gilded vaulting, this was repeated at ever fifty feet of our
progress - six times in all. It made our good knights proud and happy, and they held
themselves erect, and stiffened their stride, and looked fine and soldierly. They were not
expecting this beautiful and honourable tribute to out little country maid.
Joan walked two yards behind the Count, we three walked two yards behind Joan. Our
solemn march ended when we were as yet some eight or ten steps from the throne. The Count
made a deep obeisance, pronounced Joans name, then bowed again and moved to his
place among a group of officials near the throne. I was devouring the crowned personage
with all my eyes, and my heart almost still with awe.
The eyes of all others were fixed upon Joan in a gaze of wonder which was half worship,
and which seemed to say, How sweet - how lovely - how divine! All lips were
parted and motionless, which was a sure sign that those people, who seldom forget
themselves, had forgotten themselves now, and were not conscious of anything but the one
object they were gazing upon. They had the look of people who are under the enchantment of
a vision.
Then they presently began to come to life again, rousing themselves out of the spell
and shaking it off as one drives away little by little a clinging drowsiness or
intoxication. Now they fixed their attention upon Joan with a strong new interest of
another sort; they were full of curiosity to see what she would do - they having a secret
and particular reason for this curiosity. So they watched. This is what they saw:
She made no obeisance, nor even any slight inclination of her head, but stood looking
toward the throne in silence. That was all there was to see, at present.
I glanced up at De Metz, and was shocked at the paleness of his face. I whispered and
said:
What is it, man; what is it?
His answering whisper was so weak I could hardly catch it:
They have taken advantage of the hint in her letter to play a trick upon her! She
will err, and they will laugh at her. That is not the King that sits there.
Then I glanced at Joan. She was still gazing steadfastly toward the throne, and I had
the curious fancy that even her shoulders and the back of her head expressed bewilderment.
Now she turned her head slowly, and her eye wandered along the lines of standing courtiers
till it fell upon a young man who was very quietly dressed; then her face lighted
joyously, and she ran and threw herself at his feet, and clasped his knees, exclaiming in
that soft melodious voice which was her birthright and was now charged with deep and
tender feeling:
God of His grace give you long life, O dear and gentle Dauphin!
In his astonishment and exultation De Metz cried out:
By the shadow of God, it is an amazing thing! Then he mashed all the bones
in my hand in his grateful grip, and added, with a proud shake of his mane, Now,
what have these painted infidels to say!
Meantime the young person in the plain clothes was saying to Joan:
Ah, you mistake, my child, I am not the King. There he is, and he pointed
to the throne.
The knights face clouded, and he muttered in grief and indignation:
Ah, it is a shame to use her so. But for this lie she had gone through safe. I
will go and proclaim to all the house what -
Stay were you are! whispered I and the Sieur Bertrand in a breath, and made
him stop in his place.
Joan did not stir from her knees, but still lifted her happy face towards the King, and
said:
No, gracious liege, you are he, and none other.
Verily, she was not guessing, she knew. Now, how could she know? It is a
miracle. I am content, and will meddle no more, for I perceive that she is equal to her
occasions, having that in her head that cannot profitably be helped by the vacancy that is
in mine.
This interruption of his lost me a remark or two of the other talk; however, I caught
the Kings next question:
But tell me who you are, and what would you?
I am called Joan the Maid, and am sent to say that the King of Heaven wills that
you be crowned and consecrated in your good city of Rheims, and be thereafter Lieutenant
of the Lord of Heaven, who is King of France. And He willeth also that you set me at my
appointed work and give me men-at-arms. After a slight pause she added, her eye
lighting at the sound of her words, For then I will raise the siege of Orleans and
break the English power!
The young monarchs amused face sobered a little when this martial speech fell
upon that sick air like a breath blown from embattled camps and fields of war, and his
trifling smile presently faded wholly away and disappeared. He was grave now, and
thoughtful. After a little he waved his hand lightly, and all the people fell away and
left those two by themselves in a vacant space. The knights and I moved to the opposite
side of the hall and stood there. We saw Joan rise at a sign, then she and the King talked
privately together.
All that host had been consumed with curiosity to see what Joan would do. Well, they
had seen, and now they were full of astonishment to see that she had really performed that
strange miracle according to the promise in her letter; and they were fully as much
astonished to find that she was not overcome by the pomps and splendours about her, but
was even more tranquil and at her ease in holding speech with a monarch than ever they
themselves had been, with all their practice and experience.
As for our two knights, they were inflated beyond measure with pride in Joan, but
nearly dumb, as to speech, they not being able to think out any way to account for her
managing to carry herself through this imposing ordeal without ever a mistake or an
awkwardness of any kind to mar the grace and credit for her great performance.
The talk between Joan and the King was long and earnest, and held in low voices. We
could not hear, but we had our eyes and could note effects, and presently we and all the
house noted one effect which was memorable and striking, and has been set down in memoirs
and histories and in testimony at the Process of Rehabilitation by some who witnessed it;
for all knew it was big with meaning, though none knew what the meaning was at that time,
of course. For suddenly we saw the King shake off his indolent attitude and straighten up
like a man, and at the same time look immeasurably astonished. It was as if Joan had told
him something almost too wonderful for belief, and yet of a most uplifting and welcome
nature.
It was long before we found out the secret of this conversation, but we know it now,
and all the world knows it. That part of the talk was like this - as one may read in all
histories. The perplexed King asked Joan for a sign. He wanted to believe in her and her
mission, and that her Voices were supernatural and endowed with knowledge hidden from
mortals; but how could he do this unless these Voices could prove their claim in some
absolutely unassailable way? It was then that Joan said:
I will give you a sign, and you shall no more doubt. There is a secret trouble in
your heart which you speak of to none - a doubt which wastes away your courage, and makes
you dream of throwing all away and fleeing from your realm. Within this little while you
have been praying, in your own breast, that God of His grace would resolve that doubt,
even if the doing of it must show you that no kingly right is lodged in you.
It was that that amazed the King, for it was as she had said: his prayer was the secret
of his own breast, and none but God could know about it. So he said:
The sign is sufficient. I know, now, that these Voices are of God. They have said
true in this matter; if they have said more, tell it me - I will believe.
They have resolved that doubt, and I bring their very words, which are these:
Thou art lawful heir to the King thy father, and true heir of France. God has spoken it.
Now lift up thy head, and doubt no more, but give me men-at-arms and let me get about my
work.
Telling him he was of lawful birth was what straightened him up and made a man of him
for a moment, removing his doubts upon that head, and convincing him of his royal right;
and if any could have hanged his hindering and pestiferous council and set him free, he
would have answered Joans prayer and set her in the field. But no, those creatures
were only checked, not checkmated; they could invent some more delays.
We had been made proud by the honours which had so distinguished Joans entrance
into that place - honours restricted to personages of very high rank and worth - but that
pride was nothing compared with the pride we had in the honour done her upon leaving it.
For whereas those first honours were shown only to the great, these last, up to this time,
had been shown only to the royal. The King himself led Joan by the hand down the great
hall to the door, the glittering multitude standing and making reverence as they passed,
and the silver trumpets sounding those rich notes of theirs. Then he dismissed her with
gracious words, bending low over her hand and kissing it. Always - from all companies,
high or low - she went forth richer in honour and esteem than when she came.
And the King did another handsome thing by Joan, for he sent us back to Coudray Castle
torch-lighted and in state, under escort of his own troop - his guard of honour - the only
soldiers he had; and finely equipped and bedizened they were too, though they hadnt
seen the colour of their wages since they were children, as a body might say. The wonders
which Joan had been performing before the King had been carried all around by this time,
so the road was so packed with people who wanted to get a sight of her that we could
hardly dig through; and as for talking together, we couldnt, all attempts at talk
being drowned in the storm of shoutings and huzzas that broke out all along as we passed,
and kept abreast of us like a wave the whole way.
Chapter 7
We were doomed to suffer tedious waits and delays, and we settled ourselves down to our
fate and bore it with a dreary patience, counting the slow hours and the dull days, and
hoping for a turn when God should please to send it. The Paladin was the only exception -
that is to say, he was the only one who was happy and had no heavy times. This was partly
owing to the satisfaction he got out of his clothes. He bought them when he first arrived.
He bought them at second hand - a Spanish cavaliers complete suit, wide-brimmed hat
with flowing plumes, lace collar and cuffs, faded velvet doublet and trunks, short cloak
hung from the shoulder, funnel-topped buskins, long rapier, and all that - a graceful and
picturesque costume, and the Paladins great frame was the right place to hang it for
effect. He wore it when off duty; and when he swaggered by with one hand resting on the
hilt of his rapier, and twirling his new moustache with the other, everybody stopped to
look and admire; and well they might, for he was a fine and stately contrast to the small
French gentleman of the day squeezed into the trivial French costume of the time.
He was king bee of the little village that snuggled under the shelter of the frowning
towers and bastions of Coudray Castle, and acknowledged lord of the taproom of the inn.
When he opened his mouth there, he got a hearing. Those simple artisans and peasants
listened with deep and wondering interest; for he was a traveller and had seen the world -
all of it that lay between Chinon and Domremy, at any rate - and that was a wide stretch
more of it than they might ever hope to see; and he had been in battle, and knew how to
paint its shock and struggle, its perils and surprises, with an art that was all his own.
He was cock of that walk, hero of that hostelry; he drew custom as honey draws flies; so
he was the pet of the innkeeper, and of his wife and daughter, and they were his obliged
and willing servants.
Most people who have the narrative gift - that great and rare endowment - have with it
the defect of telling their choice things over the same way every time, and this injures
them and causes them to sound stale and wearisome after several repetitions; but it was
not so with the Paladin, whose art was of a finer sort; it was more stirring and
interesting to hear him tell about a battle the tenth time than it was the first time,
because he did not tell it twice the same way, but always made a new battle of it, and a
better one, with more casualties on the enemys side each time, and more general
wreck and disaster all around and more widows and orphans and suffering in the
neighbourhood where it happened. He could not tell his battles apart himself, except by
their names; and by the time he had told one of them ten times as he had to lay it aside
and start a new one in its place, because it had grown so that there wasnt room
enough in France for it any more, but was lapping over the edges. But up to that point the
audience would not allow him to substitute a new battle, knowing that the old ones were
the best, and sure to improve as long as France could hold them; and so, instead of saying
to him as they would have said to another, Give us something fresh, we are fatigued
with that old thing, they would say, with one voice and with a strong interest,
Tell about the surprise at Beaulieu again - tell it three of four times! This
is a compliment which few narrative experts have heard in their lifetime.
At first when the Paladin heard us tell about the glories of the Royal Audience he was
broken-hearted because he was not taken with us to it, next, his talk was full of what he
would have done if he had been there; and within two days he was telling what he did do when he was there. His mill was fairly started, now, and could be trusted to
take care of its affair. Within three nights afterwards all his battles were taking a
rest, for already his worshippers in the taproom were so infatuated with the great tale of
the royal Audience that they would have nothing else, and so besotted with it were they
that they would have cried if they could not have gotten it.
Noël Rainguesson hid himself and heard it, and came and told me, and after that we
went together to listen, bribing the inn hostess to let us have her little private
parlour, where we could stand at the wickets in the door and see and hear.
The taproom was large, yet had a snug and cosy look, with its inviting little tables
and chairs scattered irregularly over its red-brick floor, and its great fire flaming and
crackling in the wide chimney. It was a comfortable place to be in on such chilly and
blustering March nights as these, and a goodly company had taken shelter there, and were
sipping their wine in contentment and gossiping one with another in a neighbourly way
while they waited for the historian. The host, the hostess, and their pretty daughter were
flying here and there and yonder among the tables and doing their best to keep up with the
orders. The room was about forty feet square, and a space or aisle down the centre of it
had been kept vacant and reserved for the Paladins needs. At the end of it was a
platform ten or twelve feet wide, with a big chair and a small table on it, and three
steps leading up to it.
Among the wine-sippers were many familiar faces: the cobbler, the farrier, the
blacksmith, the wheelwright, the armourer, the maltster, the weaver, the baker, the
millers man with his dusty coat, and so on; and conspicuous and important, as a
matter of course, was the barber-surgeon, for he is that in all villages. As he has to
pull everybodys teeth, and purge and bleed all the grown people once a month to keep
their health sound, he knows everybody, and by constant contact with all sorts of folk
becomes a master of etiquette and manners and a conversationalist of large facility. There
were plenty of carriers, drovers, and their sort, and journeyman artisans.
When the Paladin presently came sauntering indolently in, he was received with a cheer,
and the barber bustled forward and greeted him with several low and most graceful and
courtly bows, also taking his hand and touching his lips to it. Then he called in a loud
voice for a stoup of wine for the Paladin, and when the hosts daughter brought it up
on to the platform and dropped her courtesy and departed, the barber called after her, and
told her to add the wine to his score. This won him ejaculations of approval, which
pleased him very much and made his little rat-eyes shine; and such applause is right and
proper, for when we do a liberal and gallant thing it is but natural that we should wish
to see notice taken of it.
The barber called upon the people to rise and drink the Paladin's health, and they did
it with alacrity and affectionate heartiness, clashing their metal flagons together with a
simultaneous crash, and heightening the effect with a resounding cheer. It was a fine
thing to see how that young swashbuckler had made himself so popular in a strange land in
so little a while, and without other helps to his advantage than just his tongue and the
talent to use it given him by God - a talent which was but one talent in the beginning,
but was now become ten through husbandry and the increment and usufruct that do naturally
follow that and reward it as by a law.
The people sat down and began to hammer on the tables with their flagons and call for
the Kings Audience! - the Kings Audience! - the Kings
Audience! The Paladin stood there in one of his best attitudes, with his plumed
great hat tipped over to the left, the folds of his short cloak drooping from his
shoulder, and the one hand resting upon the hilt of the rapier and the other lifting his
beaker. As the noise died down he made a stately sort of a bow, which he had picked up
somewhere, then fetched his beaker with a sweep to his lips and tilted his head back and
drained it to the bottom. The barber jumped for it and set it upon the Paladins
table. Then the Paladin began to walk up and down his platform with a great deal of
dignity and quite at his ease; and as he walked he talked, and every little while stopped
and stood facing his house and so standing continued his talk.
We went three nights in succession. It was plain that there was a charm about the
performance that was apart from the mere interest which attaches to lying. It was
presently discoverable that this charm lay in the Paladins sincerity. He was not
lying consciously; he believed what he was saying. To him, his initial statements were
facts and whenever he enlarged a statement, the enlargement became a fact too. He put his
heart into his extravagant narrative, just as a poet puts his heart into a heroic fiction,
and his earnestness disarmed criticism - disarmed it as far as he himself was concerned.
Nobody believed his narrative, but all believed that he believed it.
He made his enlargements without flourish, without emphasis, and so casually that often
one failed to notice that a change had been made. He spoke of the governor of Vaucouleurs,
the first night, simply as the governor of Vaucouleurs; he spoke of him the second night
as his uncle the governor of Vaucouleurs; the third night he was his father. He did not
seem to know that he was making these extraordinary changes; they dropped from his lips in
a quite natural and effortless way. By his first nights account the governor merely
attached him to the Maids military escort in a general and unofficial way; the
second night his uncle the governor sent him with the Maid as lieutenant of her rear
guard; the third night his father the governor put the whole command, Maid and all, in his
especial charge. The first night the governor spoke of him as a youth without name or
ancestry, but destined to achieve both; the second night his uncle the
governor spoke of him as the latest and worthiest lineal descendant of the chiefest and
noblest of the Twelve Paladins of Charlemagne; the third night he spoke of him as the
lineal descendant of the whole dozen. In three nights he promoted the Count of Vendôme
from a fresh acquaintance to schoolmate, and then brother-in-law.
At the Kings Audience everything grew in the same way. First the four silver
trumpets were twelve, then thirty-five, finally ninety-six; and by that time he had thrown
in so many drums and cymbals he had to lengthen the hall from five hundred feet to nine
hundred to accommodate them. Under his hand the people present multiplied in the same
large way.
The first two nights he contented himself with merely describing and exaggerating the
chief dramatic incident of the Audience, but the third night he added illustration to
description. He throned the barber in his own high chair to represent the sham King; then
he told how the Court watched the Maid with intense interest and suppressed merriment,
expecting to see her fooled by the deception and get herself swept permanently out of
credit by the storm of scornful laughter which would follow. He worked this scene up till
he got his house in a burning fever of excitement and anticipation, then came his climax.
Turning to the barber, he said:
But mark you what she did. She gazed steadfastly upon that shams villain
face as I now gaze upon yours - this being her noble and simple attitude, just as I stand
now - then turned she - thus - to me, and stretching her arm out - so - and pointing with
her finger, she said, in that firm, calm tone which she was used to use in directing the
conduct of a battle, "Pluck me this false knave from the throne!" I, striding
forward as I do now, took him by the collar and lifted him out and held him aloft - thus -
as if he had been but a child. (The house rose, shouting, stamping, and banging with
their flagons, and went fairly mad over this magnificent exhibition of strength - and
there was not the shadow of a laugh anywhere, though the spectacle of the limp but proud
barber hanging there in the air like a puppy held by the scruff of its neck was a thing
that had nothing of solemnity about it.) Then I set him down upon his feet - thus -
being minded to get him by a better hold and heave him out of the window, but she bid me
forebear, so by that error he escaped with his life.
Then she turned her about and viewed the throng with those eyes of hers, which
are the clear-shining windows whence her immortal wisdom looketh out upon the world,
resolving its falsities and coming at the kernel of truth that is hid within them, and
presently they fell upon a young man modestly clothed, and him she proclaimed for what he
truly was, saying, "I am thy servant - thou art the King!" Then all were
astonished, and a great shout went up, the whole six thousand joining in it, so that the
walls were rocked with the volume and the tumult of it.
He made a fine and picturesque thing of the march-out from the Audience, augmenting the
glories of it to the last limit of impossibilities; then he took from his finger and held
up a brass nut from a bolt-head which the head ostler at the castle had given him that
morning, and made his conclusion - thus:
Then the King dismissed the Maid most graciously - as indeed was her desert - and
turning to me, said, "Take this signet-ring, son of the Paladins, and command me with
it in your day of need; and look you," said he, touching my temple, "preserve
this brain, France has use for it; and look well to its casket also, for I foresee that it
will be hooped with a ducal coronet one day." I took the ring, and knelt and kissed
his hand, saying, "Sire, where glory calls, there will be found; where danger and
death are thickest, that is my native air; when France and the throne need help - well, I
say nothing, for I am not of the talking sort - let my deeds speak for me, it is all I
ask."
So ended that most fortunate and memorable episode, so big with future weal for
the crown and the nation, and unto God be the thanks! Rise! Fill your flagons! Now - to
France and the King - drink!
They emptied them to the bottom, then burst into cheers and huzzas, and kept it up as
much as two minutes, the Paladin standing at stately ease the while and smiling
benignantly from his platform.
Chapter 8
When Joan told the King what that deep secret was that was torturing his heart, his
doubts were cleared away; he believed she was sent of God, and if he had been let alone he
would have set her upon her great mission at once. But he was not let alone. Tremouille
and the holy fox of Rheims knew their man. All they needed to way was this - and they said
it:
Your Highness says her Voices have revealed to you, by her mouth, a secret known
only to yourself and God. How can you know that her Voices are not of Satan, and she his
mouthpiece? - for does not Satan know the secrets of men and use his knowledge for the
destruction of their souls? It is a dangerous business, and your Highness will do well not
to proceed in it without probing the matter to the bottom.
That was enough. It shrivelled up the King's little soul like a raisin, with terrors
and apprehensions, and straightway he privately appointed a commission of bishops to visit
and question Joan daily until they should find out whether her supernatural helps hailed
from heaven or from hell.
The Kings relative, the Duke of Alençon, three years prisoner of war to the
English, was in these days released from captivity through promise of a great ransom; and
the name and fame of the Maid having reached him - for the same filled all mouths now, and
penetrated to all parts - he came to Chinon to see with his own eyes what manner of
creature she might be. The King sent for Joan and introduced her to the Duke. She said, in
her simple fashion:
You are welcome; the more of the blood of France that is joined to this cause,
the better for the cause and it.
Then the two talked together, and there was just the usual result: when they parted,
the Duke was her friend and advocate.
Joan attended the King's mass the next day, and afterward dined with the King and the
Duke. The King was learning to prize her company and value her conversation; and that
might well be, for, like other kings, he was used to getting nothing out of peoples
talk but guarded phrases, colourless and non-committal, or carefully tinted to tally with
the colour of what he said himself; and so this kind of conversation only vexes and bores,
and is wearisome; but Joans talk was fresh and free, sincere and honest, and
unmarred by timorous self-watching and constraint. She said the very thing that was in her
mind, and said it in a plain, straightforward way. One can believe that to the King this
must have been like fresh cold water from the mountains to parched lips used to the water
of the sun-baked puddles of the plain.
After dinner Joan so charmed the Duke with her horsemanship and lance practice in the
meadows by the Castle of Chinon, whither the King also had come to look on, that he made
her a present of a great black war-steed.
Every day the commission of bishops came and questioned Joan about her Voices and her
mission, and then went to the King with their report. These pryings accomplished but
little. She told as much as she considered advisable, and kept the rest to herself. Both
threats and trickeries were wasted upon her. She did not care for the threats, and the
traps caught nothing. She was perfectly frank and childlike about these things. She knew
the bishops were sent by the King, that their questions were the Kings questions,
and that by all law and custom a Kings question must be answered; yet she
told the King in her naïve way at his own table one day that she answered only such of
those questions as suited her.
The bishops finally concluded that they couldnt tell whether Joan was sent by God
or not. They were cautious, you see. There were two powerful parties at Court; therefore
to make a decision either way would infallibly embroil them with one of those parties; so
it seemed to the wisest to roost on the fence and shift the burden to other shoulders. And
that is what they did. They made their final report that Joans case was beyond their
powers, and recommended that it be put into the hands of the learned and illustrious
doctors of the University of Poitiers. Then they retired from the field, leaving behind
them this little item of testimony, wrung from them by Joans wise reticence: they
said she was a gentle and simple little shepherdess, very candid, but not given
to talking.
It was quite true - in their case. But if they could have looked back and seen her with
us in the happy pastures of Domremy, they would have perceived that she had a tongue that
could go fast enough when no harm could come of her words.
So we travelled to Poitiers, to endure there three weeks of tedious delay while this
poor child was being daily questioned and badgered before a great bench of - what?
Military experts? - since what she had come to apply for was an army and the privilege of
leading it to battle against the enemies of France. Oh no; it was a great bench of priests
and monks - profoundly learned and astute casuists - renowned professors of theology!
Instead of setting a military commission to find out if this valorous little soldier could
win victories, they set a company of holy hair-splitters and phrasemongers to work to find
out if the soldier was sound in her piety and had no doctrinal leaks. The rats were
devouring the house, but instead of examining the cats teeth and claws, they only
concerned themselves to find out if it was a holy cat. If it was a pious cat, a moral cat,
all right, never mind about the other capabilities, they were of no consequence.
Joan was as sweetly self-possessed and tranquil before this grim tribunal, with its
robed celebrities, its solemn state and imposing ceremonials, as if she were but a
spectator and not herself on trial. She sat there, solitary on her bench, untroubled, and
disconcerted the science of the sages with her sublime ignorance - an ignorance which was
a fortress; arts, wiles, the learning drawn from books, and all like missiles rebounded
from its unconscious masonry and fell to the ground harmless; they could not dislodge the
garrison which was within - Joans serene heart and spirit, the guards and keepers of
her mission.
She answered all questions frankly, and she told all the story of her visions and of
her experiences with the angels and what they said to her; and the manner of the telling
was so unaffected, and so earnest and sincere, and made it all seem so life-like and real,
that even that hard practical Court forgot itself and sat motionless and mute, listening
with a charmed and wondering interest to the end. And if you would have other testimony
than mine. Look in the histories and you will find where an eye-witness, giving sworn
testimony in the Rehabilitation process, says that she told that tale with a noble
dignity and simplicity, and as to its effect, says in substance what I have said.
Seventeen, she was - seventeen, and all alone on her bench by herself; yet was not afraid,
but faced that great company of erudite doctors of law and theology, and by the help of no
art learned in the schools, but using only the enchantments which were hers by nature, of
youth, sincerity, a voice soft and musical, and an eloquence whose source was the heart,
not the head, she laid that spell upon them. Now was not that a beautiful thing to see? If
I could, I would put it before you just as I saw it; then I know what you would say.
As I have told you, she could not read. One day they harried and pestered her with
arguments, reasonings, objections and other windy and wordy trivialities, gathered out of
the works of this and that and the other great theological authority, until at last her
patience vanished, and she turned upon them and said:
I dont know A from B; but I know this: that I am come by command of the
Lord of Heaven to deliver Orleans from the English power and crown the King at Rheims, and
the matters ye are puttering over are of no consequence!
Necessarily those were trying days for her, and wearing for everybody that took part;
but her share was the hardest, for she had no holidays, but must be always on hand and
stay the long hours through, whereas this, that, and the other inquisitor could absent
himself and rest up from his fatigues when he got worn out. And yet she showed no wear, no
weariness, and but seldom let fly her temper. As a rule she put her day through calm,
alert, patient, fencing with those veteran masters of scholarly sword-play and coming out
always without a scratch.
One day a Dominican sprung upon her a question which made everybody cock up his ears
with interest; as for me, I trembled, and said to myself she is caught this time, poor
Joan, for there is no way of answering this. The sly Dominican began in this way - in a
sort of indolent fashion, as if the thing he was about was a matter of no moment:
You assert that God has willed to deliver France from this English bondage?
Yes, He has willed it.
You wish for men-at-arms, so that you may go to the relief of Orleans, I
believe?
Yes - and the sooner the better.
God is all-powerful, and able to do whatsoever thing He wills to do, is it not
so?
Most surely. None doubts it.
The Dominican lifted his head suddenly, and sprung that question I have spoken of, with
exultation:
Then answer me this. If He has willed to deliver France, and is able to do
whatsoever He wills, where is the need for men-at-arms?
There was a fine stir and commotion when he said that, and a sudden thrusting forward
of heads and putting up of hands to ears to catch the answer; and the Dominican wagged his
head with satisfaction, and looked about him collecting his applause, for it shone in
every face. But Joan was not disturbed. There was no note of disquiet in her voice when
she answered:
He helps who help themselves. The sons of France will fight the battle, but He will give the victory!
You could see a light of admiration sweep the house from face to face like a ray from
the sun. Even the Dominican himself looked pleased, to see his master-stroke so neatly
parried, and I heard a venerable bishop mutter, in the phrasing common to priest and
people in that robust time, By God, the child has said true. He willed that Goliath
should be slain, and He sent a child like this to do it!
Another day, when the inquisition had dragged along until everybody looked drowsy and
tired but Joan, brother Séguin, professor of theology in the University of Poitiers, who
was a sour and sarcastic man, fell to prying Joan with all sorts of nagging questions in
his bastard Limousin French - for he was from Limoges. Finally he said:
How is it that you could understand those angels? What language did they
speak?
French.
Indeed! How pleasant to know that our language is so honoured! Good French?
Yes - perfect.
Perfect, eh? Well, certainly you ought to know. It was even better then
your own, eh?
As to that, I - I believe I cannot say, she said, and was going on, but
stopped. Then she added, almost as if she were saying it to herself, Still, it was
an improvement on yours!
I knew there was a chuckle back of her eyes, for all their innocence. Everybody
shouted. Brother Séguin was nettled, and asked brusquely:
Do you believe in God?
Joan answered with an irritating nonchalance:
Oh, well, yes - better than you, it is likely.
Brother Séguin lost his patience, and heaped sarcasm after sarcasm upon her, and
finally burst out in angry earnest, exclaiming:
Very well, I can tell you this, you whose belief in God is so great: God has not
willed that any shall believe in you without a sign. Where is you sign? - show it!
This roused Joan, and she was on her feet in a moment, and flung out her retort with
spirit:
I have not come to Poitiers to show signs and do miracles. Send me to Orleans and
you shall have signs enough. Give me men-at-arms - few or many - and let me go!
The fire was leaping from her eyes - ah, the heroic little figure! cant you see
her? There was a great burst of acclamation, and she sat down blushing, for it was not in
her delicate nature to like being conspicuous.
This speech and that episode about the French language scored two points against
Brother Séguin, while he scored nothing against Joan; yet, sour man as he was, he was a
manly man, and honest, as you can see by the histories; for at the Rehabilitation he could
have hidden those unlucky incidents if he had chosen, but he didnt do it, but spoke
them right out in his evidence.
On one of the later days of that three weeks session the gowned scholars and
professors made one grand assault all along the line, fairly overwhelming Joan with
objections and arguments culled from the writings of every ancient and illustrious
authority of the Roman Church. She was well nigh smothered; but at last she shook herself
free and struck back, crying out:
Listen! The Book of God is worth more than all these ye cite, and I stand upon it.
And I tell ye there are things in that Book that not one among ye can read, with all your
learning!
From the first she was the guest by invitation, of the dame De Rabateau, wife of the a
councillor of the Parliament of Poitiers; and to that house the great ladies of the city
came nightly to see Joan and talk with her; and not these only, but the old lawyers,
councillors, and scholars of the Parliament and the University. And these grave men,
accustomed to weigh every strange and questionable thing, and cautiously consider it, and
turn it about this way and that and still doubt it, came night after night, and night
after night, falling ever deeper and deeper under the influence of that mysterious
something, that spell, that elusive and unwordable fascination, which was the supremest
endowment of Joan of Arc, that winning and persuasive and convincing something which high
and low alike recognised and felt, but which neither high nor low could explain or
describe; and one by one they all surrendered, saying, This child is sent of
God.
All day long Joan, in the great court and subject to its rigid rules of procedure, was
at a disadvantage; her judges had things their own way; but at night she held court
herself, and matters were reversed, she presiding, with her tongue free and her same
judges there before her. There could be but one result; all the objections and hinderances
they could build around her with their hard labours of the day she would charm away at
night. In the end, she carried her judges with her in a mass, and got her great verdict
without a dissenting voice.
The court was a sight to see when the president of it read it from his throne, for all
the great people of the town were there who could get admission and find room. First there
were some solemn ceremonies, proper and usual at such times; then, when there was silence
again, the reading followed, penetrating the deep hush so that every word was heard in
even the remotest parts of the house:
It is found, and is hereby declared, that Joan of Arc, called the Maid, as a good
Christian and good Catholic; that there is nothing in her person or her words contrary to
the faith; and that the King may and ought to accept the succour she offers; for to repel
it would be to offend the Holy Spirit, and render him unworthy of the aid of God.
The court rose, and then the storm of plaudits burst forth unrebuked, dying down and
bursting forth again and again, and I lost sight of Joan, for she was swallowed up in a
great tide of people who rushed to congratulate her and pour our benedictions upon her and
upon the cause of France, now solemnly and irrevocably delivered in her little hands.
Chapter 9
It was indeed a great day, and a stirring thing to see.
She had won! It was a mistake of Tremouille and her other ill-wishers to let her hold
court those nights.
The commission of priests sent to Lorraine ostensibly to inquire into Joans
character - in fact to weary her with delays and wear out her purpose and make her give it
up - arrived back and reported her character perfect. Our affairs were in full career now,
you see.
The verdict made a prodigious stir. Dead France woke suddenly to life, wherever the
great news travelled. Whereas before, the spiritless and cowed people hung their heads and
slunk away if one mentioned war to them, now they came clamouring to be enlisted under the
banner of the Maid of Vaucouleurs, and the roaring of war songs and the thundering of the
drums filled all the air. I remembered now what she had said, that time there in our
village when I proved by facts and statistics that Frances case was hopeless, and
nothing could ever rouse the people from their lethargy:
They will hear the drums - and they will answer, they will march!
It has been said that misfortunes never come one at a time, but in a body. In our case
it was the same with good luck. Having got a start it came flooding in, tide after tide.
Our next wave of it was of this sort. There had been grave doubts among the priests as to
whether the Church ought to permit a female soldier to dress like a man. But now came a
verdict on that head. Two of the greatest scholars and theologians of the time - one of
whom had been Chancellor of the University of Paris - rendered it. They decided that since
Joan must do the work of a man and a soldier, it is just and legitimate that her
apparel should conform to the situation.
It was a great point gained, the Churchs authority to dress as a man. Oh yes,
wave on wave the good luck came sweeping in. Never mind about the smaller waves, let us
come to the largest one of all, the wave that swept us small fry quite off our feet and
almost drowned us with joy. The day of the great verdict, couriers had been despatched to
the King with it, and the next morning bright and early the clear notes of a bugle came
floating to us on the crisp air, and we pricked up our ears and began to count them. One -
two - three; pause; one - two; pause; one - two - three, again - and out we skipped and
went flying; for that formula was used only when the Kings herald-at arms would
deliver a proclamation to the people. As we hurried along, people came racing out of every
street and house and alley, men, women, and children, all flushed, excited, and throwing
lacking articles of clothing on as they ran; still those clear notes pealed out, and still
the rush of people increased till the whole town was abroad and streaming along the
principal street. At last we reached the square, which was now packed with citizens, and
there, high on the pedestal of the great cross, we saw the herald in his brilliant
costume, with his servitors about him. The next moment he began his delivery in the
powerful voice proper to his office:
Know all men, and take heed therefore, that the most high, the most illustrious
Charles, by the grace of God King of France, hath been pleased to confer upon his
well-beloved servant Joan of Arc, called the Maid, the title, emoluments, authorities, and
dignity of General-in-Chief of the Armies of France -
Here a thousand caps flew into the air, and the multitude burst into hurricane of
cheers that raged and raged till it seemed as if it would never come to an end; but at
last it did; then the herald went on and finished:
- and hath appointed to be her lieutenant and chief of staff a prince of his
royal house, his grace the Duke of Alençon!
That was the end, and the hurricane began again, and was split up into innumerable
strips by the blowers of it and wafted through all the lanes and streets of the town.
General of the Armies of France, with a prince of the blood for subordinate! Yesterday
she was nothing - today she was this. Yesterday she was not even a sergeant, not even a
corporal, not even a private - today, with one step, she was at the top. Yesterday she was
less than nobody to the newest recruit - today her command was law to La Hire,
Saintrailles, the Bastard of Orleans, and all those others, veterans of old renown,
illustrious masters of the trade of war. These were the thoughts I was thinking; I was
trying to realise this strange and wonderful thing that had happened, you see.
My mind went ravelling back, and presently lighted upon a picture - a picture which was
still so new and fresh in my memory that it seemed a matter of only yesterday - and indeed
its date was no further back than the first days of January. This is what it was. A
peasant girl in a far-off village, her seventeenth year not yet quite completed, and
herself and her village as unknown as if they had been on the other side of the globe. She
had picked up a friendless wanderer somewhere and brought it home - a small grey kitten in
a forlorn and starving condition - and had fed it and comforted it and got its confidence
and made it believe in her, and now it was curled up in her lap asleep, and she was
knitting a coarse stocking and thinking - dreaming - about what, one may never know. And
yet already the girl is General of the Armies of France, with a prince of the blood to
give orders to, and out of her village obscurity her name has climbed up like the sun and
is visible from all corners of the land! It made me dizzy to think of these things, they
were so out of the common order, and seemed so impossible.
Chapter 10
Joans first official act was to dictate a letter to the English commanders at
Orleans, summoning them to deliver up all strongholds in their possession and depart out
of France. She must have been thinking it all out before and arranging it in her mind, it
flowed from her lips so smoothly, and framed itself into such vivacious and forcible
language. Still, it might not have been so; she always had a quick mind and a capable
tongue, and her faculties were constantly developing in these latter weeks. This letter
was to be forwarded presently from Blois. Men, provisions and money were offering in
plenty now, and Joan appointed Blois as a recruiting station and depot of supplies, and
ordered up La Hire from the front to take charge.
The Great Bastard - him of the ducal house, and governor of Orleans - had been
clamouring for weeks for Joan to be sent to him, and now came another messenger, old
DAulon, a veteran officer, a trusty man and fine and honest. The King kept him, and
gave him to Joan to be chief of her household, and commanded her to appoint the rest of
her people herself, making their number and dignity accord with the greatness of her
office; and at the same time he gave order that they should be properly equipped with
arms, clothing, and horses.
Meantime the King was having a complete suit of armour made for her at Tours. It was of
the finest steel, heavily plated with silver, richly ornamented with engraved designs, and
polished like a mirror.
Joans Voices had told her that there was an ancient sword hidden somewhere behind
the altar of St Catherines at Fierbois, and she sent De Metz to get it. The priests
knew of no such sword, but a search was made, and sure enough it was found in that place,
buried a little way under the ground. It had no sheath and was very rusty, but the priests
polished it up and sent it to Tours, whither we were now to come. They also had a sheath
of crimson velvet made for it, and the people of Tours equipped it with another one, made
of cloth of gold. But Joan meant to carry this sword always in battle; so she laid the
showy sheaths away and got one made of leather. It was generally believed that this sword
had belonged to Charlemagne, but that was only a matter of opinion. I wanted to sharpen
the old blade, but she said it was not necessary as she should never kill anybody, and
should carry it only as a symbol of authority.
At Tours she designed her Standard, and a Scotch painter named James Power made it. It
was of the most delicate white boucassin, with fringes of silk. For device it
bore the image of God the Father throned in the clouds and holding the world in His hand;
two angels knelt at His feet, presenting lilies; inscription, JESUS, MARIA; on the reverse
the crown of France supported by two angels.
She also caused a smaller standard or pennon to be made, whereon was represented an
angel offering a lily to the Holy Virgin.
Everything has humming, there at Tours. Every now and then one heard the bray and crash
of military music, every little while one heard the measured tramp of marching men -
squads of recruits leaving for Blois; songs and shoutings and huzzas filled the air night
and day, the town was full of strangers, the streets and inns were thronged, the bustle of
preparation was everywhere, and everybody carried a glad and cheerful face. Around
Joans headquarters a crowd of people was always massed, hoping for a glimpse of the
new General, and when they got it, they went wild, but they seldom got it, for she was
busy planning her campaign, receiving reports, giving orders, despatching couriers, and
giving what odd moments she could spare to the companies of great folk waiting in the
drawing-rooms. As for us boys, we hardly saw her at all, she was so occupied.
We were in a mixed state of mind - sometimes hopeful, sometimes not; mostly not. She
had not appointed her household yet - that was our trouble. We knew she was being overrun
with applications for places in it, and that these applications were backed by great names
and weighty influence, whereas we had nothing of the sort to recommend us. She could fill
her humblest places with titled folk - folk whose relationships would be a bulwark for her
and a valuable support at all times. In these circumstances would policy allow her to
consider us? We were not as cheerful as the rest of the town, but were inclined to be
depressed and worried. Sometimes we discussed our slim chances, and gave them as good an
appearance as we could. But the very mention of the subject was anguish to the Paladin;
for whereas we had some little hope, he had none at all. As a rule, Noël Rainguesson was
quite willing to let the dismal matter alone; but not when the Paladin was present. Once
we were talking the thing over, when Noël said:
Cheer up, Paladin; I had a dream last night, and you were the only one among us
that got an appointment. It wasnt a high one, but it was an appointment, anyway -
some kind of lackey or body-servant, or something of that kind.
The Paladin roused up and looked almost cheerful; for he was a believer in dreams, and
in anything and everything of a superstitious sort, in fact. He said, with a rising
hopefulness:
I wish it might come true. Do you think it will come true?
Certainly; I might almost say I know it will, for my dreams hardly ever
fail.
Noël, I could hug you if that dream could come true, I could indeed! To be
servant of the first General of France and have all the world hear of it, and the news go
back to the village and make those gawks stare that always said I wouldnt ever
amount to anything - wouldnt it be great! Do you think it will come true,
Noël? Dont you believe it will?
I do. Theres my hand on it.
Noël, if it comes true Ill never forget you - shake again! I should be
dressed in a noble livery, and the news would go to the village, and those animals would
say, "Him, lackey to the General-in-Chief, with the eyes of the whole world
on him, admiring - well, he has shot up into the sky, now, hasnt he?"
He began to walk the floor and pile castles in the air so fast and so high that we
could hardly keep up with him. Then all of a sudden all the joy went out of his face and
misery took its place, and he said:
Oh dear, it is all a mistake, it will never come true. I forgot about that
foolish business at Toul. I have kept out of her sight as much as I could, all these
weeks, hoping she would forget that and forgive it - but I know she never will. She
cant, of course. And, after all, I wasnt to blame. I did say she promised to
marry me, but they put me up to it and persuaded me, I swear they did! The vast
creature was almost crying. Then he pulled himself together and said, remorsefully,
It was the only lie Ive ever told, and -
He was drowned out with a chorus of groans and outraged exclamations; and before he
could begin again, one of DAulons liveried servants appeared and said we were
required at headquarters. We rose, and Noël said:
There - what did I tell you? I have a presentiment - the spirit of prophecy is
upon me. She is going to appoint him, and we are to go there and do him homage. Come
along!
But the Paladin was afraid to go, so we left him.
When we presently stood in the presence, in front of a crowd of glittering officers of
the army, Joan greeted us with a winning smile, and said she appointed all of us to places
in her household, for she wanted her old friends by her. It was a beautiful surprise to
have ourselves honoured like this when she could have had people of birth and consequence
instead, but we couldnt find our tongues to say so, she was become so great and so
high above us now. One at a time we stepped forward and each received his warrant from the
hand of our chief, DAulon. All of us had honourable places: the two knights stood
highest; then Joans two brothers; I was first page and secretary, a young gentleman
named Raimond was second page; Noël was her messenger; she had two heralds, and also a
chaplain and almoner, whose name was Jean Pasquerel. She had previously appointed a
maître dhôtel and a number of domestics. Now she looked around and said:
But where is the Paladin?
The Sieur Bertrand said:
He thought he was not sent for, your Excellency.
Now that is not well. Let him be called.
The Paladin entered humbly enough. He ventured no farther than just within the door. He
stopped there, looking embarrassed and afraid. Then Joan spoke pleasantly, and said:
I watched you on the road. You began badly, but improved. Of old you were a
fantastic talker, but there is a man in you, and I will bring it out. It was fine to
see the Paladin's face light up when she said that. Will you follow where I
lead?
Into the fire! he said; and I said to myself, By the ring of that, I
think she has turned this braggart into a hero. It is another of her miracles, I make no
doubt of it.
I believe you, said Joan. Here - take my banner. You will ride with
me in every field, and when France is saved you will give it me back.
He took the banner, which is now the most precious of the memorials that remain of Joan
of Arc, and his voice was unsteady with emotion when he said:
If I ever disgrace this trust, my comrades here will know how to do a
friends office upon my body, and this charge I lay upon them, as knowing they will
not fail me.
Chapter 11
Noel and I went back together - silent at first, and impressed. Finally No=EBl came up
out of his thinking and said:
The first shall be last and the last first - theres authority for this
surprise. But at the same time = wasnt it a lofty hoist for our big
bull!
It truly was; I am not over being stunned yet. It was the greatest place in her
gift.
Yes, it was. There are many generals, and she can create more; but there is only
one Standard-Bearer.
True. It is the most conspicuous place in the army, after her own.
And the most coveted and honourable. Sons of two dukes tried to get it, as we
know. and of all people in the world, this majestic windmill carries it off. Well,
isnt it a gigantic promotion, when you come to look at it!
Theres no doubt about it. Its a kind of copy of Joans own in
miniature.
I dont know how to account for it - do you?
Yes, without any trouble at all - that is, I think I do.
No=EBl was surprised at that, and glanced up quickly, as if to see if I was in earnest.
He said:
I thought you couldnt be in earnest, but I see you are. If you can make me
understand this puzzle, do it. Tell me what the explanation is.
I believe I can. You have noticed that our chief knight says a good many wise
things and has a thoughtful head on his shoulders. One day, riding along, we were talking
about Joans great talents, and he said, "But, greatest of all her gifts, she
has the seeing eye." I said, like an unthinking fool, "The seeing eye? - I
shouldnt count that for much, I suppose we all have it." "No," he
said; "very few have it." Then he explained, and made his meaning clear. He said
the common eye sees only the outside of things, and judges by that; but the seeing eye
pierces through and reads the heart and the soul, finding there capacities which the
outside didnt indicate or promise, and which the other kind of eye couldnt
detect. He said the mightiest military genius must fail and come to nothing if it have not
the seeing eye - that is to say, if it cannot read men and select its subordinates with an
infallible judgement. It sees as by intuition that this man is good for strategy, that one
for dash and dare-devil assault, the other for patient bull-dog persistence, and it
appoints each to his right place and wins; while the commander without the seeing eye
would give to each the others place and lose. He was right about Joan, and I saw it.
When she was a child and the tramp came one night, her father and all of us took him for a
rascal, but she saw the honest man through the rags. When I dined with the governor of
Vaucouleurs so long ago, I saw nothing in our two knights, though I sat with them and
talked with them two hours; Joan was there five minutes, and neither spoke with them nor
heard them speak, yet she marked them for men of worth and fidelity, and they have
confirmed her judgement. Whom has she sent for to take charge of this thundering rabble of
new recruits at Blois, made up of old disbanded Armagnac raiders, unspeakable hellions,
every one? Why, she has sent for Satan himself - that is to say, La Hire - that military
hurricane, that godless swashbuckler, that lurid conflagration of blasphemy, that Vesuvius
of profanity, for ever in eruption. Does he know how to deal with that mob of roving
devils? Better then any man that lives; for he is the head devil of this world his own
self, he is the match of the whole of them combined, and probably father of most of them.
She places him in temporary command until she can get to Blois herself - and then! Why,
then she will certainly take them in hand personally, or I dont know her as well as
I ought to, after all these years of intimacy. That will be a sight to see - that fair
spirit in her white armour, delivering her will to that muck-heap, that rag-pile, that
abandoned refuse of perdition.
La Hire! cried No=EBl, our hero of all these years - I do want to see
that man!
I too. His name stirs me just as it did when I was a little boy.
I want to hear him swear.
Of course. I would rather hear him swear than another man pray. He is the
frankest man there is, and the na=EFvest. Once when he was rebuked for pillaging on his
raids, he said it was nothing. I judge he is the right man to take temporary charge there
at Blois. Joan has cast the seeing eye upon him, you see.
Which brings us back to where we started. I have an honest affection for the
Paladin, and not merely because he is a good fellow, but because he is my child - I made
him what he is, the windiest blusterer and most catholic liar in the kingdom. Im
glad of his luck, but I hadnt the seeing eye. I shouldnt have chosen him for
the most dangerous post in the army; I should have placed him in the rear to kill the
wounded and violate the dead.
Well, we shall see. Joan probably knows what is in him better than we do. And
Ill give you another idea. When a person in Joan of Arcs position tells a man
he is brave, he believes it, and believing it is enough; in fact, to
believe yourself brave is to be brave; it is the one only essential thing.
Now youve hit it! cried No=EBl. Shes got the creating
mouth as well as the seeing eye! Ah yes, that is the thing. France was cowed and a coward;
Joan of Arc has spoken, and France is marching, with her head up!
I was summoned now, to write a letter from Joans dictation. During the next day
and night our several uniforms were made by the tailors, and our new armour provided. We
were beautiful to look upon now, whether clothed for peace or war. Clothed for peace, in
costly stuffs and rich colours, the Paladin was a tower dyed with the glories of the
sunset; plumed and sashed and iron-clad for war, he was a still statelier thing to look
at.
Orders had been issued for the march towards Blois. It was a clear, sharp beautiful
morning. As our showy great company trotted out in column, riding two and two, Joan and
the Duke of Alen=E7on in the lead, DAulon and the big standard-bearer next, and so
on, we made a handsome spectacle as you may well imagine, and as we ploughed through the
cheering crowd, with Joan bowing her plumed head to left and right and the sun glinting
from her silver mail, the spectators realised that the curtain was rolling up before their
eyes upon the first act of a prodigious drama, and their rising hopes were expressed in an
enthusiasm that increased with each moment, until at last one seemed to even physically
feel the concussion of the huzzas as well as hear them. Far down the street we hear the
softened strains of wind-blown music, and saw a cloud of lancers moving, the sun glowing
with a subdued light upon the massed armour but striking bright upon the soaring
lance-heads - a vaguely luminous nebula, so to speak, with a constellation twinkling above
it - and that was our guard of honour. It joined us, the procession was complete, the
first war-march of Joan of Arc was begun, the curtain was up.
Chapter 12
We were at Blois three days. Oh, that camp, it is one of the treasures of my memory!
Order? There was no more order among those brigands than there is among the wolves and the
hyenas. They went roaring and drinking about, whooping, shouting, swearing, and
entertaining themselves with all manner of rude and riotous horse-play; and the place was
full of loud and lewd women, and they were no whit behind the men for romps and noise and
fantastics.
It was in the midst of this wild mob that Noël and I had our first glimpse of La Hire.
He answered to our dearest dreams. He was of great size and of martial bearing, he was
cased in mail from head to heel, with a bushel of swishing plumes on his helmet, and at
his side the vast sword of the time.
He was on his way to pay his respects in state to Joan, and as he passed through the
camp he was restoring order, and proclaiming that the Maid was come, and he would have no
such spectacle as this exposed to the head of the army. His way of creating order was his
own, not borrowed. He did it with his great fists. As he moved along swearing and
admonishing, he let drive this way, that way, and the other, and wherever his blow landed,
a man went down.
Damn you! he said, staggering and cursing around like this, and the
Commander-in-Chief in the camp! Straighten up! and he laid the man flat. What his
idea of straightening up was, was his own secret.
We followed the veteran to headquarters, listening, observing, admiring - yes,
devouring, you may say, the pet hero of the boys of France from our cradles up to that
happy day, and their idols and ours. I called to mind how Joan had once rebuked the
Paladin, there in the pastures of Domremy, for uttering lightly those mighty names, La
Hire and the Bastard of Orleans, and how she said that if she could be permitted to stand
afar off and let her eyes rest once upon those great men, she would hold it a privilege.
They were to her and the other girls just what they were to the boys. Well, here was one
of them at last - and what was his errand? It was hard to realise it, and yet it was true;
he was coming to uncover his head before her and take her orders.
While he was quieting a considerable group of his brigands in his soothing way, near
headquarters, we stepped on ahead and got a glimpse of Joans military family, the
great chiefs of the army, for they had all arrived now. There they were, six officers of
wide renown, handsome men in beautiful armour, but the Lord High Admiral of France was the
handsomest of them all and had the most gallant bearing.
When La Hire entered, one could see the surprise in his face at Joans beauty and
extreme youth, and one could see, too, by Joans glad smile, that it made her happy
to get sight of this hero of her childhood at last. La Hire bowed low, with his helmet in
his gauntleted hand, and made a bluff but handsome speech with hardly an oath in it, and
one could see that those two took to each other on the spot.
The visit of ceremony was soon over, and the others went away; but La Hire stayed, and
he and Joan sat there, and he sipped her wine, and they talked and laughed together like
old friends. And presently she gave him some instructions, in his quality as master of the
camp, which made his breath stand still. For, to begin with, she said that all those loose
women must pack out of the place at once, she wouldnt allow one of them to remain.
Next, the rough carousing must stop, drinking must be brought within proper and strictly
defined limits, and discipline must take the place of disorder. And finally she climaxed
the list of surprises with this - which nearly lifted him out of his armour:
Every man who joins my standard must confess before the priest and absolve
himself from sin; and all accepted recruits must be present at divine service twice a
day.
La Hire could not say a word for a good part of a minute, then he said, in deep
dejection:
Oh, sweet child, they were littered in hell, these poor darlings of mine! Attend
mass? Why, dear heart, theyll see us both damned first!
And he went on, pouring out a most pathetic stream of arguments and blasphemy, which
broke Joan all up, and made her laugh as she had not laughed since she played in the
Domremy pastures. It was good to hear.
But she stuck to her point, so the soldier yielded, and said all right, if such were
the orders he must obey, and would do the best that was in him; then he refreshed himself
with a lurid explosion of oaths, and said that if any man in the camp refused to renounce
sin and lead a pious life, he would knock his head off. That started Joan off again: she
was really having a good time, you see. But she would not consent to that form of
conversions. She said they must be voluntary.
La Hire said that that was all right, he wasnt going to kill the voluntary ones,
but only the others.
No matter, none of them must be killed - Joan couldnt have it. She said that to
give a man a chance to volunteer, on pain of death if he didnt, left him more or
less trammelled, and she wanted him to be entirely free.
So the soldier sighed and said he would advertise the mass, but said he doubted if
there was a man in camp that was any more likely to go to it then he was himself. Then
there was another surprise for him, for Joan said:
But dear man, you are going!
I? Impossible! Oh, this is lunacy!
Oh, no it isnt. You are going to the service twice a day.
Oh, am I dreaming? Am I drunk - or is my hearing playing me false? Why, I would
rather go to -
Never mind where. In the morning you are going to begin, and after that it will
come easy. Now dont look down-hearted like that. Soon you wont mind
it.
La Hire tried to cheer up, but he was not able to do it. He sighed like a zephyr, and
presently said:
Well, Ill do it for you, but before I would do it for another, I swear I
-
But dont swear. Break it off.
Break it off? It is impossible. I beg you to - to - Why - oh, my General, it is
my native speech!
He begged so hard for grace for his impediment, that Joan left him one fragment of it;
she said he might swear by his bâton, the symbol of his generalship.
He promised that he would swear only by his bâton when in her presence, and would try
to modify himself elsewhere, but doubted if he could manage it, now that it was so old and
stubborn a habit, and such a solace and support to his declining years.
That tough old lion went away from there a good deal tamed and civilised - not to say
softened and sweetened, for perhaps those expressions would hardly fit him. Noël and I
believed that when he was away from Joans influence his old aversions would come up
so strong in him that he could not master them, and so wouldnt go to mass. But we
got up early in the morning to see.
Well, he really went. It was hardly believable, but there he was, striding along,
holding himself grimly to his duty, and looking as pious as he could, but growling and
cursing like a fiend. It was another instance of the same old thing; whoever listened to
the voice and looked into the eyes of Joan of Arc fell under a spell, and was not his own
man any more.
Satan was converted, you see. Well, the rest followed. Joan rode up and down that camp,
and wherever that fair young form appeared in its shining armour, with that sweet face to
grace the vision and perfect it, the rude host seemed to think they saw the god of war in
person, descended out of the clouds; and first they wondered, then they worshipped. After
that, she could do with them what she would.
In three days it was a clean camp and orderly, and those barbarians were herding the
divine service twice a day like good children. The women were gone. La Hire was stunned by
these marvels; he could not understand them. He went outside the camp when he wanted to
swear. He was that sort of a man - sinful by nature and habit, but full of superstitious
respect for holy places.
The enthusiasm of the reformed army for Joan, its devotion to her, and the hot desire
she had aroused in it to be led against the enemy, exceeded any manifestations of this
sort which La Hire had ever seen before in his long career. His admiration of it all, and
his wonder over the mystery and miracle of it, were beyond his power to put into words. He
had held this army cheap before, but his pride and confidence in it knew no limits now. He
said:
Two or three days ago it was afraid of a hen-roost; one could storm the gates of
hell with it now.
Joan and he were inseparable, and a quaint and pleasant contrast they made. He was so
big, she so little; he was so grey and so far along in his pilgrimage of life, she so
youthful; his face was so bronzed and scarred, hers so fair and pink, so fresh and smooth;
she was so gracious, and he so stern; she was so pure, so innocent, he such a cyclopaedia
of sin. In her eye was stored all charity and compassion, in his lightnings; when her
glance fell upon you it seemed to bring benediction and the peace of God, but with his it
was different generally.
They rode through the camp a dozen times a day, visiting every corner of it, observing,
inspecting, perfecting; and wherever they appeared, the enthusiasm broke forth. They rode
side by side, he a great figure of brawn and muscle, she a little master-work of roundness
and grace; he a fortress of rusty iron, she a shining statuette of silver; and when the
reformed raiders and bandits caught sight of them they spoke out, with affection and
welcome in their voices, and said:
There they come - Satan and the Page of Christ!
All the three days that we were in Blois, Joan worked earnestly and tirelessly to bring
La Hire to God - to rescue him from the bondage of sin - to breathe into his stormy heart
the serenity and peace of religion. She urged, she begged, she implored him to pray. He
stood out, the three days of our stay, begging almost piteously to be let off - to be let
off from just that one thing, that impossible thing; he would do anything else - anything
- command, and he would obey - he would go through the fire for her, if she said the word
- but spare him this, only this, for he couldnt pray, had never prayed, he was
ignorant of how to frame a prayer, he had no words to put it in.
And yet - can any believe it? - she carried even that point, she won that incredible
victory. She made La Hire pray. It shows, I think, that nothing was impossible to Joan of
Arc. Yes, he stood there before her and put up his mailed hands and made a prayer. And it
was not borrowed, but his very own; he had none to help him frame it, he made it out of
his own head - saying:
Fair Sir God, I pray you to do by La Hire as he would do by you if you were La
Hire and he were God.
[This prayer has been stolen many times and by many nations in the past four hundred and
sixty years, but it originated with La Hire, and the fact is of official record in the
National Archives of France. We have the authority of Michelet for this. - Translator]
Then he put on his helmet and marched out of Joans tent as satisfied with himself
as any one might be who has arranged a perplexed and difficult business to the content and
admiration of all the parties concerned in the matter.
If I had known that he had been praying, I could have understood why he was feeling so
superior, but of course I could not know that.
I was coming to the tent at that moment, and saw him come out, and saw him march away
in that large fashion, and indeed it was fine and beautiful to see. But when I got to the
tent door I stopped and stepped back, grieved and shocked, for I heard Joan crying, as I
mistakenly thought - crying as if she could not contain nor endure the anguish of her
soul, crying as if she would die. But it was not so, she was laughing - laughing at La
Hires prayer.
It was not until six-and-thirty years afterwards that I found out, and then - oh, then
I only cried when that picture of young care-free mirth rose before me out of the blur and
mists of that long-vanished time; for there had come a day between, when Gods good
gift of laughter had gone out from me to come again no more in this life.
Chapter 13
We marched out in great strength and splendour, and took the road toward Orleans. The
initial part of Joans great dream was realising itself at last. It was the first
time that any of us youngsters had ever seen an army, and it was a most stately and
imposing spectacle to us. It was indeed an inspiring sight, that interminable column,
stretching away into the fading distances, and curving itself in and out of the
crookedness of the road like a mighty serpent. Joan rode at the head of it with her
personal staff; then came a body of priests singing the Veni Creator, the banner
of the Cross rising out of their midst; after these the glinting forest of spears. The
several divisions were commanded by the great Armagnac generals, La Hire, the Marshall de
Boussac, the Sire de Retz, Florent dIlliers, and Poton de Saintrailles.
Each in his degree was tough, and there were three degrees - tough, tougher, toughest -
and La Hire was the last by a shade, but only a shade. They were just illustrious official
brigands, the whole party; and by long habits of lawlessness they had lost all
acquaintanceship with obedience, if they had ever had any.
The Kings strict orders to them had been, Obey the General-in-Chief in
everything; attempt nothing without her knowledge, do nothing without her command.
But what was the good of saying that? These independent birds knew no law. They seldom
obeyed the King; they never obeyed him when it didn't suit them to do it. Would they obey
the Maid? In the first place they wouldnt know how to obey her or anybody
else, and in the second place it was of course not possible for them to take her military
character seriously - that country girl of seventeen who had been trained for the complex
and terrible business of war - how? By tending sheep.
They had no idea of obeying her except in cases where their veteran military knowledge
and experience showed them that the thing she required was sound and right when gauged by
the regular military standards. Were they to blame for this attitude? I should think not.
Old warworn captains are hard-headed, practical men. They do not easily believe in the
ability of ignorant children to plan campaigns and command armies. No general that ever
lived could have taken Joan seriously (militarily) before she raised the siege of Orleans
and followed it with the great campaign of the Loire.
Did they consider Joan valueless? Far from it. They valued her as the fruitful earth
values the sun - they fully believed she could produce the crop, but that it was in their
line of business, not hers, to take it off. They had a deep and superstitious reverence
for her as being endowed with a mysterious supernatural something that was able to do a
mighty thing which they were powerless to do - blow the breath of life and valour into the
dead corpses of cowed armies and turn them into heroes.
To their minds they were everything with her, but nothing without her. She
could inspire the soldiers and fit them for battle - but fight the battle herself? Oh,
nonsense - that was their function. They, the generals, would fight the battles, Joan
would give the victory. That was their idea - an unconscious paraphrase of Joans
reply to the Dominican.
So they began by playing a deception upon her. She had a clear idea of how she meant to
proceed. It was her purpose to march boldly upon Orleans by the north bank of the Loire.
She gave that order to her generals. They said to themselves, The idea is insane -
it is blunder No. 1; it is what might have been expected of this child who is ignorant of
war. They privately sent the word to the Bastard of Orleans. He also recognised the
insanity of it - at least he thought he did - and privately advised the generals to get
around the order in some way.
They did it by deceiving Joan. She trusted those people, she was not expecting this
sort of treatment, and was not on the look-out for it. It was a lesson to her; she saw to
it that the game was not played a second time.
Why was Joans idea insane, from the generals point of view, but not from
hers? Because her plan was to raise the siege immediately, by fighting, while theirs was
to besiege the besiegers and starve them out by closing their communications - a plan
which would require months in the consummation.
The English had built a fence of fortresses called bastilles around Orleans -
fortresses which closed all the gates of the city but one. To the French generals the idea
of trying to fight their way past those fortresses and lead the army into Orleans was
preposterous; they believed that the result would be the armys destruction. One may
not doubt that their opinion was militarily sound - no, would have been, but for
one circumstance which they overlooked. That was this: the English soldiers were in a
demoralised condition of superstitious terror, they had become satisfied that the Maid was
in league with Satan. By reason of this a good deal of their courage had oozed out and
vanished. On the other hand the Maids soldiers were full of courage, enthusiasm and
zeal.
Joan could have marched by the English forts. However, it was not to be. She had been
cheated out of her first chance to strike a heavy blow for her country.
In camp that night she slept in her armour on the ground. It was a cold night, and she
was nearly as stiff as her armour itself when we resumed the march in the morning, for
iron is not good material for a blanket. However, her joy in being now so far on her way
to the theatre of her mission was fire enough to warm her, and it soon did it.
Her enthusiasm and impatience rose higher and higher with every mile of progress; but
at last we reached Olivet, and down it went, and indignation took its place. For she saw
the trick that had been played upon her - the river lay between us and Orleans.
She was for attacking one of the three bastilles that were on our side of the river and
forcing access to the bridge which it guarded (a project which, if successful, would raise
the siege instantly), but the long-ingrained fear of the English came upon her generals,
and they implored her not to make the attempt. The soldiers wanted to attack, but had to
suffer disappointment. So we moved on and came to a halt at a point opposite Chécy, six
miles above Orleans.
Dunois, Bastard of Orleans, with a body of knights and citizens, came up from the city
to welcome Joan. Joan was still burning with resentment over the trick that had been put
upon her, and was not in the mood for soft speeches, even to revered military idols of her
childhood. She said:
Are you the Bastard of Orleans?
Yes, I am he, and am right glad of your coming.
And did you advise that I brought by this side of the river instead of straight to
Talbot and the English?
Her high manner abashed him, and he was not able to answer with anything like a
confident promptness, but with many hesitations and partial excuses he managed to get out
the confession that for what he and the council had regarded as imperative military
reasons they had so advised.
In Gods name, said Joan, my Lords counsel is safer and
wiser than yours. You thought to deceive me, but you have deceived yourselves, for I bring
you the best help that ever knight or city had; for it is Gods help, not sent for
love of me, but by Gods pleasure. At the prayer of St Louis and St Charlemagne He
has had pity on Orleans, and will not suffer the enemy to have both the Duke of Orleans
and his city. The provisions to save the starving people are here, the boats are below the
city, the wind is contrary, the cannot come up hither. Now then tell me, in Gods
name, you who are so wise, what that council of yours was thinking about, to invent this
foolish difficulty.
Dunois and the rest fumbled around the matter a moment, then gave in and conceded that
a blunder had been made.
Yes, a blunder has been made, said Joan, and except God take your
proper work upon Himself and change the wind and correct your blunder for you, there is
none else that can devise a remedy.
Some of those people began to perceive that with all her technical ignorance she had
practical good sense, and that with all her native sweetness and charm she was not the
right kind of a person to play with.
Presently God did take the blunder in hand, and by His grace the wind did change. So
the fleet of boats came up and went away and loaded with provisions and cattle, and
conveyed that welcome succour to the hungry city, managing the matter successfully under
protection of a sortie from the walls against the bastille of St Loup. Then Joan began on
the Bastard again:
You see here the army?
Yes.
It is here on this side by advice of your council?
Yes.
Now, in Gods name, can that wise council explain why it is better to have
it here than it would be to have it in the bottom of the sea?
Dunois made some wandering attempts to explain the inexplicable and excuse the
inexcusable, but Joan cut him short and said -
Answer me this, good sire - has the army any value on this side of the
river?
The Bastard confessed that it hadnt--that is, in view of the plan of campaign
which she had devised and decreed.
And yet, knowing this, you had the hardihood to disobey my orders. Since the
armys place is on the other side, will you explain to me how it is to get
there?
The whole size of the needless muddle was apparent. Evasions were of no use; therefore
Dunois admitted that there was no way to correct the blunder but to send the army all the
way back to Blois, and let it begin over again and come up on the other side this time,
according to Joans original plan.
Any other girl, after winning such a triumph as this over a veteran soldier of old
renown, might have exulted a little and been excusable for it, but Joan showed no
disposition of this sort. She dropped a word or two of grief over the precious time that
must be lost, then began at once to issue commands for the march back. She sorrowed to see
her army go; for she said its heart was great and its enthusiasm high, and that with it at
her back she did not fear to face all the might of England.
All arrangements having been completed for the return of the main body of the army, she
took the Bastard and La Hire and a thousand men and went down to Orleans, where all the
town was in a fever of impatience to have sight of her face. It was eight in the evening
when she and the troops rode in at the Burgundy gate, with the Paladin preceding her with
her standard. She was riding a white horse and she carried in her hand the sacred sword of
Fierbois. You should have seen Orleans then. What a picture it was! Such black seas of
people, such a starry firmament of torches, such roaring whirlwinds of welcome, such
booming bells and thundering cannon! It was as if the world was come to an end. Everywhere
in the glare of the torches one saw rank upon rank of upturned white faces, the mouths
wide open, shouting, and the unchecked tears running down; Joan forged her slow way
through the solid masses, her mailed form projecting above the pavement of heads like a
silver statue. The people about her struggled along, gazing up at her through their tears
with the rapt look of men and women who believe they are seeing one who is divine; and
always her feet were being kissed by grateful folk, and such as failed of that privilege
touched her horse and then kissed their fingers.
Nothing that Joan did escaped their notice; everything she did was commented upon and
applauded. You could hear the remarks going all the time.
There - shes smiling - see!
Now shes taking her little plumed cap off to somebody - ah, its fine
and graceful!
Shes patting that woman on the head with her gauntlet.
Oh, she was born on a horse - see her turn in her saddle, and kiss the hilt of
her sword, to the ladies in the window that threw the flowers down.
Now theres a poor woman lifting up a child - shes kissed it - oh,
shes divine!
What a dainty little figure it is, and what a lovely face - and such colour and
animation!
Joans slender long banner streaming backward had an accident - the fringe caught
fire from a torch. She leaned forward and crushed the flame in her hand.
Shes not afraid of fire nor anything! they shouted, and delivered a
storm of admiring applause that made everything quake.
She rode to the cathedral and gave thanks to God, and the people crammed the place and
added their devotions to hers; then she took up her march again and picked her slow way
through the crowds and the wilderness of torches to the house of Jacques Boucher,
treasurer of the Duke of Orleans, where she was to be the guest of his wife as long as she
stayed in the city, and have his young daughter for comrade and room-mate. The delirium of
the people went on the rest of the night, and with it the clamour of the joy-bells and the
welcoming cannon.
Joan of Arc had stepped upon her stage at last, and was ready to begin.
Chapter 14
She was ready, but must sit down and wait until there was an army to work with.
Next morning, Saturday, April 30, 1429, she set about inquiring after the messenger who
carried her proclamation to the English from Blois - the one which she had dictated at
Poitiers. Here is a copy of it. It is a remarkable document, for several reasons: for its
matter-of-fact directness, for its high spirit and forcible diction and for its naïve
confidence in her ability to achieve the prodigious task which she had laid upon herself,
or which had been laid upon her - which you please. All through it you seem to see the
pomps of war and hear the rumbling of the drums. It is Joans warrior soul is
revealed, and for the moment the soft little shepherdess has disappeared from your view.
This untaught country damsel, unused to dictating anything at all to anybody, much less
documents of state to kings and generals, poured out this procession of vigorous sentences
as fluently as if this sort of work had been her trade from childhood:
JESUS MARIA
King of England, and you Duke of Bedford who call yourself Regent of France; William
de la Pole, Earl of Suffolk; and you Thomas Lord Scales, who style yourselves lieutenants
of the said Bedford - do right to the King of Heaven. Render to the Maid who is sent by
God the keys of all the good towns you have taken and violated in France. She is sent
hither by God to restore the blood royal. She is very ready to make peace if you will do
her right by giving up France and paying for what you have held. And you archers,
companions of war, noble and otherwise, who are before the good city of Orleans, begone
into your own land in Gods name, or expect news from the Maid who will shortly go to
see you to your very great hurt. King of England, if you do not so, I am chief of war, and
wherever I shall find your people in France I will drive them out, willing or not willing;
and if they do not obey I will slay them all, but if they obey, I will have them to mercy.
I am come hither by God, the King of Heaven, body for body, to put you out of France, in
spite of those who would work treason and mischief against the kingdom. Think not you
shall ever hold the kingdom from the King of Heaven, the Son of the Blessed Mary; King
Charles shall hold it, for God wills it so, and has revealed it to him by the Maid. If you
believe not the news sent by God through the Maid, wherever we shall meet you we will
strike boldly and make such a noise as has not been in France these thousand years. Be
sure that God can send more strength to the Maid than you can bring to any assault against
her and her good men-at-arms; and then we shall see who has the better right, the King of
Heaven, or you. Duke of Bedford, the Maid prays you not to bring about your own
destruction. If you do her right, you may yet go in her company where the French shall do
the finest deed that has ever been done in Christendom, and if you do not, you shall be
reminded shortly of your great wrongs.
In that closing sentence she invites them to go on crusade with her to rescue the Holy
Sepulchre.
No answer had been returned to this proclamation, and the messenger himself had not
come back. So now she sent her two heralds with a new letter warning the English to raise
the siege and requiring them to restore that missing messenger. The heralds came back
without him. All they brought was notice from the English to Joan that they would
presently catch her and burn her if she did not clear out now while she had a chance, and
go back to her proper trade of minding cows.
She held her peace, only saying it was a pity that the English would persist in
inviting present disaster and eventual destruction when she was doing all she could
to get them out of the country with their lives still in their bodies.
Presently she thought of an arrangement that might be acceptable, and said to the
heralds, Go back and say to Lord Talbot this, from me: "Come out of your
bastilles with your host, and I will come with mine; if I beat you, go in peace out of
France; if you beat me, burn me, according to your desire."
I did not hear this, but Dunois did, and he spoke of it. The challenge was refused.
Sunday morning her Voices or some instinct gave her a warning, and she sent Dunois to
Blois to take command of the army and hurry to Orleans. It was a wise move, for he found
Regnault de Chartres and some more of the Kings pet rascals there trying their best
to disperse the army, and crippling all the efforts of Joans generals to head it for
Orleans. They were a fine lot, those miscreants. They turned their attention to Dunois,
now, but he had baulked Joan once, with unpleasant results to himself, and was not minded
to meddle in that way again. He soon had the army moving.
Chapter 15
We of the personal staff were in fairy-land, now, during the few days that we waited
for the return of the army. We went into society. To our two knights this was not a
novelty, but to us young villagers it was a new and wonderful life. Any position of any
sort near the person of the Maid of Vaucouleurs conferred high distinction upon the holder
and caused his society to be courted; and so the DArc brothers, and Noël, and the
Paladin, humble peasants at home, were gentlemen here, personages of weight and influence.
It was fine to see how soon their country diffidences and awkwardnesses melted away under
this pleasant sun of deference and disappeared, and how lightly and easily they took to
their new atmosphere. The Paladin was as happy as it was possible for any one in this
earth to be. His tongue went all the time, and daily he got new delight out of hearing
himself talk. He began to enlarge his ancestry and spread it out all around, and ennoble
it right and left, and it was not long until it consisted almost entirely of Dukes. He
worked up his old battles and tricked them out with fresh splendours; also with new
terrors, for he added artillery now. We had seen cannon for the first time at Blois - a
few pieces - here, there was plenty of it, and now and then we had the impressive
spectacle of a huge English bastille hidden from sight in a mountain of smoke from its own
guns, with lances of red flame darting through it; and this grand picture, along with the
quaking thunders pounding away in the heart of it, inflamed the Paladins imagination
and enabled him to dress out those ambuscade-skirmishes of ours with a sublimity which
made it impossible for any to recognise them at all except people who had not been there.
You may suspect that there was a special inspiration for these great efforts of the
Paladins, and there was. It was the daughter of the house, Catherine Boucher, who
was eighteen, and gentle and lovely in her ways, and very beautiful. I think she might
have been as beautiful as Joan herself, if she had had Joans eyes. But that could
never be. There was never but that one pair, there will never be another. Joans eyes
were deep and rich and wonderful beyond anything merely earthly. They spoke all the
languages - they had no need of words. They produced all effects - and just by a glance,
just a single glance: a glance that could convict a liar of his lie and make him confess
it; that could bring down a proud mans pride and make him humble; that could put
courage into a coward and strike dead the courage of the bravest; that could appease
resentments and real hatreds; that could speak peace to storms of passion and be obeyed;
that could purify the impure mind; that could persuade - ah, there it is - persuasion! that is the word; what or who is it that it couldnt persuade? The maniac of Domremy
- the fairy-banishing priest - the reverend tribunal of Toul - the doubting and
superstitious Laxart - the obstinate veteran of Vaucouleurs - the characterless heir of
France - the sages and scholars of the Parliament and University of Poitiers - the darling
of Satan, La Hire - the masterless Bastard of Orleans, accustomed to acknowledge no way as
right and rational but his own - these were the trophies of that great gift that made her
the wonder and mystery that she was.
We mingled companionably with the great folk who flocked to the big house to make
Joans acquaintance, and speak. But what he preferred even to this happiness was the
quieter occasions, when the formal guests were gone and the family and a few dozen of its
familiar friends were gathered together for a social good time. It was then that we did
our best, we five youngsters with such fascinations as we had, and the chief object of
them was Catherine. None of us had ever been in love before, and now we had the misfortune
to all fall in love with the same person at the same time - which was the first moment we
saw her. She was a merry heart, and full of life, and I still remember tenderly those few
evenings that I was permitted to have my share of her dear society and of comradeship with
that little company of charming people.
The Paladin made us all jealous the first night, for when he got fairly started on
those battles of his he had everything to himself, and there was no use in anybody
elses trying to get any attention. Those people had been living in the midst of real
war for seven months; and to hear this windy giant lay out his imaginary campaigns and
fairly swim in blood and spatter it all around, entertained them to the verge of the
grave. Catherine was like to die from pure enjoyment. She didnt laugh loud - we, of
course wished she would - but kept in the shelter of a fan, and shook until there was
danger that she would unhitch her ribs from her spine. Then when the Paladin had got done
with a battle and we began to feel thankful and hope for a change, she would speak up in a
way that was so sweet and persuasive that it rankled in me, and ask him about some detail
or other in the early part of his battle which she said had greatly interested her, and
would he be so good as to describe that part again, and with a little more particularity?
- which of course precipitated the whole battle on us again, with a hundred lies added
that had been overlooked before.
I do not know how to make you realise the pain I suffered. I had never been jealous
before, and it seemed intolerable that this creature should have this good fortune which
he was so ill entitled to, and I have to sit and see myself neglected when I was longing
for the least little attention out of the thousand that this beloved girl was lavishing
upon him. I was near her, and tried two or three times to get started on some of the
things that I had done in those battles - and I felt ashamed of myself, too, for
stooping to such a business - but she cared for nothing but his battles, and could not be
got to listen; and presently when one of my attempts caused her to lose some precious rag
or other of his mendacities and she asked him to repeat, thus bringing on a new engagement
of course and increasing the havoc and carnage tenfold, I felt so humiliated by this
pitiful miscarriage of mine that I gave up and tried no more.
The others were as outraged by the Paladin's selfish conduct as I was - and by his
grand luck, too, of course - perhaps, indeed, that was the main hurt. We talked our
trouble over together, which was but natural, for rivals become brothers when a common
affliction assails them and a common enemy bears off the victory.
Each of us would do things that would please and get notice if it were not for this
person, who occupied all the time and gave others no chance. I had made a poem, taking a
whole night to it - a poem in which I most happily and delicately celebrated that sweet
girls charms, without mentioning her name, but any one could see who was meant; for
the bare title - The Rose of Orleans - would reveal that, as it seemed to me.
It pictured this pure and dainty white rose as growing up out of the rude soil of war and
looking abroad out of its tender eyes upon the horrid machinery of death, and then - note
this conceit - it blushes for the sinful nature of man, and turns red in a single
night. Becomes a red rose, you see - a rose that was white before. The idea was my own,
and quite new. Then it sent its sweet perfume out over the embattled city, and when the
beleaguering forces smelt it they laid down their arms and wept. This was also my
own idea, and new. That closed that part of the poem; than I put her into the similitude
of the firmament - not the whole of it, but only part. That is to say, she was the moon,
and all the constellations were following her about, their hearts in flames for love of
her, but she would not halt, she would not listen, for twas thought she loved
another. Twas thought she loved a poor unworthy suppliant who was upon the earth,
facing danger, death, and possible mutilation in the bloody field, waging relentless war
against a heartless foe to save her from an all too early grave, and her city from
destruction. And when the sad pursuing constellations came to know and realise the bitter
sorrow that was come upon them - note this idea - their hearts broke and their tears
gushed forth, filling the vault of heaven with a fiery splendour, for those tears were falling
stars. It was a rash idea, but beautiful; beautiful and pathetic; wonderfully
pathetic, the way I had it, with the rhyme and all to help. At the end of each verse there
was a two-line refrain pitying the poor earthly lover separated so far, and perhaps for
ever, for her he loved so well, and growing always paler and weaker and thinner in his
agony as he neared the cruel grave - the most touching thing - even the boys themselves
could hardly keep back their tears, the way Noël said those lines. There were eight
four-stanzas in the first end of the poem - the end about the rose, the horticultural end,
as may say, if that is not too large a name for such a little poem - and eight in the
astronomical end - sixteen stanzas altogether, and I could have made it a hundred and
fifty if I had wanted to, I was so inspired and so all swelled up with beautiful thoughts
and fancies; but that would have been too many to sing or recite before a company, that
way, whereas sixteen was just right, and could be done over again, if desired.
The boys were amazed that I could make such a poem as that out of my own head, and so
was I, of course, it being as much a surprise to me as it could be to anybody, for I did
not know that it was in me. If any had asked me a single day before if it was in me, I
should have told them frankly no, it was not.
That is the way with us; we may go on half of our life not knowing such a thing is in
us, when in reality it was there all the time, and all we needed was something to turn up
that would call for it. Indeed, it was always so with our family. My grandfather had a
cancer, and they never knew what was the matter with him till he died, and he didnt
himself. It is wonderful how gifts and diseases can be concealed that way. All that was
necessary in my case was for this lovely and inspiring girl to cross my path, and out came
the poem, and no more trouble to me to word it and rhyme it and perfect it than it is to
stone a dog. No, I should have said it was not in me, but it was.
The boys couldnt say enough about it, they were so charmed and astonished. The
thing that pleased them the most was the way it would do the Paladins business for
him. They forgot everything in their anxiety to get him shelved and silenced. Noël
Rainguesson was clear beside himself with admiration of the poem, and wished he could do such a thing, but it was out of his line, and he couldnt, of course. He had
it by heart in half an hour, and there was never anything so pathetic and beautiful as the
way he recited it. For that was just his gift - that and mimicry. He could recite anything
better than anybody in the world, and he could take off La Hire to the very life - or
anybody else for that matter. Now I never could recite worth a farthing; and when I tried
with this poem the boys wouldnt let me finish; they would have nobody but Noël. So
then, as I wanted the poem to make the best possible impression on Catherine and the
company, I told Noël he might do the reciting. Never was anybody so delighted. He could
hardly believe that I was in earnest, but I was. I said that to have them know I was the
author of it would be enough for me. The boys were full of exultation, and Noël said if
he could just get one chance at those people it would be all he would ask; they would then
realise that there was something higher and finer than war-lies to be had here.
But how to get the opportunity - that was the difficulty. We invented several schemes
that promised fairly, and at last we hit upon one that was sure. That was, to let the
Paladin get a good start in a manufactured battle, and then send in a false call for him,
and as soon as he was out of the room, have Noël take his place and finish the battle
himself in the Paladins own style, imitated to a shade. That would get great
applause, and win the houses favour and put it in the right mood to hear the poem.
The two triumphs together would finish the Standard-Bearer - modify him, anyway, to a
certainty, and give the rest of us a chance for the future.
So the next night I kept out of the way until the Paladin had got his start and was
sweeping down upon the enemy like a whirlwind at the head of his corps, then I stepped
within the door in my official uniform and announced that a messenger from General La
Hires quarters desired speech with the Standard-Bearer. He left the room, and Noël
took his place and said that the interruption was to be deplored, but that fortunately he
was personally acquainted with the details of the battle himself, and if permitted would
be glad to state them to the company. Then without waiting for the permission he turned
himself into the Paladin - a dwarfed Paladin, of course - with manner, tones, gestures,
attitudes, everything exact, and went right on with the battle, and it would be impossible
to imagine a more perfect and minutely ridiculous imitation than he furnished to those
shrieking people. They went into spasms, convulsions, frenzies of laughter, and the tears
flowed down their cheeks in rivulets. The more they laughed, the more inspired Noël grew
with his theme and the greater the marvels he worked, till really the laughter was not
properly laughing, any more, but screaming. Blessedest feature of all, Catherine Boucher
was dying with ecstacies, and presently there was little left of her but gasps and
suffocations. Victory? It was a perfect Agincourt.
The Paladin was gone only a couple of minutes; he found out at once that a trick had
been played on him, so he came back. When he approached the door he heard Noël ranting in
there and recognised the state of the case; so he remained near the door but out of sight,
and heard the performance through to the end. The applause Noël got when he finished was
wonderful; and they kept it up and kept it up, clapping their hands like mad, and shouting
to him to do it over again.
But Noël was clever. He knew the very best background for a poem of deep and refined
sentiment and pathetic melancholy was one where great and satisfying merriment has
prepared the spirit for the powerful contrast.
So he paused until all was quiet, then his face grew grave and assumed an impressive
aspect, and at once all faces sobered in sympathy and took on a look of wondering and
expectant interest. Now he began in a low but distinct voice the opening verses of
The Rose. As he breathed the rhythmic measures forth, and one gracious line
after another fell upon those enchanted ears in that deep hush, one could catch, on every
hand, half-audible ejaculations of How lovely! - how beautiful! - how
exquisite!
By this time the Paladin, who had been gone away for a moment with the opening of the
poem, was back again and had stepped within the door. He stood there, now, resting his
great frame against the wall and gazing toward the reciter like one entranced. When Noël
got to the second part, and that heart-breaking refrain began to melt and move all
listeners, the Paladin began to wipe away tears with the back of first one hand and then
the other. The next time the refrain was repeated he got to snuffling, and sort of half
sobbing, and went to wiping his eyes with the sleeves of his doublet. He was so
conspicuous that he embarrassed Noël a little, and also had an ill effect upon the
audience. With the next repetition he broke quite down and began to cry like a calf, which
ruined all the spectacle; for he fetched out a towel from under his doublet and began to
swab his eyes with it and let go the most infernal bellowings mixed up with sobbings and
groanings and retchings and barkings and coughings and snortings and screamings and
howlings - and he twisted himself about on his heels and squirmed this way and that, still
pouring out that brutal clamour and flourishing his towel in the air and swabbing again
and wringing it out. Hear? You couldnt hear yourself think. Noël was wholly drowned
out and silenced, and those people were laughing the very lungs out of themselves. It was
the most degrading sight that ever was. Now I heard the clankety-clank that plate-armour
makes when the man that is in it is running, and then alongside my head there burst out
the most inhuman explosion of laughter that ever rent the drum of a persons ear, and
I looked, and it was La Hire; and there he stood there with his gauntlets on his hips and
his head tilted back and his jaws spread to that degree to indecent exposure, for you
could see everything that was in him. Only one thing more and worse could happen, and it
happened: at the other door I saw the flurry and bustle and bowings and scrapings of
officials and flunkeys which means that some great personage is coming - then Joan of Arc
stepped in, and the house rose! Yes, and tried to shut its indecorous mouth and make
itself grave and proper; but when it saw the Maid herself go to laughing, it thanked God
for this mercy and the earthquake followed.
Such things make life a bitterness, and I do not wish to dwell upon them. The effect of
the poem was spoiled.
Chapter 16
This episode disagreed with me and I was not able to leave my bed the next day. The
others were in the same condition. But for this, one or another of us might have had the
good luck that fell to the Paladins share that day; but it is observable that God in
His compassion sends the good luck to such as are ill equipped with gifts, as compensation
endowed to get by labour and talent what those others get by chance. It was Noël who said
this, and it seemed to me to be well and justly thought.
The Paladin, going about the town all the day in order to be followed and admired and
overhear the people say in an awed voice, Ssh! - look it is the Standard-Bearer of
Joan of Arc! had speech with all sorts and conditions of folk, and he learned from
some boatmen that there was a stir of some kind going on in the bastilles on the other
side of the river; and in the evening, seeking further, he found a deserter from the
fortress called the Augustins, who said that the English were going to send
men over to spring upon Dunois and the army when it was passing the bastilles and destroy
it; a thing quite easy to do, since the Witch would not be there, and without
her presence the army would do like the French armies of these many years past - drop
their weapons and run when they saw an English face.
It was ten at night when the Paladin brought this news and asked leave to speak to
Joan, and I was up on duty then. It was a bitter stroke to me to see what a chance I had
lost. Joan made searching inquiries, and satisfied herself that the word was true, then
she made this annoying remark:
You have done well, and you have my thanks. It may be that you have prevented a
disaster. Your name and service shall receive official mention.
Then he bowed low, and when he rose he was eleven feet high. As he swelled out past me
he covertly pulled down the corner of his eye with his finger and muttered part of that
defiled refrain, Oh tears, ah tears, oh sad tears! - name in General Orders -
personal mention to the King, you see!
I wished Joan could have seen his conduct, but she was busy thinking what she would do.
Then she had me fetch the knight Jean de Metz, and in a minute he was off for La
Hires quarters with orders for him and the Lord de Villars and Florent
dIlliers to report to her at five oclock next morning with five hundred picked
men well mounted. The histories say half-past four, but it is not true, I heard the order
given.
We were on our way at five to the minute, and encountered the head of the arriving
column between six and seven, a couple of leagues from the city. Dunois was pleased, for
the army had begun to get restive and show uneasiness now that it was getting so near to
the dreaded bastilles. But that all disappeared now, as the word ran down the line, with a
huzzah that swept along the length of it like a wave, that the Maid was come. Dunois asked
her to halt and let the column pass in review, so that the men could be sure that the
report of her presence was not a ruse to revive their courage. So she took position at the
side of the road with her staff, and the battalions swung by with a martial stride,
huzzahing. Joan was armed, except her head. She was wearing the cunning little velvet cap
with the mass of curved white ostrich plumes tumbling over its edges which the city of
Orleans had given her the night she arrived - the one that is in the picture that hangs in
the Hôtel de Ville at Rouen. She was looking about fifteen. The sight of soldiers always
set her blood to leaping, and lit fires in her eyes and brought the warm rich colour to
her cheeks; it was then that you saw that she was too beautiful to be of the earth, or at
any rate that there was a subtle something somewhere about her beauty that differed it
from the human types of your experience and exalted it above them.
In the train of wains laden with supplies a man lay on top of the goods. He was
stretched out on his back, and his hands were tied together with ropes, and also his
ankles. Joan signed to the officer in charge of that division of the train to come to her,
and he rode up and saluted.
What is he that is bound, there? she asked.
A prisoner, General.
What is his offence?
He is a deserter.
What is to be done with him?
He will be hanged, but it was not convenient on the march, and there was no
hurry.
Tell me about him.
He is a good soldier, but he asked leave to go and see his wife who was dying, he
said, but it could not be granted; so he went without leave. Meanwhile the march began,
and he only overtook us yesterday evening.
Overtook you? Did he come of his own will?
Yes it was of his own will.
He a deserter! Name of God! Bring him to me.
The officer rode forward and loosed the mans feet and brought him back with his
hands still tied. What a figure he was - a good seven feet high, and built for business!
He had a strong face; he had an unkempt shock of black hair which showed up in a striking
way when the officer removed his morion for him; for weapon he had a big axe in his broad
leathern belt. Standing by Joans horse, he made Joan look littler than ever, for his
head was about on a level with her own. His face was profoundly melancholy; all interest
in life seemed to be dead in the man. Joan said -
Hold up your hands.
The mans head was down. He lifted it when he heard that soft friendly voice, and
there was a wistful something in his face which made one think that there had been music
in it for him and that he would like to hear it again. When he raised his hands Joan laid
her sword to his bonds, but the officer said with apprehension-
'Ah, madam - my General!'
'What is it?' she said.
'He is under sentence!'
'Yes, I know. I am responsible for him,' and she cut the bonds. They had lacerated his
wrists, and they were bleeding. Ah, pitiful! she said; blood - I do not
like it; and she shrank from the sight. But only for a moment. Give me
something, somebody, to bandage his wrists with.
The officer said -
Ah, my General! it is not fitting. Let me bring another to do it.
Another? De par le Dieu! You would seek far to find one that can do it
better than I, for I learned it long ago among both men and beasts. And I can tie better
than those that did this; if I had tied him the ropes had not cut his flesh.
The man looked on, silent, while he was being bandaged, stealing a furtive glance at
Joans face occasionally, such as an animal might that is receiving a kindness from
an unexpected quarter and is gropingly trying to reconcile the act with its source. All
the staff had forgotten the huzzahing army drifting by in its rolling clouds of dust, to
crane their necks and watch the bandaging as if it was the most interesting and absorbing
novelty that ever was. I have often seen people do like that - get entirely lost in the
simplest trifle, when it is something that is out of their line. Now there in Poitiers,
once, I saw two bishops and a dozen of those grave and famous scholars grouped together
watching a man paint a sign on a shop; they didnt breathe, they were as good as
dead; and when it began to sprinkle they didnt know it as first; then they noticed
it, and each man hove a deep sigh, and glanced up with a surprised look as wondering to
see the others there, and how he came to be there himself - but that is the way with
people, as I have said. There is no way of accounting for people. You have to take them as
they are.
There, said Joan at last, pleased with her success; another could
have done it no better - not as well, I think. Tell me - what is it you did? Tell me
all.
The giant said:
It was this way, my angel. My mother died, then my three children, one after the
other, all in two years. It was the famine; others fared so - it was Gods will. I
saw them die, I had that grace; and I buried them. Then when my poor wifes fate was
come, I begged for leave to go to her - she who was so dear to me - she who was all I had;
I begged on my knees. But they would not let me. Should I let her die, friendless and
alone? Could I let her die believing I would not come? Would she let me die and she not come - with her feet free to do it if she would, and no cost upon it but only her
life? Ah, she would come - she would come through the fire! So I went. I saw her. She died
in my arms. I buried her. Then the army was gone. I had trouble to overtake it, but my
legs are long and there are many hours in a day; I overtook it last night.
Joan said, musingly, and as if she were thinking aloud -
It sounds true. If true, it were no great harm to suspend the law this one time -
any would say that. It may not be true, but if it is true - She turned suddenly to
the man and said, I would se your eyes - look up! The eyes of the two met, and
Joan said to the officer, The man is pardoned. Give you good-day; you may go.
Then she said to the man, Did you know it was death to come back to the army?
Yes, he said, I knew it.
Then why did you do it?
The man said, quite simply -
Because it was death. She was all I had. There was nothing left to
love.
Ah, yes, there was - France! The children of France have always their mother - they cannot be left with nothing to love. You shall live - and you shall serve France -
I will serve you!
'- you shall fight for France-'
'I will fight for you!'
You shall be Frances soldier -
I will be your soldier!
- you shall give all your heart to France -
I will give all my heart to you - and my soul, if I have one - and all
my strength, which is great - for I was dead and am alive again, I had nothing to live
for, but now I have! You are France for me! You are my France, and I will have no
other.
Joan smiled, and was touched and pleased at the mans grave enthusiasm - solemn
enthusiasm, one may call it, for the manner of it was deeper than mere gravity - and she
said -
Well, it shall be as you will. What are you called?
The man answered with unsmiling simplicity -
They call me the Dwarf, but I think it is more in jest than otherwise.
It made Joan laugh, and she said -
It has something of that look, truly! What is the office of that vast axe?
The soldier replied with the same gravity - which must have been born to him, it sat
upon him so naturally -
It is to persuade persons to respect France.
Joan laughed again, and said -
Have you given many lessons?
Ah, indeed yes - many.
The pupils behaved to suit you, afterwards?
Yes; it made them quiet - quite pleasant and quiet.
I should think it would happen so. Would you like to be my man-at-arms? -
orderly, sentinel, or something like that?
If I may!
Then you shall. You shall have proper armour, and shall go on teaching your art.
Take one of those led horses there, and follow the staff when we move.
That is how we came by the Dwarf; and a good fellow he was. Joan picked him out on
sight, but it wasnt a mistake; no one could be faithfuller than he was, and he was a
devil and the son of a devil when he turned himself loose with his axe. He was so big that
he made the Paladin look like an ordinary man. He liked us boys from the start, and he
liked the knights, and liked pretty much everybody he came across; but he thought more of
a paring of Joans finger-nail than he did of all the rest of the world put together.
Yes, that is where we got him - stretched on the wain, going to his death, poor chap,
and nobody to say a good word for him. He was a good find. Why, the knights treated him
almost like an equal - it is the honest truth; that is the sort of man he was. They called
him the Bastille, sometimes, and sometimes they called him Hellfire, which was on account
of his warm and sumptuous style in battle, and you know they wouldnt have given him
pet names if they hadnt a good deal of affection for him.
To the dwarf, Joan was France, the spirit of France made flesh - he never got away from
that idea that he had started with; and God knows it was the true one. That was a humble
eye to see so great a truth where some others failed. To me that seems quite remarkable.
And yet, after all, it was, in a way, just what nations do. When they love a great and
noble thing, they embody it - they want it so that they can see it with their eyes; like
Liberty, for instance. They are not content with the cloudy abstract idea; they make a
beautiful statue of it, and then their beloved idea is substantial and they can look at it
and worship it. And so it is as I say; to the Dwarf, Joan was our country embodied, our
country made visible in flesh cast in a gracious form. When she stood before others, they
saw Joan of Arc, but he saw France.
Sometimes he would speak of her by that name. It shows you how the idea was imbedded in
his mind, and how real it was to him. The world has called our kings by it, but I know of
none of them who has had so good a right as she to that sublime title.
When the march past was finished, Joan returned to the front and rode at the head of
the column. When we began to file past those grim bastilles and could glimpse the men
within, standing to their guns and ready to empty death into our ranks, such a faintness
came over me and such a sickness that all things seemed to turn dim and swim before my
eyes; and the other boys looked droopy too, I thought - including the Paladin, although I
do not know this for certain, because he was ahead of me, and I had to keep my eyes out
toward the bastille side, because I could wince better when I saw what to wince at.
But Joan was at home - in Paradise, I might say. She sat up straight, and I could see
that she was feeling different from me. The awfullest thing was the silence; there
wasnt a sound but the screaking of the saddles, the measured tramplings, and the
sneezing of the horses, afflicted by the smothering dust-clouds which they kicked up. I
wanted to sneeze myself, but it seemed to me that I would rather go unsneezed, or suffer
even a bitterer torture, if there is one, than attract attention to myself.
I was not of a rank to make suggestions, or I would have suggested that if we went
faster we should get by sooner. It seemed to me that it was an ill-judged time to be
taking a walk. Just as we were drifting in that suffocating stillness past a great cannon
that stood just within a raised portcullis, with nothing between me and it, but the moat,
a most uncommon jackass in there split the world with his bray, and I fell out of the
saddle. Sir Bertrand grabbed me as I went, which was well, for if I had gone to the ground
in my armour I could not have gotten up again by myself. The English warders on the
battlements laughed a coarse laugh, forgetting that every one must begin, and that there
had been a time when they themselves would have fared no better when shot by a jackass.
The English never uttered a challenge nor fired a shot. It was said afterwards that
when their men saw the Maid riding at the front and saw how lovely she was, their eager
courage cooled down in many cases and vanished in the rest, they feeling certain that that
creature was not mortal, but the very child of Satan; and so the officers were prudent and
did not try to make them fight. It was said also that some of the officers were affected
by the same superstitious fears. Well, in any case, they never offered to molest us, and
we poked by all the grisly fortresses in peace. During the march I caught up on my
devotions which were in arrears; so it was not all loss and no profit for me, after all.
It was on this march that the histories say Dunois told Joan that the English were
expecting reinforcements under the command of Sir John Falstaff, and that she turned upon
him and said -
Bastard, Bastard, in Gods name I warn you to let me know of his coming as
soon as you hear of it; for if he passes without my knowledge you shall lose your
head!
It may be so; I dont deny it, but I didnt hear it. If she really said it, I
think she only meant she would take off his official head - degrade him from his command.
It was not like her to threaten a comrades life. She did have her doubts of her
generals, and was entitled to them, for she was all for storm and assault, and they were
for holding still and tiring the English out. Since they did not believe in her way and
were experienced old soldiers, it would be natural for them to prefer their own and try to
get around carrying hers out.
But I did hear something that the histories didnt mention and dont know
about. I heard Joan say that now that the garrisons on the other side had been weakened to
strengthen those on our side, the most effective point of operations had shifted to the
south shore; so she meant to go over there and storm the forts which held the bridge end,
and that would open up communication with our own dominions and raise the siege. The
generals began to balk, privately, right away, but they only baffled and delayed her, and
that for only four days.
All Orleans met the army at the gate and huzzahed it through the bannered streets to
its various quarters, but nobody had to rock it to sleep; it slumped down dog-tired, for
Dunois had rushed it without mercy, and for the next twenty-four hours it would be quiet,
all but the snoring.
Chapter 17
When we got home, breakfast for us minor fry was waiting in our mess-room and the
family honoured us by coming in to eat it with us. The nice old treasurer, and in fact all
three, were flatteringly eager to hear about our adventures. Nobody asked the Paladin to
begin, but he did begin, because now that his specially ordained and peculiar military
rank set him above everybody on the personal staff but old DAulon, who didnt
eat with us, he didnt care a farthing for the knights nobility nor mine, but
took precedence in the talk whenever it suited him, which was all the time, because he was
born that way. He said:
God be thanked, we found the army in admirable condition. I think I have never
seen a finer body of animals.
Animals? said Miss Catherine.
I will explain to you what he means, said Noël. He -
I will trouble you not to trouble yourself to explain anything for me, said
the Paladin, loftily. I have reason to think -
That is his way, said Noël; always when he thinks he has reason to
think, he thinks he does think, but this is an error. He didnt see the army. I
noticed him, and he didnt see it. He was troubled by his old complaint.
What is his old complaint? Catherine asked.
Prudence, I said, seeing my chance to help.
But it was not a fortunate remark, for the Paladin said:
It probably isnt your turn to criticise peoples prudence - you who
fall out of the saddle when a donkey brays.
They all laughed, and I was ashamed of myself for my hasty smartness. I said:
It isnt quite fair for you to say I fell out on account of the donkey's
braying. It was emotion, just ordinary emotion.
Very well, if you want to call it that, I am not objecting. What would you call
it, Sir Bertrand?
Well, it - well, whatever it was, it was excusable, I think. All of you have
learned how to behave in hot hand-to-hand engagements, and you dont need to be
ashamed of your record in that matter, but to walk along in front of death, with
ones hands idle, and no noise, no music, and nothing going on, is a very trying
situation. If I were you, De Conte, I would name the emotion; its nothing to be
ashamed of.
It was as straight and sensible a speech as ever I heard, and I was grateful for the
opening it gave me; so I came out and said:
It was fear - and thank you for the honest idea, too.
It was the cleanest and best way out, said the old treasurer;
youve done well, my lad.
That made me comfortable, and when Miss Catherine said, Its what I think,
too, I was grateful to myself for getting into that scrape.
Sir Jean de Metz said -
We were all in a body together when the donkey brayed, and it was dismally still
at the time. I dont see how any young campaigner could escape some little touch of
that emotion.
He looked about him with a pleasant expression of inquiry on his good face, and as each
pair of eyes in turn met his the head they were in nodded a confession. Even the Paladin
delivered his nod. That surprised everybody, and saved the Standard-Bearers credit.
It was clever of him; nobody believed he could tell truth that was without practice, or
would tell that particular sort of a truth either with or without practice. I suppose he
judged it would favourably impress the family. Then the old treasurer said -
Passing the forts in that trying way required the same sort of nerve that a
person must have when ghosts are about him in the dark, I should think. What does the
Standard-Bearer think?
Well, I dont quite know about that, sir. Ive often thought I would
like to see a ghost if I -
Would you? exclaimed the young lady. Weve got one! Would you
try that one? Will you?
She was so eager and pretty that the Paladin said straight out that he would; and then
as none of the rest had bravery enough to expose the fear that was in him, one volunteered
after the other with a prompt mouth and a sick heart till all were shipped for the voyage,
then the girl clapped her hands in glee, and the parents were gratified too, saying that
the ghosts of their house had been a dread and a misery to them and their forebears for
generations, and nobody had ever been found yet who was willing to confront them and find
out what their trouble was, so that the family could heal it and content the poor spectres
and beguile them to tranquillity and peace.
Chapter 18
About noon I was chatting with Madame Boucher; nothing was going on, all was quiet,
when Catherine Boucher suddenly entered in great excitement, and said -
Fly, sir, fly! The Maid was dozing in her chair in my room, when she sprang up
and cried out, "French blood is flowing! - my arms, give me my arms!" Her giant
was on guard at the door, and he brought DAulon, who began to arm her, and I and the
giant have been warning the staff. Fly! - and stay by her; and if there really is a
battle, keep her out of it - dont let her risk herself - there is no need - if the
men know she is near and looking on, it is all that is necessary. Keep her out of the
fight - dont fail this!
I started on a run, saying, sarcastically - for I was always fond of sarcasm, and it
was said that I had a most neat gift that way -
Oh, yes, nothing easier than that - Ill attend to it!
At the furthest end of the house I met Joan, fully armed, hurrying toward the door, and
she said -
Ah, French blood is being spilt, and you did not tell me.
Indeed I did not know it, I said; there are no sounds of war;
everything is quiet, your Excellency.
You will hear war sounds enough in a moment, she said, and was gone.
It was true. Before one could count five there broke upon the stillness the swelling
rush and tramp of an approaching multitude of men and horses, with hoarse cries of
command; and then out of the distance came the muffled deep boom! - boom-boom! - boom! of cannon, and straight-way that rushing multitude was roaring by the house like a
hurricane.
Our knights and all our staff came flying, armed, but with no horses ready, and we
burst out after Joan in a body, the Paladin in the lead with the banner. The surging crowd
was made up half of citizens and half of soldiers, and had no recognised leader. When Joan
was seen a huzzah went up, and she shouted -
A horse - a horse!
A dozen saddles were at her disposal in a moment. She mounted, a hundred people
shouting -
Way, there - way for the MAID OF ORLEANS! The first time that that immortal
name was ever uttered - and I, praise God, was there to hear it! The mass divided itself
like the waters of the Red Sea, and down this lane itself like the waters of the Red Sea,
and down this lane Joan went skimming like a bird, crying, Forward, French hearts -
follow me! and we came winging in her wake on the rest of the borrowed horses, the
holy standard streaming above us, and the lane closing together in our rear.
This was a different thing from the ghastly march past the dismal bastilles. No, we
felt fine, now, and all a-whirl with enthusiasm. The explanation of this sudden uprising
was this. The city and the little garrison, so long hopeless and afraid, had gone wild
over Joans coming, and could no longer restrain their desire to get at the enemy;
so, without orders from anybody, a few hundred soldiers and citizens had plunged out at
the Burgundy gate on a most formidable fortresses - St Loup - and were getting the worst
of it. The news of this had swept through the city and startled this new crowd that we
were with.
As we poured out at the gate we met a force bringing in the wounded from the front. The
sight moved Joan and she said -
Ah, French blood; it makes my hair rise to see it!
We were soon on the field, soon in the midst of the turmoil. Joan was seeing her first
real battle, and so were we.
It was a battle in the open field, for the garrison of St Loup had sallied confidently
out to meet the attack, being used to victories when witches were not around.
The sally had been reinforced by troops for the Paris bastille, and when we
approached the French were getting whipped and were falling back. But when Joan came
charging through the disorder with her banner displayed, crying Forward, men -
follow me! there was a change; the French turned about and surged forward like a
solid wave of the sea, and swept the English before them, hacking and slashing, and being
hacked and slashed, in a way that was terrible to see.
In the field the Dwarf had no assignment; that is to say, he was not under orders to
occupy any particular place, therefore he chose his place for himself, and went ahead of
Joan and made a road for her. It was horrible to see the iron helmets fly to fragments
under his dreadful axe. He called it cracking nuts, and it looked like that. He made a
good road, and paved it well with flesh and iron. Joan and the rest of us followed it so
briskly that we outspeeded our forces and had the English behind us as well as before. The
knights commanded us to face outwards around Joan, which we did, and then there was work
done that was fine to see. One was obliged to respect the Paladin, now. Being right under
Joans exalting and transforming eye, he forgot his native prudence, he forgot his
diffidence in the presence of danger, he forgot what fear was, and he never laid about him
in his imaginary battles in a more tremendous way than he did in this real one; and
wherever he struck there was an enemy the less.
We were in that close place only a few minutes; then our forces to the rear broke
through with a great shout and joined us, and then the English fought a retreating fight,
but in a fine and gallant way, and we drove them to their fortresses foot by foot, they
facing us all the time, and their reserves on the walls raining showers of arrows,
cross-bow bolts, and stone cannon-balls upon us.
The bulk of the enemy got safely within the works and left us outside with piles of
French and English dead and wounded for company - a sickening sight, an awful sight to us
youngsters, for our little ambush fights in February had been in the night, and the blood
and the mutilations and the dead faces were mercifully dim, whereas we saw these things
now for the first time in all their naked ghastliness.
Now arrived Dunois from the city, and plunged through the battle on his foam-flecked
horse and galloped up to Joan, saluting, and uttering handsome compliments as he came. He
waved his hand toward the distant walls of the city, where a multitude of flags were
flaunting gaily in the wind, and said the populace were up there observing her fortunate
performance and rejoicing over it, and added that she and the forces would have a great
reception now.
Now? Hardly now, Bastard. Not yet!
Why not yet? Is there more to be done?
More, Bastard? We have but begun! We will take this fortress.
Ah, you cant be serious! We cant take this place; let me urge you not
to make the attempt; it is too desperate. Let me order the forces back.
Joans heart was overflowing with the joys and enthusiasms of war, and it made her
impatient to hear such talk. She cried out -
Bastard, Bastard, will ye play always with these English? Now verily I
tell you we will not budge until this place is ours. We will carry it by storm. Sound the
charge!
Ah, my General -
Waste no more time, man - let the bugles sound the assault! and we saw that
strange deep light in her eyes which we named the battle-light, and learned to know so
well in later fields.
The martial notes pealed out, the troops answered with a yell, and down they came
against that formidable work, whose outlines were lost in its own cannon smoke, and whose
sides were spouting flame and thunder.
We suffered repulse after repulse, but Joan was here and there and everywhere
encouraging the men, and she kept them to their work. During three hours the tide ebbed
and flowed, flowed and ebbed; but at last La Hire, who was now come, made a final and
resistless charge, and the bastille St Loup was ours. We gutted it, taking all its stores
and artillery, and then destroyed it.
When all our host was shouting itself hoarse with rejoicings, and there went up a cry
for the General, for they wanted to praise her and glorify her and do her homage for her
victory, we had trouble to find her; and when we did find her, she was off by herself,
sitting among a ruck of corpses, with her face in her hands, crying - for she was a young
girl, you know, and her hero-heart was a young girls heart too, with the pity and
the tenderness that are natural to it. She was thinking of the mothers of those dead
friends and enemies.
Among the prisoners were a number of priests, and Joan took these under her protection
and saved their lives. It was urged that they were most probably combatants in disguise,
but she said -
As to that, how can any tell? They wear the livery of God, and if even one of
these wears it rightfully, surely it were better that all the guilty should escape than
that we have upon our hands the blood of that innocent man. I will lodge them where I
lodge, and feed them, and send them away in safety.
We marched back to the city with our crop of cannon and prisoners on view and our
banners displayed. Here was the first substantial bit of war-work the imprisoned people
had seen in seven months that the siege had endured, the first chance they had had to
rejoice over a French exploit. You may guess that they made good use of it. They and the
bells went mad. Joan was their darling now, and the press of people struggling and
shouldering each other to get a glimpse of her was so great that we could hardly push our
way through the streets at all. Her new name had gone all about, and was on
everybodys lips. The Holy Maid of Vaucouleurs was a forgotten title; the city had
claimed her for its own, and she was the MAID OF ORLEANS now. It is a happiness to me to
remember that I heard that name the first time it was ever uttered. Between that first
utterance and the last time it will be uttered on this earth - ah, think how many
mouldering ages will lie in that gap!
The Boucher Family welcomed her back as if she had been a child of the house, and saved
from death against all hope or probability. They chided her for going into the battle and
exposing herself to danger during all those hours. They could not realise that she had
meant to carry her warriorship so far, and asked her if it had really been her purpose to
go right into the turmoil of the fight, or hadnt she got swept into it by accident
and the rush of the troops? They begged her to be more careful another time. it was good
advice, maybe, but it fell upon pretty unfruitful soil.
Chapter 19
Being worn out with the long fight, we all slept the rest of the afternoon away and two
or three hours into the night. Then we got up refreshed and had supper. As for me, I could
have been willing to let the matter of the ghost drop; and the others were if a like mind
no doubt, for they talked diligently of the battle and said nothing of that other thing.
And indeed it was fine and stirring to hear the Paladin rehearse his deeds and see him
pile his dead, fifteen here, eighteen there, and thirty-five yonder; but this only
postponed the trouble, it could not do more. He could not go on for ever; when he had
carried the Bastille by assault and eaten up the garrison there was nothing for it but to
stop, unless Catherine Boucher would give him a new start and have it all done over again
- as we hoped she would, this time - but she was otherwise minded. As soon as there was a
good opening and a fair chance, she brought up her unwelcome subject, and we faced it the
best we could.
We followed her and her parents to the haunted room at eleven oclock, with
candles, and also with torches to place in the sockets on the walls. It was a big house,
with very thick walls, and this room was in a remote part of it which had been left
unoccupied for nobody knew how many years, because of its evil repute.
This was a large room, like a salon, and had a big table in it of enduring oak and well
preserved; but the chairs were worm-eaten and the tapestry on the walls was rotten and
discoloured by age. The dusty cobwebs under the ceiling had the look of not having had any
business for a century.
Catherine said -
Tradition says that these ghosts have never been seen - they have merely been
heard. It is plain that this room was once larger than it is now, and that the wall at
this end was built in some bygone time to make and fence off a narrow room there. There is
no communication anywhere with that narrow room, and if it exists - and of that there is
no reasonable doubt - it has no light and no air, but is an absolute dungeon. Wait where
you are, and take note of what happens.
That was all. Then she and her parents left us. When their footfalls had died out in
the distance down the empty stone corridors an uncanny silence and solemnity ensued, which
was dismaller to me than the mute march past the bastilles. We sat looking vacantly at
each other, and it was easy to see that no one there was comfortable. The longer we sat
so, the more deadly still that stillness got to be; and when the wind began to moan around
the house presently, it made me sick and miserable, and I wished I had been brave enough
to be a coward this time, for indeed it is no proper shame to be afraid of ghosts, seeing
how helpless the living are in their hands. And then these ghosts were invisible, which
made the matter the worse, as it seemed to me. They might be in the room with us at that
moment - we could not know. I felt airy touches on my shoulders and my hair, and I shrank
from them and cringed, and was not ashamed to show this fear, for I saw the others doing
the like, and knew that they were feeling those faint contacts too. As this went on - oh,
eternities it seemed, the time dragged so drearily - all those faces became as wax, and I
seemed sitting with a congress of the dead.
At last, faint and far and weird and slow, came a boom! - boom! - boom! - a
distant bell tolling midnight. When the last stroke died, that depressing stillness
followed again, and as before I was staring at those waxen faces and feeling those airy
touches on my hair and my shoulders once more.
One minute - two minutes - three minutes of this, then we heard a long deep groan, and
everybody sprang up and stood, with his legs quaking. It came from that little dungeon.
There was a pause, then we heard muffled sobbings, mixed with pitiful ejaculations. Then
there was a second voice, low and not distinct, and the one seemed trying to comfort the
other; and so the two voices went on, with moanings, and soft sobbings, and, ah, the tones
were so full of compassion and sorrow and despair! Indeed, it made ones heart sore
to hear it.
But those sounds were so real and so human and so moving that the idea of ghosts passed
straight out of our minds, and Sir Jean de Metz spoke out and said -
Come! we will smash that wall and set those poor captives free. Here, with your
axe.
The dwarf jumped forward, swinging his great axe with both hands, and others sprang for
the torches and brought them! Bang! - whang! - slam! - smash went the ancient bricks, and
there was a hole an ox could pass through. We plunged within and held up the torches.
Nothing there but vacancy! On the floor lay a rusty sword and a rotten fan.
Now you know all that I know. Take the pathetic relics, and weave about them the
romance of the dungeons long-vanished inmates as best you can.
Chapter 20
The next day Joan wanted to go against the enemy again, but it was the feast of the
Ascension, and the holy council of bandit generals were too pious to be willing to profane
it with bloodshed. But privately they profaned it with plottings, a sort of industry just
in their line. They decided to do the only thing proper to do now in the new circumstances
of the case - feign an attack on the most important bastille on the Orleans side, and
then, if the English weakened the far more important fortresses on the other side of the
river to come to its help, cross in force and capture those works. This would give them
the bridge and free communication with the Sologne, which was French territory. They
decided to keep this latter part of the programme secret from Joan.
Joan intruded and took them by surprise. She asked them what they were about and what
they had resolved upon. They said they had resolved to attack the most important of the
English bastilles on the Orleans side next morning - and there the spokesman stopped. Joan
said -
Well, go on.
There is nothing more. That is all.
Am I to believe this? That is to say, am I to believe that you have lost your
wits? She turned to Dunois, and said, Bastard, you have sense, answer me this:
if this attack is made and the bastille taken, how much better off would we be than we are
now?
The Bastard hesitated, and then began some rambling talk not quite germane to the
question. Joan interrupted him and said -
That will do, good Bastard, you have answered. Since the Bastard is not able to
mention any advantage to be gained by taking that bastille and stopping there, it is not
likely that any of you could better the matter. You waste much time here in inventing
plans that lead to nothing, and making delays that are a damage. Are you concealing
something from me? Bastard, this council has a general plan, I take it; without going into
details, what is it?
It is the same it was in the beginning, seven months ago - to get provisions in
for a long siege, and then sit down and tire the English out.
In the name of God! As if seven months was not enough, you want to provide for a
year of it. Now ye shall drop these pusillanimous dreams - the English shall go in three
days!
Several exclaimed -
Ah, General, General, be prudent!
Be prudent and starve? Do ye call that war? I tell you this, if you do not
already know it: The new circumstances have changed the face of matters. The true point of
attack has shifted; it is on the other side of the river now. One must take the
fortifications that command the bridge. The English know that if we are not fools and
cowards we will try to do that. They are grateful for your piety in wasting this day. They
will re-enforce the bridge forts from this side tonight, knowing what ought to happen
tomorrow. You have but lost and day and made out task harder, for we will cross
and take the bridge forts. Bastard, tell me the truth - does not this council know that
there is no other course for us than the one I am speaking of?
Dunois conceded that the council did know it to be the most desirable, but considered
it impracticable; and he excused the council as well as he could by saying that inasmuch
as nothing was really and rationally to be hoped but a long continuance of the siege and
wearying out of the English, they were naturally a little afraid of Joans impetuous
notions. He said -
You see, we are sure that the waiting game is the best, whereas you would carry
everything by storm.
That I would! - and moreover that I will! You have my orders - here and now. We will
move upon the forts of the south bank tomorrow at dawn.
And carry them by storm?
Yes, carry them by storm!
La Hire came clanking in, and heard the last remark. He cried out -
By my bâton, that is the music I love to hear! Yes, that is the right
tune and the beautiful words, my General - we will carry them by storm!
He saluted in his large way and came up and shook Joan by the hand.
Some member of the council was heard to say -
It follows, then, that we must begin with the Bastille St John, and that will
give the English time to -
Joan turned and said -
Give yourselves no uneasiness about the bastille St John. The English will know
enough to retire from it and fall back on the bridge bastilles when they see us
coming. She added, with a touch of sarcasm, Even a war-council would know
enough to do that, itself.
Then she took her leave. La Hire made this general remark to the council:
She is a child, and that is all ye seem to see. Keep to that superstition if you
must, but you perceive that this child understands this complex game of war as well as any
of you; and if you want my opinion without the trouble of asking for it, here you have it
without ruffles or embroidery - by God, I think she can teach the best of you how to play it!
Joan had spoken truly; the sagacious English saw that the policy of the French had
undergone a revolution; that the policy of paltering and dawdling was ended; that in place
of taking blows, blows were to be struck, now; therefore they made ready for the new state
of things by transferring heavy re-enforcements to the bastilles of the south bank from
those of the north.
The city learned the great news that once more in French history, after all these
humiliating years, France was going to take the offensive; that France, so used to
retreating, was going to advance; that France, so long accustomed to skulking, was going
to face about and strike. The joy of the people passed all bounds. The city walls were
black with them to see the army march out in the morning in that strange new position -
its front, not its tail, toward an English camp. You shall imagine for yourselves what the
excitement was like and how it expressed itself when Joan rode out at the head of the host
with her banner floating above her.
We crossed the river in strong force, and a tedious long job it was, for the boats were
small and not numerous. Our landing on the island of St Aignan was not disputed. We threw
a bridge of a few boats across the narrow channel thence to the south shore and took up
our march in good order and unmolested; for although there was a fortress there - St John
- the English vacated and destroyed it and fell back on the bridge forts below as soon as
our first boats were seen to leave the Orleans shore; which was what Joan had said would
happen, when she was disputing with the council.
We moved down the shore and Joan planted her standard before the bastille of the
Augustins, the first of the formidable works that protected the end of the bridge. The
trumpets sounded the assault, and two charges followed in handsome style; but we were too
weak, as yet, for our main body was still lagging behind. Before we could gather for a
third assault the garrison of St Privé were seen coming up to re-enforce the big
bastille. They came on a run, and the Augustins sallied out, and both forces came against
us with a rush, and sent our small army flying in a panic, and followed us, slashing and
slaying, and shouting jeers and insults at us.
Joan was doing her best to rally the men, but their wits were gone, their hearts were
dominated for the moment by the old-time dread of the English. Joans temper flamed
up, and she halted and commanded the trumpets to sound the advance. Then she wheeled about
and cried out -
If there is but a dozen of you that are not cowards, it is enough - follow
me!
Away she went, and after her a few dozen who had heard her words and been inspired by
them. The pursuing force was astonished to see her sweeping down upon them with this
handful of men, and it was their turn now to experience a grisly fright - surely this is a witch, this is a child of Satan! That was their thought - and without stopping to
analyse the matter they turned and fled in a panic.
Our flying squadrons heard the bugle and turned to look; and when they saw the
Maids banner speeding in the other direction and the enemy scrambling ahead of it in
disorder, their courage returned and they came scouring after us.
La Hire heard it and hurried his force forward and caught up with us just as we were
planting our banner again before the ramparts of the Augustins. We were strong enough now.
We had a long and tough piece of work before us, but we carried it through before night,
Joan keeping us hard at it, and she and La Hire saying we were able to take that big
bastille, and must. The English fought like - well, they fought like the English;
when that is said, there is no more to say. We made assault after assault, through the
smoke and flame and the deafening cannon-blasts, and at last as the sun was sinking we
carried the place with a rush, and planted our standard on its walls.
The Augustins was ours. The Tourelles must be ours, too, if we would free the bridge
and raise the siege. We had achieved one great undertaking, Joan was determined to
accomplish the other. We must lie on our arms where we were, hold fast to what we had got,
and be ready for business in the morning. So Joan was not minded to let the men be
demoralised by pillage and riot and carousings; she had the Augustins burned, with all its
stores in it, excepting the artillery and ammunition.
Everybody was tired out with this long days hard work, and of course this was the
case with Joan; still, she wanted to stay with the army before the Tourelles, to be ready
for the assault in the morning. The chiefs argued with her, and at last persuaded her to
go home and prepare for the great work by taking proper rest, and also by having a leech
look at a wound which she had received in her foot. So we crossed with them and went home.
Just as usual, we found the town in a fury of joy, all the bells clanging, everybody
shouting, and several people drunk. We never went out or came in without furnishing good
and sufficient reasons for one of these pleasant tempests, and so the tempest was always
on hand. There had been a blank absence of reasons for this sort of upheavals for the past
seven months, therefore the people took to the upheavals with all the more relish on that
account.
Chapter 21
To get away from the usual crowd of visitors and have a rest, Joan went with Catherine
straight to the apartment which the two occupied together, and there they took their
supper and there the wound was dressed. But then, instead of going to bed, Joan, weary as
she was, sent the Dwarf for me, in spite of Catherines protests and persuasions. She
said she had something on her mind, and must send a courier to Domremy with a letter for
our old Père Fronte to read to her mother. I came, and she began to dictate. After some
loving words and greetings to her mother and the family, came this:
But the thing which moves me to write now, is to say that when you presently hear
that I am wounded, you shall give yourself no concern about it, and refuse faith to any
that shall try to make you believe it is serious.
She was going on, when Catherine spoke up and said:
Ah, but it will fright her so to read these words. Strike them out, Joan, strike
them out, and wait only one day - two days at most - then write and say your foot was
wounded but it is well again - for it will surely be well then, or very near it.
Dont distress her, Joan; do as I say.
A laugh like the laugh of the old days, the impulsive free laugh of an untroubled
spirit, a laugh like a chime of bells, was Joans answer; then she said -
My foot? Why should I write about such a scratch as that? I was not thinking
about it, dear heart.
Child, have you another wound and a worse, and have not spoken of it? What have
you been dreaming about, that you -
She jumped up, full of vague fears, to have the leech called back at once, but Joan
laid her hand upon her arm and made her sit down again, saying -
There, now, be tranquil, there is no other wound, as yet; I am writing about one
which I shall get when we storm that bastille tomorrow.
Catherine had the look of one who is trying to understand a puzzling proposition but
cannot quite do it. She said, in a distraught fashion -
A wound which are going to get? But - but why grieve your mother when it
- when it may not happen?
May not? Why, it will.
The puzzle was a puzzle still. Catherine said in that same abstracted way as before -
Will. It is a strong word. I cannot seem to - my mind is not able to
take hold of this. Oh, Joan, such a presentiment is a dreadful thing - it takes ones
peace and courage all away. Cast it from you! Drive it out! It will make your whole night
miserable, and to no good; for we will hope -
But it isnt a presentiment - it is a fact. And it will not make me
miserable. It is uncertainties that do that, but this is not an uncertainty.
Joan, do you know it is going to happen?
Yes, I know it. My Voices told me.
Ah, said Catherine, resignedly, if they told you - But are
you sure it was they? - quite sure?
Yes, quite. It will happen - there is no doubt.
It is dreadful! Since when have you known it?
Since - I think it is several weeks. Joan turned to me. Louis, you
will remember. How long is it?
Your Excellency spoke of it first to the King, in Chinon, I answered;
that was as much as seven weeks ago. You spoke of it again on the 20th of April, and
also the 22nd, two weeks ago, as I see by my record here.
These marvels disturbed Catherine profoundly, but I had long ceased to be surprised at
them. One can get used to anything in this world. Catherine said -
And it is to happen tomorrow? - always tomorrow? Is it the same date always?
There has been no mistake, and no confusion?
No, Joan said, the 7th of May is the date - there is no other.
Then you shall not go a step out of this house till that awful day is gone by!
You will not dream of it, Joan will you? - promise that you will stay with
us.
But Joan was not persuaded. She said -
It would not help the matter, dear good friend. The wound is to come, and come
tomorrow. If I do not seek it, it will seek me. My duty calls me to that place tomorrow, I
should have to go if my death were waiting for me there; shall I stay away for only a
wound? Oh no, we must try to do better than that.
Then you are determined to go?
Of a certainty, yes. There is only one thing that I can do for France - hearten
her soldiers for battle and victory. She thought a moment, then added,
However, one should not be unreasonable, and I would do much to please you, who are
so good to me. Do you love France?
I wondered what she might be contriving now, but I saw no clue. Catherine said,
reproachfully -
Ah, what have I done to deserve this question?
Then you do love France. I had not doubted it, dear. Do not be hurt, but answer
me - have you ever told a lie?
In my life I have not wilfully told a lie - fibs, but no lies.
That is sufficient. You love France and do not tell lies; therefore I will trust
you. I will go or I will stay, as you shall decide.
Oh, I thank you from my heart, Joan! How good and dear it is of you to do this
for me! Oh, you shall stay, and not go!
In her delight she flung her arms about Joans neck and squandered endearments
upon her the least of which would have made me rich, but as it was, they only made me
realise how poor I was - how miserably poor in what I would most have prized in this
world. Joan said -
Then you will send word to my headquarters that I am not going?
Oh, gladly. Leave that to me.
It is good of you. And how will you word it? - for it must have proper official
form. Shall I word it for you?
'Oh, do - for you know about the solemn procedures and stately proprieties, and I have
had no experience.
Then word it like this: "The chief of staff is commanded to make known to
the Kings forces in garrison and in the field, that the General-in-Chief of the
Armies of France will not face the English on the morrow, she being afraid she may get
hurt. Signed, JOAN OF ARC, by the hand of CATHERINE BOUCHER, who loves France."
There was a pause - a silence of the sort that tortures one into stealing a glance to
see how the situation looks, and I did that. There was a loving smile on Joans face,
but the colour was mounting in crimson waves into Catherines, and her lips were
quivering and the tears gathering; then she said -
Oh, I am so ashamed of myself! - and you are so noble and brave and wise, and I
am so paltry - so paltry and such a fool! and she broke down and began to cry, and I
did so want to take her in my arms and comfort her, but Joan did it, and of course I said
nothing. Joan did it well and most sweetly and tenderly, but I could have done it as well,
though I knew it would be foolish and out of place to suggest such a thing, and might make
an awkwardness too, and be embarrassing to us all, so I did not offer, and I hope I did
right and for the best, though I could not know, and was many times tortured with doubts
afterwards as having perhaps let a chance pass which might have changed my life and made
it happier and more beautiful than, alas, it turned out to be. For this reason I grieve
yet, when I think of that scene, and do not like to call it up out of the deeps of my
memory because of the pangs it brings.
Well, well, a good and wholesome thing is a little harmless fun in this world; it tones
a body up and keeps him human and prevents him from souring. To set that little trap for
Catherine was as good and effective a way as any to show her what a grotesque thing she
was asking of Joan. It was a funny idea, now, wasnt it, when you look at it all
around? Even Catherine dried up her tears and laughed when she thought of the English
getting hold of the French Commander-in-Chiefs reasons for staying out of a battle.
She granted that they would have a good time over a thing like that.
We got to work on the letter again, and of course did not have to strike out the
passage about the wound. Joan was in fine spirits; but when she got to sending messages to
this, that and the other old playmate and friend, it brought our village and the Fairy
Tree and the flowery plain and the browsing sheep and all the peaceful beauty of our old
humble home-place back, and the familiar names began to tremble on her lips; and when she
got to Haumette and Little Mengette it was no use, her voice broke and she couldnt
go on. She waited a moment, then said -
Give them my love - my warm love - my deep love - oh, out of my heart of hearts!
I shall never see our home any more.
Now came Pasquerel, Joans confessor, and introduced a gallant knight, the
Sire de Rais, who had been sent with a message. He said he was instructed to say that the
council had decided that enough had been done; that the city was now well victualled and
able to stand a long siege; that the wise course must necessarily be to withdraw the
troops from the other side of the river and resume the defensive - therefore they had
decided accordingly.
The incurable cowards! exclaimed Joan. 'So it was to get me away from my
men that they pretended so much solicitude about my fatigue. Take this message back, not
to the council - I have no speeches for those disguised ladies maids - but to the
Bastard and La Hire, who are men. Tell them the army is to remain where it is, and I hold
them responsible if this command miscarries. And say the offensive will be resumed in the
morning. You may go, good sir.
Then she said to he priest -
Rise early, and be by me all the day. There will be much work on my hands, and I
shall be hurt between my neck and my shoulder.
Chapter 22
We were up at dawn, and after mass we started. In the hall we met the master of the
house, who was grieved, good man, to see Joan going breakfastless to such a days
work, and begged her to wait and eat, but she couldnt afford the time - that is to
say, she couldnt afford the patience, she being in such a blaze of anxiety to get at
that last remaining bastille which stood between her and the completion of the first great
step in the rescue and redemption of France. Boucher put in another plea:
But think - we poor beleaguered citizens who have hardly known the flavour of
fish for these many months, have spoil of that sort again, and we owe it to you.
Theres a noble shad for breakfast; wait - be persuaded.
Joan said -
Oh, theres going to be fish in plenty; when this days work is done
the whole river-front will be yours to do as you please with.
Ah, your Excellency will do well, that I know; but we dont require
quite that much, even of you; you shall have a month for it in place of a day. Now be
beguiled - wait and eat. Theres a saying that he that would cross a river twice in
the same day in a boat, will do well to eat fish for luck, lest he had an accident.
That doesnt fit my case, for today I cross but once in a boat.
Oh, dont say that. Arent you coming back to us?
Yes, but not in a boat.
How, then?
By the bridge.
Listen to that - by the bridge! Now stop this jesting, dear General, and do as I
would have you. Its a noble fish.
Be good, then, and save me some for supper; and I will bring one of those
Englishmen with me and he shall have his share.
Ah, well, have your way if you must. But he that fasts must attempt but little
and stop early. When shall you be back?
When Ive raised the siege of Orleans. FORWARD!
We were off. The streets were full of citizens and of groups and squads of soldiers,
but the spectacle was melancholy. There was not a smile anywhere, but only universal
gloom. It was as if some vast calamity had smitten all hope and cheer dead. We were not
used to this, and were astonished. But when they saw the Maid, there was an immediate
stir, and the eager question flew from mouth to mouth -
Where is she going? Whither is she bound?
Joan heard it, and called out -
Whither would ye suppose? I am gong to take the Tourelles.
It would not be possible for any to describe how those few words turned that mourning
into joy - into exultation - into frenzy; and how a storm of huzzahs burst out and swept
down the streets in every direction and woke those corpse-like multitudes to vivid life
and action and turmoil in a moment. The soldiers broke from the crowd and came flocking to
our standard, and many of the citizens ran and got pikes and halberds and joined us. As we
moved on, our numbers increased steadily, and the hurrahing continued - yes, we moved
through a solid cloud of noise, as you may say, and all the windows on both sides
contributed to it, for they were filled with excited people.
You see, the council had closed the Burgundy gate and placed a strong force there,
under that stout soldier Raoul de Gaucourt, Bailly of Orleans, with orders to prevent Joan
from getting out and resuming the attack on the Tourelles, and this shameful thing had
plunged the city into sorrow and despair. But that feeling was gone now. They believed the
Maid was a match for the council, and they were right.
When we reached the gate, Joan told Gaucourt to open it and let her pass.
He said it would be impossible to do this, for his orders were from the council and
were strict. Joan said -
There is no authority above mine but the Kings. If you have an order from
the King, produce it.
I cannot claim to have an order from him, General.
'Then make way, or take the consequences!
He began to argue the case, for he was like the rest of the tribe, always ready to
fight with words, not acts; but in the midst of his gabble Joan interrupted with the terse
order -
Charge!
We came with a rush, and brief work we made of that small job. It was good to see the
Baillys surprise. He was not used to this unsentimental promptness. He said
afterwards that he was cut off in the midst of what he was saying - in the midst of an
argument by which he could have proved that he could not let Joan pass - an argument which
Joan could not have answered.
Still, it appears she did answer it, said the person he was talking to.
We swung through the gate in great style, with a vast accession of noise, the most of
which was laughter, and soon our van was over the river and moving down against the
Tourelles.
First we must take a supporting work called a boulevard, and which was otherwise
nameless, before we could assault the great bastille. Its rear communicated with the
bastille by a drawbridge, under which ran a swift and deep strip of the Loire. The
boulevard was strong, and Dunois doubted our ability to take it, but Joan had no such
doubt. She pounded it with artillery all the forenoon, then about noon she ordered an
assault and led it herself. We poured into the fosse through the smoke and a tempest of
missiles, and Joan, shouting, encouragements to her men, started to climb a
scaling-ladder, when that misfortune happened which we knew was to happen - the iron bolt
from an arbalest struck between her neck and her shoulder, and tore its way down through
her armour. When she felt the sharp pain and saw her blood gushing over her breast, she
was frightened, poor girl, and as she sank to the ground she began to cry, bitterly.
The English sent up a glad shout and came surging down in strong force to take her, and
then for a few minutes the might of both adversaries was concentrated upon that spot. Over
her and about her, English and French fought with desperation - for she stood for France,
indeed she was France to both sides - whichever won her won France, and could
keep it for ever. Right there in that small spot, and in ten minutes by the clock,
the fate of France, for all time, was to be decided, and was decided.
If the English had captured Joan then, Charles VII would have flown the country, the
Treaty of Troyes would have held good, and France, already English property, would have
become, without further dispute, an English province, to so remain until Judgement Day. A
nationality and a kingdom were at stake there, and no more time to decide it in that it
takes to hard-boil an egg. It was the most momentous ten minutes that the clock has ever
ticked in France, or ever will. Whenever you read in histories about hours or days or
weeks in which the fate of one or other nation hung in the balance, do not fail to
remember, now your French hearts to beat quicker for the remembrance, the ten minutes that
France, called otherwise Joan of Arc, lay bleeding in the fosse that day, with two nations
struggling over her for her possession.
And you will not forget the Dwarf. For he stood over her, and did the work of any six
of the others. He swung his axe with both hands; whenever it came down, he said those two
words, For France! and a splintered helmet learned its manners and would
offend the French no more. He piled a bulwark of iron-clad dead in front of him and fought
behind it; and at last when the victory was ours we closed about him, shielding him, and
he ran up a ladder with Joan as easily as another man would carry a child, and bore her
out of the battle, a great crowd following and anxious, for she was drenched with blood to
her feet, half of it her own and the other half the English, for their bodies had fallen
across her as she lay and had poured their red life streams over her. One couldnt
see the white armour now, with that awful dressing over it.
The iron bolt was still in the wound - some say it projected out behind the shoulder.
It may be - I did not wish to see, and did not try to. It was pulled out, and the pain
made Joan cry again, poor thing. Some say she pulled it out herself because others
refused, saying they could not bear to hurt her. As to this I do not know; I only know it
was pulled out, and that the wound was treated with oil and properly dressed.
Joan lay on the grass, weak and suffering, hour after hour, but still insisting that
the fight go on. Which it did, but not to much purpose, for it was only under her eye that
men were heroes and not afraid. They were like the Paladin; I think he was afraid of his
shadow - I mean in the afternoon, when it was very big and long; but when he was under
Joans eye and the inspiration of her great spirit, what was he afraid of? Nothing in
this world - and that is just the truth.
Toward night Dunois gave it up. Joan heard the bugles.
What! she cried. Sounding the retreat!
Her wound was forgotten in a moment. She countermanded the order, and sent another, to
the officer in command of a battery, to stand ready to fire five shots in quick
succession. This was a signal to a force on the Orleans side of the river under La Hire,
who was not, as some of the histories say, with us. It was to be given whenever Joan
should feel sure the boulevard was about to fall into her hands - then that force must
make a counter-attack on the Tourelles by way of the bridge.
Joan mounted her horse, now, with her staff about her, and when our people saw us
coming they raised a great shout, and were at once eager for another assault on the
boulevard. Joan rode straight to the fosse where she had received her wound, and standing
there in the rain of bolts and arrows, she ordered the Paladin to let her long standard
blow free, and to note when its fringes should touch the fortress. Presently he said -
It touches.
Now, then, said Joan to the waiting battalions, The place is yours -
enter in! Bugles, sound the assault! Now, then - all together - go!
And go it was. You never saw anything like it. We swarmed up the ladders and over the
battlements like a wave - and the place was our property. Why, one might live a thousand
years and never see so gorgeous a thing as that again. There, hand to hand, we fought like
wild beasts, for there was no give-up to those English - there was no way to convince one
of those people but to kill him, and even then he doubted. At least so it was thought in
those days, and maintained by many.
We were busy and never heard the five cannon-shots fired, but they were fired
a moment after Joan had ordered the assault; and so, while we were hammering and being
hammered in the smaller fortress, the reserve on the Orleans side poured across the bridge
and attacked the Tourelles from that side. A fire-boat was brought down and moored under
the drawbridge which connected the Tourelles with our boulevard; wherefore, when at last
we drove our English ahead of us and they tried to cross that drawbridge and join their
friends in the Tourelles, the burning timbers gave way under them and emptied them in a
mass into the river in their heavy armour - and a pitiful sight it was to see brave men
die such a death as that.
Ah, God pity them! said Joan, and wept to see that sorrowful spectacle. She
said those gentle words and wept those compassionate tears, although one of those
perishing men had grossly insulted her with a coarse name three days before, when she had
sent him a message asking him to surrender. That was their leader, Sir William Glasdale, a
most valorous knight. He was clothed all in steel; so he plunged under the water like a
lance, and of course came up no more.
We soon patched a sort of bridge together and threw ourselves against the last
stronghold of the English power that barred Orleans from friends and supplied. Before the
sun was quite down, Joans for ever memorable days work was finished, her
banner floated from the fortress of the Tourelles, her promise was fulfilled, she had
raised the siege of Orleans!
The seven months beleaguerment was ended, the thing which the first generals of
France had called impossible was accomplished; in spite of all that the Kings
ministers and war councils could do to prevent it, this little country maid of seventeen
had carried her immortal task through, and had done it in four days!
Good news travels fast, sometimes, as well as bad. By the time we were ready to start
homewards by the bridge the whole city of Orleans was one red flame of bonfires, and the
heavens blushed with satisfaction to see it; and the booming and bellowing of cannon and
the banging of bells surpassed by great odds anything that even Orleans had attempted
before in the way of noise.
When we arrived - well, there is no describing that. Why, those acres of people that we
ploughed through shed tears enough to raise the river; there was not a face in that glare
of those fires that hadnt tears streaming down it; and if Joans feet had not
been protected by iron they would have kissed them off her. Welcome! welcome to the
Maid of Orleans! That was the cry; I heard it a hundred thousand times.
Welcome to our Maid! some of them worded it.
No other girl in all history has ever reached such a summit of glory as Joan of Arc
reached that day. And do you think it turned her head, and that she sat up to enjoy that
delicious music of homage and applause? No; another girl would have done that, but not
this one. That was the greatest heart and the simplest that ever beat. She went straight
to bed and to sleep, like any tired child; and when the people found she was wounded and
would rest, they shut off all passage and traffic in that region and stood guard
themselves the whole night through, to see that her slumbers were not disturbed. They
said, She has given us peace, she shall have peace herself.
All knew that that region would be empty of English next day, and all said that neither
the present citizens nor their posterity would ever cease to hold that day sacred to the
memory of Joan of Arc. That word has been true for more than sixty years, it will continue
so always. Orleans will never forget the 8th of May, nor ever fail to celebrate it. It is
Joan of Arcs day - and holy. [It is still celebrated every year with
civic and military pomps and solemnities. - Translator]
Chapter 23
In the earliest dawn of the morning, Talbot and his English forces evacuated their
bastilles and marched away, not stopping to burn, destroy, or carry off anything, but
leaving their fortresses just as they were, provisioned, armed, and equipped for a long
siege. It was difficult for the people to believe that this great thing had really
happened; that they were actually free once more, and might go and come through any gate
they pleased, with none to molest or forbid; that the terrible Talbot, that scourge of the
French, that man whose mere name had been able to annul the effectiveness of French
armies, was gone, vanquished, retreating - driven away by a girl.
The city emptied itself. Out of every gate the crowds poured. They swarmed about the
English bastilles like an invasion of ants, but noisier than those creatures, and carried
off the artillery and stores, then turned all those dozen fortresses into monster
bonfires, imitation volcanoes whose lofty columns of thick smoke seemed supporting the
arch of the sky.
The delight of the children took another form. To some of the younger ones seven months
was a sort of lifetime. They had forgotten what grass was like, and the velvety green
meadows seemed paradise to their surprised and happy eyes after the long habit of seeing
nothing but dirty lanes and streets. It was a wonder to them - those spacious reaches of
open country to run and dance and tumble and frolic in, after their dull and joyless
captivity; so they scampered far and wide over the fair regions on both sides of the
river, and came back at eventide weary, but laden with flowers and flushed with new health
drawn from the fresh country air and the vigorous exercise.
After the burnings, the grown folk followed Joan from church to church and put in the
day in thanksgiving for the citys deliverance, and at night they fêted her and her
generals and illuminated the town, and high and low gave themselves up to festivities and
rejoicings. By the time the populace were fairly in bed, toward dawn, we were in the
saddle and away toward Tours to report to the King.
That was a march which would have turned any ones head but Joans. We moved
between emotional ranks of grateful country people all the way. They crowded about Joan to
touch her feet, her horse, her armour, and they even knelt in the road and kissed her
horses hoof-prints.
The land was full of her praises. The most illustrious chiefs of the Church wrote to
the King extolling the Maid, comparing her to the saints and heroes of the Bible, and
warning him not to let unbelief, ingratitude, or other injustice hinder or
impair the Divine help sent through her. One might think there was a touch of prophecy in
that, and we will let it go at that; but to my mind it had its inspiration in those great
mens accurate knowledge of the Kings trivial and treacherous character.
The King had come to Tours to meet Joan. At the present day this poor thing is called
Charles the Victorious, on account of the victories which other people won for him, but in
our own time we had a private name for him which described him better, and was sanctified
to him by personal deserving - Charles the Base. When we entered the presence he sat
throned, with his tinselled snobs and dandies around him. He looked like a forked carrot,
so tightly did his clothing fit him from his waist down; he wore shoes with a rope-like
pliant toe a foot long that had to be hitched up to the knee to keep it out of the way; he
had on a crimson velvet cape that came no lower than his elbows; on his head he had a tall
felt thing like a thimble, with a feather in its jewelled band that stuck up like a pen
from an inkhorn, and from under that thimble his blush of stiff hair stuck down to his
shoulders, curving outwards at the bottom, so that the cap and the hair together made the
head like a shuttlecock. All the materials of his dress were rich, and all the colours
brilliant. In his lap he cuddled a miniature greyhound that snarled, lifting its lip and
showing its white teeth whenever any slight movement disturbed it. The Kings dandies
were dressed in about the same fashion as himself, and when I remembered that Joan had
called the war-council of Orleans disguised ladies maids, it reminded me
of people who squander all their money on a trifle and then havent anything to
invest when they come across a better chance; that name ought to have been saved for these
creatures.
Joan fell on her knees before the majesty of France, and the other frivolous animal in
his lap - a sight which it pained me to see. What had that man done for his country or for
anybody in it, that she or any other person should kneel to him? But she - she had just
done the only great deed that had been done for France in fifty years, and had consecrated
it with the libation of her blood. The positions should have been reversed.
However, to be fair, one must grant that Charles acquitted himself very well for the
most part, on that occasion - very much better than he was in the habit of doing. He
passed his pup to a courtier, and took off his cap to Joan as if she had been a queen.
Then he stepped from his throne and raised her, and showed quite a spirited and manly joy
and gratitude in welcoming her and thanking her for her extraordinary achievement in his
service. My prejudices are of a later date than that. If he had continued as he was at
that moment, I should not have acquired them.
He acted handsomely. He said:
You shall not kneel to me, my matchless General; you have wrought royally, and
royal courtesies are your due. Noticing that she was pale, he said, But you
must not stand; you have lost blood for France, and your wound is yet green - come.
He led her to a seat and sat down by her. Now, then, speak out frankly, as to one
who owes you much and freely confesses it before all this courtly assemblage. What shall
be your reward Name it.
I was ashamed of him. And yet that was not fair, for how could he be expected to know
this marvellous child in these few weeks, when we who thought we had known her all her
life were daily seeing the clouds uncover some new altitudes of her character whose
existence was not suspected by us before? But we are all that way: when we know a thing we
have only scorn for other people who dont happen to know it. And I was ashamed of
these courtiers, too, for the way they licked their chops, so to speak, as envying Joan
her great chance, they not knowing her any better than the King did. A blush began to rise
in Joans cheeks at the thought that she was working for her country for pay, and she
dropped her head and tried to hide her face, as girls always do when they find themselves
blushing; no one knows why they do, but they do, and the more they blush the more they
cant bear to have people look at them when they are doing it. The King made it a
great deal worse by calling attention to it, which is the unkindest thing a person can do
when a girl is blushing; sometimes, when there is a big crowd of strangers, it is even
likely to make her cry if she is as young as Joan was. God knows the reason for this, it
is hidden from men. As for me, I would as soon blush as sneeze; in fact, I would rather.
However, these meditations are not of consequence: I will go on with what I was saying.
The King rallied her for blushing, and this brought up the rest of the blood and turned
her face to fire. Then he was sorry, seeing what he had done, and tried to make her
comfortable by saying the blush was exceedingly becoming to her and not to mind it - which
caused even the dog to notice it now, so of course the red in Joans face turned
purple, and the tears overflowed and ran down - I could have told anybody that that would
happen. The King was distressed, and saw that the best thing to do would be to get away
from this subject, so he began to say the finest things about Joans capture of the
Tourelles, and presently when she was more composed he mentioned the reward again and
pressed her to name it. Everybody listened with anxious interest to hear what her claim
was going to be, but when her answer came their faces showed that the thing she asked for
was not what they had been expecting.
Oh, dead and gracious Dauphin, I have but one desire - only one. If -
Do not be afraid, my child - name it.
That you will not delay a day. My army is strong and valiant, and eager to finish
its work - march with me to Rheims and receive your crown.
You could see the indolent King shrink, in his butterfly clothes.
To Rheims - oh, impossible, my General! We march through the heart of
Englands power?
Could those be French faces there? Not one of them lighted in response to the
girls brave proposition, but all promptly showed satisfaction in the Kings
objection. Leave this silken idleness for the rude contact of war? None of these
butterflies desired that. They passed their jewelled comfit-boxes one to another and
whispered their content in the head butterflys practical prudence. Joan pleaded with
the King, saying -
Ah, I pray you do not throw away this perfect opportunity. Everything is
favourable - everything. It is as if the circumstances were specially made for it. The
spirits of our army are exalted with victory, those of the English forces depressed by
defeat. Delay will change this. Seeing us hesitate to follow up our advantage, our men
will wonder, doubt, lose confidence, and the English will wonder, gather courage, and be
bold again. Now is the time - prithee let us march!
The King shook his head, and La Tremouille, being asked for an opinion, eagerly
furnished it:
Sire, all prudence is against it. Think of the English strongholds along the
Loire; think of those that lie between us and Rheims!
He was going on, but Joan cut him short, and said, turning to him -
If we wait, they will all be strengthened, re-enforced. Will that advantage
us?
Why - no.
Then what is your suggestion? - what is it that you would propose to do?
My judgement is to wait.
Wait for what?
The minister was obliged to hesitate, for he knew of no explanation that would sound
well. Moreover, he was not used to being catechised in this fashion, with the eyes of a
crowd of people on him; so he was irritated, and said -
Matters of state are not proper matters for public discussion.
Joan said placidly -
I have to beg your pardon. My trespass came of ignorance. I did not know that
matters connected with your department of the government were matters of state.
The minister lifted his brows in amused surprise, and said, with a touch of sarcasm -
I am the Kings chief minister, and yet you had the impression that matters
connected with my department are not matters of state? Pray how is that?
Joan replied, indifferently -
Because there is no state.
No state!
No, sir, there is no state, and no use for a minister. France is shrunk to a
couple of acres of ground; a sheriffs constable could take care of it; its affairs
are not matters of state. The term is too large.
The King did not blush, but burst into a hearty, careless laugh, and the court laughed
too, but prudently turned its head and did it silently. La Tremouille was angry, and
opened his mouth to speak, but the King put up his hand, and said -
There - I take her under the royal protection. She has spoken the truth, the
ungilded truth - how seldom I hear it! With all this tinsel on me and all this tinsel
about me, I am but a sheriff after all - a poor shabby two-acre sheriff - and you are but
a constable, and he laughed his cordial laugh again. Joan, my frank, honest
General, will you name your reward? I would ennoble you. You shall quarter the
crown and the lilies of France for blazon, and with them your victorious sword to defend
them - speak the word.
It made an eager buzz of surprise and envy in the assemblage, but Joan shook her head
and said -
Ah, I cannot, dear and noble Dauphin. To be allowed to work for France, to spend
ones self for France, is itself so supreme a reward that nothing can add to it -
nothing. Give me the one reward I ask, the dearest of all rewards, the highest in your
gift - march with me to Rheims and receive your crown. I will beg it on my knees.
But the King put his hand on her arm, and there was a really brave awakening in his
voice and a manly fire in his eye when he said -
No; sit. You have conquered me; it shall be as you -
But a warning sign from his minister halted him, and he added, to the relief of the
Court -
Well, well, we will think of it, we will think it over and see. Does that content
you, impulsive little soldier?
The first part of the speech sent a glow of delight to Joans face, but the end of
it quenched it and she looked sad, and the tears gathered in her eyes. After a moment she
spoke out with what seemed a sort of terrified impulse, and said -
Oh, use me; I beseech you, use me - there is but little time!
But little time?
'Only a year - I shall last only a year.
Why, child, there are fifty good years in that compact little body yet.
Oh, you err, indeed you do. In one little year the end will come. Ah, the time is
so short, so short; the moments are flying, and so much to be done. Oh, use me, and
quickly - it is life or death for France.
Even those insects were sobered by her impassioned words. The King looked very grave -
grave, and strongly impressed. His eyes lit suddenly with an eloquent fire and he rose and
drew his sword and raised it aloft; then he brought it slowly down upon Joans
shoulder and said:
Ah, thou art so simple, so true, so great, so noble - and by this accolade I join
thee to the nobility of France, thy fitting place! And for thy sake I do hereby ennoble
all thy family and all thy kin, and all their descendants born in wedlock, not only in the
male but also in the female line. And more! - more! To distinguish thy house and honour it
above all others, we add a privilege never accorded to any before in the history of these
dominions; the females of thy line shall have and hold the right to ennoble their husbands
when these shall be of the inferior degree. [Astonishment and envy flared up in
every countenance when the words were uttered which conferred this extraordinary grace.
The King paused and looked around upon these signs with quite evident satisfaction.]
Rise Joan of Arc, now and henceforth surnamed Du Lis, in grateful
acknowledgement of the good blow which you have struck for the lilies of France; and they,
and the royal crown, and your own victorious sword, fit and fair company for each other,
shall be grouped in your escutcheon and be and remain the symbol of your high nobility for
ever.
As my lady Du Lis rose, the gilded children of privilege pressed forward to welcome her
to their sacred ranks and call her by her new name; but she was troubled, and said these
honours were not meet for one of her lowly birth and station, and by their kind grace she
would remain simple Joan of Arc, nothing more - and so be called.
Nothing more! As if there could be anything more, anything higher, anything
greater! My lady Du Lis - why, it was tinsel, pretty, perishable. But - JOAN OF ARC! The
mere sound of it sets ones pulses leaping.
Chapter 24
It was vexatious to see what a to-do the whole town, and next the whole country, made
over the news. Joan of Arc ennobled by the King! People went dizzy with wonder and delight
over it. You cannot imagine how she was gaped at, stared at, envied. Why, one would have
supposed that some great and fortunate thing had happened to her. But we did not
think any great things of it. To our minds no mere human hand could add a glory to Joan of
Arc. To us she was the sun soaring in the heavens, and her new nobility a candle atop of
it; to us it was swallowed up and lost in her own light. And she was as indifferent to it
and as unconscious of it as the other sun would have been.
But it was different with her brothers. They were proud and happy in their new dignity,
which was quite natural. And Joan was glad it had been conferred, when she saw how pleased
they were. It was a clever thought in the King to outflank her scruples by marching on
them under shelter of her love for her family and her kin.
Jean and Pierre sported their coat-of-arms right away, and their society was courted by
everybody, the nobles and common alike. The Standard-bearer said, with some touch of
bitterness, that he could see that they just felt good to be alive, they were so soaked
with the comfort of their glory, and didnt like to sleep at all, because when they
were asleep they didnt know they were noble, and so sleep was a clean loss of time.
and then he said -
They cant take precedence of me in military functions and state ceremonies,
but when it comes to civil ones and society affairs I judge theyll cuddle coolly in
behind you and the knights, and Noël and I will have to walk behind them -
hey?
Yes, I said, I think you are right.
I was just afraid of it - just afraid of it, said the Standard-bearer, with
a sigh. Afraid of it? Im talking like a fool: of course I knew it.
Yes, I was talking like a fool.
Noël Rainguesson said, musingly -
Yes, I noticed something natural about the tone of it.
We others laughed.
Oh, you did, did you? You think you are very clever, dont you? Ill
take and wring your neck for you one of these days, Noël Rainguesson.
The Sieur de Metz said -
Paladin, your fears havent reached the top notch. They are away below the
grand possibilities. Didnt it occur to you that in civil and society functions they
will take precedence of all the rest of the personal staff - every individual of
us?
Oh, come!
Youll find it so. Look at their escutcheon. Its chiefest feature is the
lilies of France. Its royal, man, royal - do you understand the size of that? The lilies are there by authority of the King - do you understand the size of that? Though
not in detail and in eternity, they do nevertheless substantially quarter the arms of
France in their coat. Imagine it! consider it! measure the magnitude of it! We walk in front of those boys? Bless you, weve done that for the last time. In my
opinion there isnt a lay lord in this whole region that can walk in front of them,
except the Duke dAlençon, prince of the blood.
You could have knocked the Paladin down with a feather. He seemed to actually turn
pale. He worked his lips a moment without getting anything out; then it came:
I didnt know that, nor the half of it; how could I? Ive been
an idiot. I see now - Ive been an idiot. I met them this morning, and sung out hello to them just as I would to anybody. I didnt mean to be ill-mannered, but I
didnt know the half of this that youve been telling. Ive been an ass.
Yes, that is all there is to it - Ive been and ass.
Noël Rainguesson said, in a kind of weary way:
Yes, that is likely enough; but I dont see why you should seem surprised at
it.
You dont, dont you? Well, why dont you?
Because I dont see any novelty about it. With some people it is a condition
which is present all the time. Now you take a condition which is present all the time, and
the results of that condition will be uniform: this uniformity of result will become
monotonous; monotonousness, by the law of its being, is fatiguing. If you had manifested fatigue upon noticing that you had been an ass, that would have been logical, that would have been
rational; whereas it seems to me that to manifest surprise was to be again an
ass, because the condition of intellect that can enable a person to be surprised and
stirred by inert monotonousness is a -
Now that is enough, Noël Rainguesson; stop where you are, before you get
yourself into trouble. And dont bother me any more for some days or a week an it
please you, for I cannot abide your clack.
Come, I like that! I didnt want to talk. I tried to get out of
talking. If you didnt want to hear my clack, what did you keep intruding your
conversation on me for?
I? I never dreamed of such a thing.
Well, you did it, anyway. And I have a right to feel hurt, and I do feel hurt, to
have you treat me so. It seems to me that when a person goads, and crowds, and in a manner
forces another person to talk, it is neither very fair nor very good-mannered to call what
he says clack.
Oh, snuffle - do! and break your heart, you poor thing! Somebody fetch this sick
doll a sugar-rag. Look you, Sir Jean de Metz, do you feel absolutely certain about that
thing?
What thing?
Why, that Jean and Pierre are going to take precedence of all the lay noblesse
hereabouts except the Duke dAlençon?
I think there is not a doubt of it.
The Standard-bearer was deep in thoughts and dreams a few moments, then the
silk-and-velvet expense of his vast breast rose and fell with a sigh, and he said:
Dear, dear, what a lift it is! It just shows what luck can do. Well, I dont
care. I shouldnt care to be a painted accident - I shouldnt value it. I am
prouder to have climbed up to where I am just by sheer natural merit than I would be to
ride the very sun in the zenith and have to reflect that I was nothing but a poor little
accident, and got shot up there out of somebody elses catapult. To me, merit is
everything - in fact, the only thing. All else is dross.
Just then the bugles blew the assembly, and that cut our talk short.
Chapter 25
The days began to waste away - and nothing decided, nothing done. The army was full of
zeal, but it was also hungry. It got no pay, the treasury was getting empty, it was
becoming impossible to feed it; under pressure of privation it began to fall apart and
disperse - which pleased the trifling Court exceedingly. Joans distress was pitiful
to see. She was obliged to stand helpless while her victorious army dissolved away, until
hardly the skeleton of it was left.
At last one day she went to the Castle of Loches, where the King was idling. She found
him consulting three of his counsellors, Robert le Maçon, a former Chancellor of France,
Christophe dHarcourt, and Gerard Machet. The Bastard of Orleans was present also,
and it is through him that we know what happened. Joan threw herself at the Kings
feet and embraced his knees, saying:
Noble Dauphin, prithee hold no more of these long and numerous councils, but
come, and come quickly, to Rheims and receive your crown.
Christophe dHarcourt asked:
Is it your Voices that command you to say that to the King?
Yes, and urgently.
Then will you not tell us in the Kings presence in what way the Voices
communicate with you?
It was another sly attempt to trap Joan into indiscreet admissions and dangerous
pretensions. But nothing came of it. Joans answer was simple straightforward, and
the smooth Bishop was not able to find any fault with it. She said that when she met with
people who doubted the truth of her mission she went aside and prayed, complaining of the
distrust of these, and then the comforting Voices were heard at her ear saying, soft and
low, Go forward, Daughter of God, and I will help thee. Then she added,
When I hear that, the joy in my heart, oh, it is insupportable!
The Bastard said that when she said these words her face lit up as with a flame, and
she was like one in an ecstasy.
Joan pleaded, persuaded, reasoned; gaining ground little by little, but opposed step by
step by the council. She begged, she implored, leave to march. When they could answer
nothing further, they granted that perhaps it had been a mistake to let the army waste
away, but how could we help it now? how could we march without an army?
Raise one, said Joan.
But it will take six weeks.
No matter - begin! let us begin!
It is too late. Without doubt the Duke of Bedford has been gathering troops to
push to the succour of his strongholds on the Loire.
Yes, while we have been disbanding ours - and pity tis. But we must throw
away no more time; we must bestir ourselves.
The King objected that he could not venture towards Rheims with those strong places on
the Loire in his path. But Joan said:
We will break them up. Then you can march.
With that plan the King was willing to venture assent. He could sit around out
of danger while the road was being cleared.
Joan came back in great spirits. Straightway everything was stirring. Proclamations
were issued calling for men, a recruiting camp was established at Selles, in Berry, and
the commons and the nobles began to flock to it with enthusiasm.
A deal of the month of May had been wasted; and yet by June 6 Joan had swept together a
new army and was ready to march. She had eight thousand men. Think of that. Think of
gathering together such a body as that in that little region. And these were veteran
soldiers, when you came to that; for the wars had lasted generations now. Yes, most
Frenchmen were soldiers; and admirable runners, too, both by practice and inheritance;
they had done next to nothing but run for near a century. But that was not their fault.
They had had no fair and proper leadership - at least leaders with a fair and proper
chance. Away back, King and Court got the habit of being treacherous to the leaders; then
the leaders easily got the habit of disobeying the King and going their own way, each for
himself and nobody for the lot. Nobody could win victories that way. Hence, running became
the habit of the French troops, and no wonder. Yet all that those troops needed in order
to be good fighters was a leader who would attend strictly to business - a leader with all
authority in his hands in place of a tenth of it along with nine other generals equipped
with an equal tenth apiece. They had a leader rightly clothed with authority now, and with
a lead and heart bent on war of the most intensely businesslike and earnest sort - and
there would be results. No doubt of that. They had Joan of Arc; and under that
leadership their legs would lose the art and mystery of running.
Yes, Joan was in great spirits. She was here and there and everywhere, all over the
camp, by day and by night, pushing things. And wherever she came charging down the lines,
reviewing the troops, it was good to hear them break out and cheer. And nobody could help
cheering, she was such a vision of young bloom and beauty and grace, and such an
incarnation of pluck and life and go! She was growing more and more ideally beautiful
every day, as was plain to be seen - and these were days of development; for she was well
past seventeen, now - in fact, she was getting close upon seventeen and a half - indeed,
just a little woman, as you may say.
The two young Counts de Laval arrived one day - fine young fellows allied to the
greatest and most illustrious houses of France; and they could not rest till they had seen
Joan of Arc. So the King sent for them and presented them to her, and you may believe she
filled the bill of their expectations. When they heard that rich voice of hers they must
have thought it was a flute; and when they saw her deep eyes and her face, and the soul
that looked out of that face, you could see that the sight of her stirred them like a
poem, like lofty eloquence, like martial music. One of them wrote home to his people, and
in his letter he said, It seemed something divine to see her and hear her. Ah,
yes, and it was a true word. Truer word was never spoken.
He saw her when she was ready to begin her march and open the campaign, and this is
what he said about it:
She was clothed all in white armour save her head, and in her hand she carried a
little battle-axe; and when she was ready to mount her great black horse he reared and
plunged and would not let her. Then she said, "Lead him to the cross." This
cross was in front of the church close by. So they led him there. Then she mounted, and he
never budged, any more than if he had been tied. Then she turned toward the door of the
church and said, in her soft womanly voice, "You, priests and people of the Church,
make processions and pray to God for us!" Then she spurred away, under her standard,
with her little axe in her hand, crying "Forward - march!" One of her brothers,
who came eight days ago, departed with her; and he also was clad all in white
armour.
I was there, and I saw it too; saw it all, just as he pictures it. And I see it yet -
the little battle-axe, the dainty plumed cap, the white armour - all in the soft June
afternoon; I see it just as if it were yesterday. And I rode with the staff - the personal
staff - the staff of Joan of Arc.
That young Count was dying to go too, but the King held him back for the present. But
Joan had made him a promise. In his letter he said:
She told me that when the King starts for Rheims I shall go with him. But God
grant I may not have to wait till then, but may have a part in the battles!
She made him that promise when she was taking leave of my lady the Duchess
dAlençon. The Duchess was exacting a promise, so it seemed a proper time for others
to do the like. The Duchess was troubled for her husband, for she foresaw desperate
fighting; and she held Joan to her breast, and stroked her hair lovingly, and said:
You must watch over him, dear, and take care of him, and send him back to me
safe. I require it of you; I will not let you go till you promise.
Joan said:
I give you the promise with all my heart; and it is not just words, it is a promise: you shall have him back without a hurt. Do you believe? And are you satisfied
with me now?
The Duchess could not speak, but she kissed Joan on the forehead; and so they parted.
We left on the 6th and stopped over at Romorantin; then on the 9th Joan entered Orleans
in state, under triumphal arches, with the welcoming cannon thundering and seas of
welcoming flags fluttering in the breeze. The Grand Staff rode with her, clothed in
shining splendours of costume and decorations: the Duke dAlençon; the Bastard of
Orleans; the Sire de Boussac, Marshal of France; the Lord de Graville, Master of the
Crossbowmen; the Sire de Culan, Admiral of France; Ambroise de Loré; Étienne de
Vignoles, called La Hire; Gautier de Brusac, and other illustrious captains.
It was grand times: the usual shoutings, and packed multitudes, the usual crush to get
sight of Joan; but at last we crowded through to our old lodgings, and I saw old Boucher
and the wife and that dear Catherine gather Joan to their hearts and smother her with
kisses - and my heart ached so! for I could have kissed Catherine better than anybody, and
more and longer; yet was not thought of for that office, and so I famished for it. Ah, she
was so beautiful, and oh, so sweet! I had loved her the first day I saw her, and from that
day forth she was sacred to me. I have carried her image in my heart for sixty-three years
- all lonely there, yes, solitary, for it never has had company - and I am grown so old,
so old: but it, oh it is as fresh and young and merry and mischievous and lovely and sweet
and pure and witching and divine as it was when it crept in there, bringing benediction
and peace to its habitation so long ago, so long ago - for it has not aged a day!
Chapter 26
This time, as before, the Kings last command to the generals was this: See
to it that you do nothing without the sanction of the Maid. And this time the
command was obeyed; and would continue to be obeyed all through the coming days of the
Loire campaign.
That was a change! That was new! It broke the traditions. It shows you what sort of a
reputation as a commander-in-chief the child had made for herself in ten days in the
field. It was a conquering of mens doubts and suspicions and a capturing and
solidifying of mens belief and confidence such as the grayest veteran on the Grand
Staff had not been able to achieve in thirty years. Dont you remember that when at
sixteen Joan conducted her own case in a grim court of law and won it, the old judge spoke
of her as this marvellous child? It was the right name, you see.
These veterans were not going to branch out and do things without the sanction of the
Maid - that is true; and it was a great gain. But at the same time there were some among
them who still trembled at her new and dashing war-tactics and earnestly desired to modify
them. And so, during the 10th, while Joan was slaving away at her plans and issuing order
after order with tireless industry, the old-time consultations and arguings and
speechifyings were going on among certain of the generals.
In the afternoon of that day they came in a body to hold one of these councils of war;
and while they waited for Joan to join them they discussed the situation. Now this
discussion is not set down in the histories, but I was there, and I will speak of it, as
knowing you will trust me, I not being given to beguiling you with lies.
Gautier de Brusac was spokesman for the timid ones; Joans side was resolutely
upheld by DAlençon, the Bastard, La Hire, the Admiral of France, the Marshall de
Boussac, and all the other really important chiefs.
De Brusac argued that the situation was very grave; that Jargeau, the first point of
attack, was formidably strong; its imposing walls bristling with artillery; with 7 000
picked English veterans behind them, and at their head the great Earl of Suffolk and his
two redoubtable brothers, the De la Poles. It seemed to him that the proposal of Joan of
Arc to try to take such a place by storm was a most rash and over-daring idea, and she
ought to be persuaded to relinquish it in favour of the soberer and safer procedure of
investment by regular siege. It seemed to him that this fiery and furious new fashion of
hurling masses of men against impregnable walls of stone, in defiance of the established
laws and usages of war, was -
But he got no further. La Hire gave his plumed helm an impatient toss and burst out
with:
By God she knows her trade, and none can teach it her!
And before he could get out anything more, DAlençon was on his feet, and the
Bastard of Orleans, and half a dozen others, all thundering at once, and pouring out their
indignant displeasure upon any and all that might hold, secretly of publicly, distrust of
the wisdom of the Commander-in-Chief. And when they had said their say, La Hire took a
chance again, and said:
There are some that never know how to change. Circumstances may change, but those
people are never able to see that they have got to change too, to meet those
circumstances. All that they know is the one beaten track that their fathers and
grandfathers have followed and that they themselves have followed in their turn. If an
earthquake come and rip the land to chaos, and that beaten track now lead over precipices
and into morasses, those people cant learn that they must strike out a new
road - no; they will march stupidly along and follow the old one to death and perdition.
Men, theres a new state of things, and a surpassing military genius has perceived it
with her clear eye. And a new road is required, and that same clear eye has noted where it
must go, and has marked it out for us. The man does not live, never has lived, never will live, that can improve upon it! The old state of things was defeat, defeat, defeat - and
by consequence we had troops with no dash, no heart, no hope. Would you assault stone
walls with such? No - there was but one way with that kind: sit down before a place an
wait, wait - starve it out, if you could. The new case is the very opposite; it is this:
men all on fire with pluck and dash and vim and fury and energy - a restrained
conflagration! What would you do with it? Hold it down and let it smoulder and perish and
go out? What would Joan of Arc do with it? Turn it loose, by the Lord God of
heaven and earth, and let it swallow up the foe in the whirlwind of its fires! Nothing
shows the splendour and wisdom of her military genius like her instant comprehension of
the size of the change which has come about, and her instant perception of the right and
only right way to take advantage of it. With her is no sitting down and starving out; no
dilly-dallying and fooling around; no lazying, loafing, and going to sleep; no, it is
storm! storm! storm! and still storm! storm! storm! and forever storm! storm! storm! hunt
the enemy to his hole, then turn her French hurricanes loose and carry him by storm! And
that is my sort! Jargeau? What of Jargeau, with its battlements and towers, its
devastating artillery, its seven thousand picked veterans? Joan of Arc is to the fore, and
by the splendour of God its fate is sealed!
Oh, he carried them. There was not another word said about persuading Joan to change
her tactics. They sat talking comfortably enough after that.
By-an-by Joan entered, and they rose and saluted with their swords, and she asked what
their pleasure might be. La Hire said:
It is settled, my General. The matter concerned Jargeau. There were some who
thought we could not take the place.
Joan laughed her pleasant laugh; her merry, care-free laugh; the laugh that rippled so
buoyantly from her lips and made old people feel young again to hear it; and she said to
the company:
Have no fears - indeed there is no need nor any occasion for them. We sill strike
the English boldly by assault, and you will see. Then a far-away look came into her
eyes, and I think that a picture of her home drifted across the vision of her mind; for
she said very gently, and as one who muses, But that I know God guides us and will
give us success, I had liefer keep sheep than endure these perils.
We had a homelike farewell supper that evening - just the personal staff and the
family. Joan had to miss it; for the city had given a banquet in her honour, and she had
gone there in state with the Grand Staff, through a riot of joy-bells and a sparkling
Milky Way of illuminations.
After supper some lively young folk whom we knew came in, and we presently forgot that
we were soldiers, and only remembered that we were boys and girls and full of animal
spirits and long-pent fun; and so there was dancing, and games, and romps, and screams of
laughter - just as extravagant and innocent and noisy a good time as ever I had in my
life. Dear, dear, how long ago it was! - and I was young then. And outside, all the while,
was the measured tramp of marching battalions, belated odds and ends of the French power
gathering for the morrows tragedy on the grim stage of war. Yes, in those days we
had those contrasts side by side. And as I passed along to bed there was another one: the
big Dwarf, in brave new armour, sat sentry at Joans door - the stern Spirit of War
made flesh, as it were - and on his ample shoulder was curled a kitten asleep.
Chapter 27
We made a gallant show next day when we filed out through the frowning gates of
Orleans, with banners flying and Joan and the Grand Staff in the van of the long column.
Those two young De Lavals were come, now, and were joined to the Grand Staff. Which was
well; war being their proper trade, for they were grandsons of that illustrious fighter
Bertrand du Guesclin, Constable of France in earlier day. Louis de Bourbon, the Marshal de
Rais, and the Vidame de Chartres were added also. We had a right to feel a little uneasy,
for we knew that a force of five thousand men was on its way under Sir John Fastolfe to
reinforce Jargeau, but I think we were not uneasy, nevertheless. In truth, that force was
not yet in our neighbourhood. Sir John was loitering; for some reason or other he was not
hurrying. He was losing precious time - four days at Etampes, and four more at Janville.
We reached Jargeau and began business at once. Joan sent forward a heavy force which
hurled itself against the outworks in handsome style, and gained a footing and fought hard
to keep it; but it presently began to fall back before a sortie from the city. Seeing
this, Joan raised her battle-cry and led a new assault herself under a furious artillery
fire. The Paladin was struck down at her side, wounded, but she snatched her standard from
his failing hand, and plunged on through the ruck of flying missiles, cheering her men
with encouraging cries; and then for a good time one had turmoil, and clash of steel, and
collision and confusion of struggling multitudes, and the hoarse bellowing of the guns;
and then the hiding of it all under a rolling firmament of smoke; a firmament through
which veiled vacancies appeared for a moment now and then, giving fitful dim glimpses of
the wild tragedy enacting beyond; and always at these times one caught sight of that
slight figure in white mail which was the centre and soul of our hope and trust, and
whenever we saw that, with its back to us and its face to the fight, we knew that all was
well. At last a great shout went up - a joyous roar of shoutings, in fact - and that was
sign sufficient that the faubourgs were ours.
Yes, they were ours; the enemy had driven back within the walls. On the ground which
Joan had won, we camped; for night was coming on.
Joan sent a summons to the English, promising that if they surrendered she would allow
them to go in peace and take their horses with them. Nobody knew that she could take that
strong place, but she knew it - knew it well; yet she offered that grace - offered it in a
time when such a thing was unknown in war; in a time when it was custom and usage to
massacre the garrison and the inhabitants of captured cities without pity or compunction -
yes, even to the harmless women and children sometimes. There are neighbours all about you
who well remember the unspeakable atrocities which Charles the Bold inflicted upon the men
and women and children of Dinant when he took that place some years ago. It was a unique
and kindly grace which Joan offered that garrison; but that was her way, that was her
loving and merciful nature - she always did her best to save her enemys life and his
soldierly pride when she had the mastery of him.
The English asked fifteen days armistice to consider the proposal in. And
Fastolfe coming with 5,000 men! Joan said no. But she offered another grace: they might
take both their horses and their side-arms - but they must go within the hour.
Well, those bronzed English veterans were pretty hard-headed folk. They declined again.
Then Joan gave command that her army be made ready to move to the assault at nine in the
morning. Considering the deal of marching and fighting which the men had done that day,
DAlençon thought the hour rather early; but Joan said it was best so, and so must
be obeyed. Then she burst out with one of those enthusiasms which were always burning in
her when battle was imminent, and said:
Work! work! and God will work with us!
Yes, one might say that her motto was Work! stick to it, keep on working!
for in war she never knew what indolence was. And whoever will take that motto and live by
it will be likely to succeed. Theres many a way to win in this world, but none of
them is worth much without good hard work back of it.
I think we should have lost our big Standard-Bearer that day, if our bigger Dwarf had
not been at hand to bring him out of the mêlée when he was wounded. He was unconscious,
and would have been trampled to death by our own horse, if the Dwarf had not promptly
rescued him and haled him to the rear and safety. He recovered, and was himself again
after two or three hours, and then he was happy and proud, and made the most of his wound,
and went swaggering around in his bandages showing off like an innocent big child - which
was just what he was. He was prouder of being wounded than a really modest person would be
of being killed. But there was no harm in his vanity, and nobody minded it. He said he was
hit by a stone from a catapult - a stone the size of a mans head. But the stone
grew, of course. Before he got through with it he was claiming that the enemy had flung a
building at him.
Let him alone, said Noël Rainguesson. Dont interrupt his
processes. Tomorrow it will be a cathedral.
He said that privately. And, sure enough tomorrow it was a cathedral. I never
saw anybody with such an abandoned imagination.
Joan was abroad at the crack of dawn, galloping here and there an yonder, examining the
situation minutely, and choosing what she considered the most effective positions for her
artillery; and with such accurate judgement did she place her guns that her
Lieutenant-Generals admiration of it still survived in his memory when his testimony
was taken at the Rehabilitation, a quarter of century later.
In his testimony the Duke dAlençon said that at Jargeau that morning of the 12th
of June she made her dispositions not like a novice, but with the sure and clear
judgement of a trained general of twenty or thirty years experience.
The veteran captains of the armies of France said she was great in war in all ways, but
greatest of all in her genius for posting and handling artillery.
Who taught the shepherd girl to do these marvels - she who could not read, and had had
no opportunity to study the complex arts of war? I do not know any way to solve such a
baffling riddle as that, there being no precedent for it, nothing in history to compare it
with and examine it by. For in history there is no great general, however gifted, who
arrived at success otherwise than through able teaching and hard study and some
experience. It is a riddle which will never be guessed. I think these vast powers
and capacities were born in her, and that she applied them by an intuition which could not
err.
At eight oclock all movements ceased, and with it all sounds, all noise. A mute
expectancy reigned. The stillness was something awful - because it meant so much. There
was no air stirring. The flags on the towers and ramparts hung straight down like tassels.
Wherever one saw a person, that person had stopped what he was doing, and was in a waiting
attitude, a listening attitude. We were on a commanding spot, clustered around Joan. Not
far from us, on every hand, were the lanes and humble dwellings of these outlying suburbs.
Many people were visible - all were listening, not one was moving. A man had placed a
nail; he was about to fasten something with it to the door-post of his shop - but he had
stopped. There was his hand reaching up holding the nail; and there was his other hand in
the act of striking with the hammer; but he had forgotten everything - his head was turned
aside, listening. Even children unconsciously stopped in their play; I saw a little boy
with his hoop-stick pointed slanting toward the ground in the act of steering the hoop
around the corner; and so he had stopped and was listening - the hoop was rolling away,
doing its own steering. I saw a young girl prettily framed in an open window, a
watering-pot in her hand and window-boxes of red flowers under its spout - but the water
had ceased to flow; the girl was listening. Everywhere were these impressive petrified
forms; and everywhere was suspended movement and that awful stillness.
Joan of Arc raised her sword in the air. At the signal, the silence was torn to rags;
cannon after cannon vomited flames and smoke and delivered its quaking thunders; and we
saw answering tongues of fire dart from the towers and walls of the city, accompanied by
answering deep thunders, and in a minute the walls and the towers disappeared, and it
their place stood vast banks and pyramids of snowy smoke, motionless in the dead air. The
startled girl dropped her watering-pot and clasped her hands together, and at that moment
a stone cannon-ball crashed through her fair body.
The great artillery duel went on, each side hammering away with all its might; and it
was splendid for smoke and noise, and most exalting to ones spirits. The poor little
town around about us suffered cruelly. The cannon-balls tore through its slight buildings,
wrecking them as if they had been built of cards; and every moment or two one would see a
huge rock come curving through the upper air above the smoke clouds and go plunging down
through the roofs. Fire broke out, and columns of flame and smoke rose toward the sky.
Presently the artillery concussions changed the weather. The sky became overcast, and a
strong wind rose and blew away the smoke that hid the English fortresses.
Then the spectacle was fine: turreted gray walls and towers, and streaming bright
flags, and jets of red fire and gushes of white smoke in long rows, all standing out with
sharp vividness against the deep leaden background of the sky; and then whizzing missiles
began to knock up the dirt all around us, and I felt no more interest in the scenery.
There was one English gun that was getting our position down finer and finer all the time.
Presently Joan pointed to it and said:
Fair Duke, step out of your tracks, or that machine will kill you.
The Duke dAlençon did as he was bid; but Monsieur du Lude rashly took his place,
and that cannon tore his head off in a moment.
Joan was watching all along for the right time to order the assault. At last, about
nine oclock, she cried out:
Now - to the assault! and the buglers blew the charge.
Instantly we saw the body of men that had been appointed to this service move forward
toward a point where the concentrated fire of our guns had crumbled the upper half of a
broad stretch of wall to ruins; we saw this force descend into the ditch and begin to
plant the scaling ladders. We were soon with them. The Lieutenant-General thought the
assault premature. But Joan said:
Ah, gentle Duke, are you afraid? Do you not know that I promised to send you home
safe?
It was warm work in the ditches, the walls were crowded with men, and they poured
avalanches of stones down upon us. There was one gigantic Englishman who did us more hurt
than any dozen of his brethren. He always dominated the places easiest to assault, and
flung down exceedingly troublesome big stones which smashed men and ladders both - then he
would near burst himself with laughing over what he had done. But the Duke settled
accounts with him. He went and found the famous cannoneer Jean le Lorrain, and said:
Train your gun - kill me this demon.
He did it with the first shot. He hit the Englishman fair in the breast and knocked him
backwards into the city.
The enemys resistance was so effective and so stubborn that our people began to
show signs of doubt and dismay. Seeing this, Joan raised her inspiring battle-cry and
descended into the fosse herself, the Dwarf helping her and the Paladin sticking bravely
at her side with the standard. She started up a scaling-ladder, but a great stone flung
from above came crashing down upon her helmet and stretched her, wounded and stunned, upon
the ground. But only for a moment. The Dwarf stood her upon her feet, and straightway she
started up the ladder again, crying:
To the assault, friends, to the assault - the English are ours! It is the
appointed hour!
There was a grand rush, and a fierce roar of war-cries, and we swarmed over the
ramparts like ants. The garrison fled, we pursued; Jargeau was ours!
The Earl of Suffolk was hemmed in and surrounded, and the Duke dAlençon and the
Bastard of Orleans demanded that he surrender himself. But he was a proud nobleman and
came of a proud race. He refused to yield his sword to subordinates, saying:
I will die rather. I will surrender to the Maid of Orleans alone, and to no
other.
And so he did; and was courteously and honourable used by her.
His two brothers retreated, fighting step by step, toward the bridge, we pressing their
despairing forces and cutting them down by scores. Arrived on the bridge, the slaughter
still continued. Alexander de la Pole was pushed overboard or fell over, and was drowned.
Eleven hundred men had fallen; John de la Pole decided to give up the struggle. But he was
nearly as proud and particular as his brother of Suffolk as to whom he would surrender to.
The French officer nearest at hand was Guillaume Renault, who was pressing him closely.
Sir John said to him:
Are you a gentleman?
Yes.
And a knight?
No.
Then Sir John knighted him himself, there on the bridge, giving him the accolade with
English coolness and tranquillity in the midst of that storm of slaughter and mutilation,
and then bowing with high courtesy took the sword by the blade and laid the hilt of it in
the mans hand in token of surrender. Ah, yes, a proud tribe, those De la Poles.
It was a grand day, a memorable day, a most splendid victory. We had a crowd of
prisoners, but Joan would not allow them to be hurt. We took them with us and marched into
Orleans next day through the usual tempest of welcome and joy.
An this time there was a new tribute to out leader. From everywhere in the packed
streets the new recruits squeezed their way to her side to touch the sword of Joan of Arc
and draw from it somewhat of that mysterious quality which made it invincible.
Chapter 28
The troops must have a rest. Two days would be allowed for this.
The morning of the 14th I was writing from Joans dictation in a small room which
she sometimes used as a private office when she wanted to get away from officials and
their interruptions. Catherine Boucher came in and sat down and said:
Joan, dear, I want you to talk to me.
Indeed I am not sorry for that, but glad. What is in your mind?
This. I scarcely slept last night for thinking of the dangers you are running.
The Paladin told me how you made the Duke stand out of the way when the cannon-balls were
flying all about, and so saved his life.
Well, that was right, wasnt it?
Right? Yes; but you stayed there yourself. Why will you do like that? It seems
such a wanton risk.
Oh, no, it was not so. I was not in any danger.
How can you say that, Joan, with those deadly things flying all about you?
Joan laughed, and tried to turn the subject, but Catherine persisted. She said:
It was horribly dangerous, and it could not be necessary to stay in such a place.
And you led an assault again. Joan, it is tempting Providence. I want you to make me a
promise. I want you to promise me that you will let others lead the assaults, if there must be assaults, and that you will take better care of yourself in those dreadful battles.
Will you?
But Joan fought away from the promise, and did not give it. Catherine sat troubled and
discontented awhile, then she said:
Joan, are you going to be a soldier always? These wars are so long - so long.
They last for ever and ever and ever.
There was a glad flash in Joans eye as she cried:
This campaign will do all the really hard work that is in front of it in the next
four days. The rest of it will be gentler - oh, far less bloody. Yes, in four days France
will gather another trophy like the redemption of Orleans, and make her second long step
toward freedom!
Catherine started (and so did I); then she gazed long at Joan like one in a trance,
murmuring four days - four days, as if to herself and unconsciously. Finally
she asked, in a low voice that had something of awe in it:
Joan, tell me - how is it that you know that? For you do know it, I think.
Yes, said Joan, dreamily, I know - I know. I shall strike - and
strike again. And before the fourth day is finished I shall strike yet again. She
became silent. We sat wondering and still. This was for a whole minute, she looking at the
floor and her lips moving but uttering nothing. Then came these words, but hardly audible:
And in a thousand years the English power in France will not rise up from that
blow.
It made my flesh creep. It was uncanny. She was in a trance again - I could see it -
just as she was that day in the pastures of Domremy when she prophesied about us boys in
the war and afterward did not know that she had done it. She was not conscious now, but
Catherine did not know that, and so she said, in a happy voice:
Oh, I believe it, I believe it, and I am so glad! Then you will come back and
bide with us all your life long, and we will love you so, and so honour you!
A scarcely perceptible spasm flitted across Joans face, and the dreamy voice
muttered:
Before two years are sped I shall die a cruel death!
I sprang forward with a warning hand up. That is why Catherine did not scream. She was
going to do that - I saw it plainly. Then I whispered her to slip out of the place, and
say nothing of what had happened. I said Joan was asleep - asleep and dreaming. Catherine
whispered back, and said:
Oh, I am so grateful that it is only a dream! It sounded like a prophecy.
And she was gone.
Like prophecy! I knew it was prophecy; and I sat down and crying, as
knowing we should lose her. Soon she started, shivering slightly, and came to herself, and
looked around and saw me crying there, and jumped out of her chair and ran to me all in a
whirl of sympathy and compassion, and put her hand on my head and said:
My poor boy! What is it? Look up, and tell me.
I had to tell her a lie; I grieved to do it, but there was no other way. I picked up an
old letter from my table, written by Heaven knows who, about some matter Heaven knows
what, and told her I had just gotten it from Père Fronte, and that in it it said the
childrens Fairy Tree had been chopped down by some miscreant or other, and -
I got no further. She snatched the letter from my hands and searched it up and down and
all over, turning it this way and that, and sobbing great sobs, and the tears flowing down
her cheeks, and ejaculating all the time, Oh, cruel, cruel! how could any be so
heartless? Ah, poor Arbre Fée do Bourlemont gone - and we children loved it so! Show me
the place where it says it!
And I, still lying, showed her the pretended fatal words on the pretended fatal page,
and she gazed at them through her tears, and said she could see herself that they were
hateful, ugly words - they had the very look of it.
Then we heard a strong voice down the corridor announcing -
His Majestys messenger - with despatches for her Excellency the
Commander-in-Chief of the armies of France!
Chapter 29
I knew she had seen the vision of the Tree. But when? I could not know.
Doubtless before she had lately told the King to use her, for that she had but one year
left to work in. It had not occurred to me at the time, but the conviction came upon me
now that at that time she had already seen the Tree. It had brought her a welcome message;
that was plain, otherwise she could not have been so joyous and light-hearted as she had
been these latter days. The death-warning had nothing dismal about it for her; no, it was
remission of exile, it was leave to come home.
Yes, she had seen the Tree. No one had taken the prophecy to heart which she had made
to the King; and for a good reason, no doubt; no one wanted to take it to heart;
all wanted to banish it away and forget it. And all had succeeded, and would go on to the
end placid and comfortable. All but me alone. I must carry my awful secret without any to
help me. A heavy load, a bitter burden; and would cost me daily heart-break. She was to
die; and so soon. I had never dreamed of that. How could I, and she so strong and fresh
and young, and every day earning a new right to a peaceful and honourable old age? For at
that time I thought old age valuable. I do not know why, but I thought so. All young
people think it, I believe, they being ignorant and full of superstitions. She had seen
the Tree. All that miserable night those ancient verses went floating back and forth
through my brain:
And when in exile wandring we
Shall fainting yearn for glimpse of thee,
O rise upon our sight!
But at dawn the bugles and the drums burst through the dreamy hush of the morning, and
it was turn out all! mount and ride. For there was red work to be done.
We marched to Meung without halting. There we carried the bridge by assault, and left a
force to hold it, the rest of the army marching away next morning toward Beaugency, where
the lion Talbot, the terror of the French, was in command. When we arrived at that place,
the English retired into the castle and we sat down in the abandoned town.
Talbot was not at the moment present in person, for he had gone away to watch for and
welcome Fastolfe and his re-enforcement of five thousand men.
Joan placed her batteries and bombarded the castle till night. Then some news came:
Richemont, Constable of France, this long time in disgrace with the king, largely because
of the evil machinations of La Tremouille and his party, was approaching with a large body
of men to offer his services to Joan - and very much she needed them, now that Fastolfe
was so close by. Richemont had wanted to join us before, when we first marched on Orleans;
but the foolish King, slave of those paltry advisers of his, warned him to keep his
distance and refused all reconciliation with him.
I go into these details because they are important. Important because they lead up to
the exhibition of a new gift in Joans extraordinary mental make-up - statesmanship.
It is a sufficiently strange thing to find that great quality in an ignorant country girl
of seventeen and a half, but she had it.
Joan was for receiving Richemont cordially, and so was La Hire and the two young Lavals
and other chiefs, but the Lieutenant-General, DAlençon, strenuously and stubbornly
opposed it. He said he had absolute orders from the King to deny and defy Richemont, and
that if they were overridden he would leave the army. This would have been a disaster
indeed. But Joan set herself the task of persuading him that the salvation of France took
precedence of all minor things - even the commands of a sceptred ass; and she accomplished
it. She persuaded him to disobey the King in the interest of the nation, and to be
reconciled to Count Richemont and welcome him. That was statesmanship; and of the highest
and soundest sort. Whatever thing men call great, look for it in Joan of Arc, and there
you will find it.
In the early morning, June 17th, the scouts reported the approach of Talbot and
Fastolfe with Fastolfes succouring force. Then the drums beat to arms; and we set
forth to meet the English, leaving Richemont and his troops behind to watch the castle of
Beaugency and keep its garrison at home. By-and-by we came in sight of the enemy. Fastolfe
had tried to convince Talbot that it would be wisest to retreat and not risk a battle with
Joan at this time, but distribute the new levies among the English strongholds of the
Loire, thus securing them against capture, then be patient and wait - wait for more levies
from Paris; let Joan exhaust her army with fruitless daily skirmishing; then at the right
time fall upon her in resistless mass and annihilate her. He was a wise old experienced
general, was Fastolfe. But that fierce Talbot would hear of no delay. He was in a rage
over the punishment which the Maid had inflicted upon him at Orleans and since, and he
swore by God and Saint George that he would have it out with her if he had to fight her
all alone. So Fastolfe yielded, though he said they were now risking the loss of
everything which the English had gained by so many years work and so many hard
knocks.
The enemy had taken up a strong position, and were waiting in order of battle, with
their archers to the front and a stockade before them.
Night was coming on. A messenger came from the English with a rude defiance and an
offer of battle. But Joans dignity was not ruffled, her bearing was not discomposed.
She said to the herald:
Go back and say it is too late to meet tonight; but tomorrow, please God and our
Lady, we will come to close quarters.
The night fell dark and rainy. It was that sort of light steady rain which falls so
softly and brings to ones spirit such serenity and peace. About ten oclock
DAlençon, the Bastard of Orleans, La Hire, Pothon Saintrailles, and two or three
other generals came to our headquarters tent, and sat down to discuss matters with Joan.
Some thought it was a pity that Joan had declined battled, some thought not. Then Pothon
asked her why she had declined it. She said:
There was more than one reason. These English are ours - they cannot get away
from us. Wherefore there is no need to take risks, as at other times. The day was far
spent. It is good to have much time and the fair light of day when ones force is in
a weakened state - nine hundred of us yonder keeping the bridge of Meung under the Marshal
de Rais, fifteen hundred with the Constable of France keeping the bridge and watching the
castle of Beaugency.
Dunois said:
I grieve for this depletion, Excellency, but it cannot be helped. And the case
will be the same the morrow, as to that.
Joan was walking up and down, just then. She laughed her affectionate, comrady laugh,
and stopping before that old war-tiger she put her small hand above his head and touched
on of his plumes, saying:
Now tell me, wise man, which feather is it that I touch?
In sooth, Excellency, that I cannot.
Name of God, Bastard, Bastard! you cannot tell me this small thing, yet are bold
to name a large one - telling us what is in the stomach of the unborn morrow: that we
shall not have those men. Now it is my thought that they will be with us.
That made a stir. All wanted to know why she thought that. But La Hire took the word
and said:
Let be. If she thinks it, that is enough. It will happen.
Then Pothon of Saintrailles said:
There were other reasons for declining battle, according to the saying of your
Excellency?
Yes, One was that we being weak and the day far gone the battle might not be
decisive. When it is fought it must be decisive. And shall be.
God grant it, and amen. There were still other reasons?
One other - yes. She hesitated a moment, then said: This was not the
day. Tomorrow is the day. It is so written.
They were going to assail her with eager questionings, but she put up her hand and
prevented them. Then she said:
It will be the most noble and beneficent victory that God has vouchsafed to
France at any time. I pray you question me not as to whence or how I know this thing, but
be content that it is so.
There was pleasure in every face, and conviction and high confidence. A murmur of
conversation broke out, but was interrupted by a messenger from the outposts who brought
news - namely, that for an hour there had been stir and movement in the English camp of a
sort unusual at such a time and with a resting army, he said. Spies had been sent under
cover of the rain and darkness to inquire into it. They had just come back and reported
that large bodies of men had been dimly made out who were slipping stealthily away in the
direction of Meung.
The generals were very much surprised, as any might tell from their faces.
It is a retreat, said Joan.
It has that look, said DAlençon.
It certainly has, observed the Bastard and La Hire.
It was not to be expected, said Louis de Bourbon, but one can divine
the purpose of it.
Yes, responded Joan. Talbot has reflected. His rash brain has cooled.
He thinks to take the bridge of Meung and escape to the other side of the river. He knows
that this leaves his garrison of Beaugency at the mercy of fortune, to escape our hands if
it can; but there is no other course if he would avoid this battle, and that he also
knows. But he shall not get the bridge. We will see to that.
Yes, said DAlençon, we must follow him, and take care of that
matter. What of Beaugency?
Leave Beaugency to me, gentle Duke; I will have it in two hours, and at no cost
of blood.
It is true, Excellency. You will but need to deliver this news there and receive
the surrender.
Yes. And I will be with you at Meung with the dawn, fetching the Constable and
his fifteen hundred; and when Talbot knows that Beaugency has fallen it will have an
effect upon him
By the mass, yes! cried La Hire. He will join his Meung garrison to
his army and break for Paris. Then we shall have our bridge force with us again, along
with our Beaugency-watchers, and be stronger for our great days work by
four-and-twenty hundred able soldiers, as was here promised within the hour. Verily this
Englishman is doing our errands for us and saving us much blood and trouble. Orders,
Excellency - give us our orders!
They are simple. Let the men rest three hours longer. At one oclock the
advance guard will march, under your command, with Pothon of Saintrailles as second; the
second division will follow at two under the Lieutenant-General. Keep well in the rear of
the enemy, and see to it that you avoid an engagement. I will ride under guard to
Beaugency and make so quick work there that I and the Constable of France will join you
before dawn with his men.
She kept her word. Her guard mounted and we rode off through the puttering rain, taking
with us a captured English officer to confirm Joans news. We soon covered the
journey and summoned the castle. Richard Guétin, Talbots lieutenant, being
convinced that he and his face hundred men were left helpless, conceded that it would be
useless to try to hold out. He could not expect easy terms, yet Joan granted them
nevertheless. His garrison could keep their horses and arms, and carry away property to
the value of a silver mark per man. They could go whither they pleased, but must not take
arms against France again under ten days.
Before dawn we were with our army again, and with us the Constable and nearly all his
men, for we left only a small garrison in Beaugency castle. We heard the dull booming of
cannon to the front, and knew that Talbot was beginning his attack on the bridge. But some
time before it was yet light the sound ceased and we heard it no more.
Guétin had sent a messenger through our lines under a safe-conduct given by Joan, to
tell Talbot of the surrender. Of course this poursuivant had arrived ahead of us. Talbot
had held it wisdom to turn, now, and retreat upon Paris. When daylight came he
disappeared; and with him Lord Scales and the garrison of Meung.
What a harvest of English strongholds we had reaped in those three days! - strongholds
which had defied France with quite cool confidence, and plenty of it, until we came.
Chapter 30
When the morning broke at last on that for ever memorable 18th of June, there was no
enemy discoverable anywhere, as I have said. But that did not trouble me. I knew we should
find him, and that we should strike him; strike him the promised blow - the one from which
the English power in France would not rise up in a thousand years, as Joan had said in her
trance.
The enemy had plunged into the wide plains of La Beauce - a roadless waste covered with
bushes, with here and there bodies of forest trees - a region where an army would be
hidden from view in a very little while. We found the trail in the soft wet earth and
followed it. It indicated an orderly march; no confusion, no panic.
But we had to be cautious. In such a piece of country we could walk into an ambush
without any trouble. Therefore Joan sent bodies of cavalry ahead under La Hire, Poton, and
other captains, to feel the way. Some of the other officers began to show uneasiness; this
sort of hide-and-go-seek business troubled them and made their confidence a little shaky.
Joan divined their state of mind and cried out impetuously:
Name of god, what would you? We must smite these English, and we will. They shall
not escape us. Though they were hung to the clouds we would get them!
By-and-by we were nearing Patay; it was about a league away. Now at this time our
reconnaissance, feeling its way in the bush, frightened a deer, and it went bounding away
and was out of sight in a moment. Then hardly a minute later a dull great shout went up in
the distance toward Patay. It was the English soldiery. They had been shut up in garrison
so long on mouldy food that they could not keep their delight to themselves when this fine
fresh meat came springing into their midst. Poor creature, it had wrought damage to a
nation which loved it well. For the French knew where the English were, now, whereas the
English had no suspicion of where the French were.
La Hire halted where he was, and sent back the tidings. Joan was radiant with joy. The
Duke dAlençon said to her:
Very well, we have found them; shall we fight them?
Have you good spurs, Prince?
Why? Will they make us run away?
Nenni, en nom de Dieu! These English are ours - they are lost. They will fly. Who
overtakes them will need good spurs. Forward - close up!
By the time we had come up with La Hire the English had discovered our presence.
Talbots force was marching in three bodies. First his advance-guard; then his
artillery; then his battle corps a good way in the rear. He was now out of the bush and in
a fair open country. He at once posted his artillery, his advance-guard, and five hundred
picked archers along some hedges where the French would be obliged to pass, and hoped to
hold this position till his battle corps could come up. Sir John Fastolfe urged the battle
corps into a gallop. Joan saw her opportunity and ordered La Hire to advance - which La
Hire promptly did, launching his wild riders like a storm-wind, his customary fashion.
The Duke and the Bastard wanted to follow, but Joan said:
Not yet - wait.
So they waited - impatiently, and fidgeting in their saddles. But she was steady -
gazing straight before her, measuring, weighing, calculating - by shades, minutes,
fractions of minutes, seconds -with all her great soul present, in eye, and set of head,
and noble pose of body - but patient, steady, master of herself - master of herself and of
the situation.
And yonder, receding, receding, plumes lifting and falling, lifting and falling,
streamed the thundering charge of La Hires godless crew, La Hires great figure
dominating it and his sword aloft like a flag-staff.
O Satan and his Hellions, see them go! Somebody muttered it in deep
admiration.
And now he was closing up, closing up on Fastolfes rushing corps.
And now he struck it - struck it hard, and broke its order. It lifted the Duke and the
Bastard in their saddles to see it; and they turned, trembling with excitement, to Joan,
saying:
Now!
But she put up her hand, still gazing, weighing, calculating, and said again:
Wait - not yet.
Fastolfes hard-driven battle corps raged on like an avalanche toward the waiting
advance-guard. Suddenly these conceived the idea that it was flying in panic before Joan;
and so in that instant it broke and swarmed away in a mad panic itself, with Talbot
storming and cursing after it.
Now was the golden time. Joan drove her spurs home and waved the advance with her
sword. 'Follow me! she cried, and bent her head to her horses neck and sped
away like the wind!
We swept down into the confusion of that flying rout, and for three long hours we cut
and hacked and stabbed. At last the bugles sang Halt!
The Battle of Patay was won.
Joan of Arc dismounted, and stood surveying that awful field, lost in thought.
Presently she said:
The praise is to God. He has smitten with a heavy hand this day. After a
little she lifted her face, and looking afar off, said, with the manner of one who is
thinking aloud, In a thousand years - a thousand years - the English power in France
will not rise up from this blow. She stood again a time, thinking, then she turned
toward her grouped generals, and there was a glory in her face and a noble light in her
eye; and she said:
O friends, friends, do you know? - do you comprehend? France is on the way to
be free!
And had never been, but for Joan of Arc! said La Hire, passing before her
and bowing low, the others following and doing likewise; he muttering as he went, I
will say it though I be damned for it. Then battalion after battalion of our
victorious army swung by, wildly cheering. And they shouted Live for ever, Maid of
Orleans, live for ever! while Joan, smiling, stood at the salute with her sword.
This was not the last time I saw the Maid of Orleans on the red field of Patay. Toward
the end of the day I came upon her where the dead and dying lay stretched all about in
heaps and winrows; our men had mortally wounded an English prisoner who was too poor to
pay a ransom, and from a distance she had seen that cruel thing done; and had galloped to
the place and sent for a priest, and now she was holding the head of her dying enemy in
her lap, and easing him to his death with comforting soft words, just as his sister might
have done; and the womanly tears running down her face all the time.
Chapter 31
Joan had said true: France was on the way to be free.
The war called the Hundred Years War was very sick today. Sick on its English
side - for the very first time since its birth, ninety-one years gone by.
Shall we judge battles by the numbers killed and the ruin wrought? Or shall we not
rather judge them by the results which flowed from them? Any one will say that a battle is
only truly great or small according to its results. Yes, any one will grant that, for it
is the truth.
Judged by results, Patays place is with the few supremely great and imposing
battles that have been fought since the peoples of the world first resorted to arms for
the settlement of their quarrels. So judged, it is even possible that Patay has no peer
among that few just mentioned, but stands alone, as the supremest of historic conflicts.
For when it began France lay gasping out of the remnant of an exhausted life, her case
wholly hopeless in the view of all political physicians; when it ended, three hours later,
she was convalescent. Convalescent, and nothing requisite but time and ordinary nursing to
bring her back to perfect health. The dullest physician of them all could see this, and
there was none to deny it.
Many death-sick nations have reached convalescence through a series of battles, a
procession of battles, a weary tale of wasting conflicts stretching over years; but only
one has reached it in a single day and by a single battle. That nation is France, and that
battle Patay.
Remember it and be proud of it; for you are French, and it is the stateliest fact in
the long annals of your country. There it stands, with its head in the clouds! And when
you grow up you will go on pilgrimage to the field of Patay, and stand uncovered in the
presence of - what? A monument with its head in the clouds? Yes. For all nations
in all times have built monuments on their battle-fields to keep green the memory of the
perishable deed that was wrought there and of the perishable name of him who wrought it;
and will France neglect Patay and Joan of Arc? Not for long. And will she build a monument
scaled to their rank as compared with the worlds other fields and heroes? Perhaps -
if there be room for it under the arch of the sky.
But let us look back a little, and consider certain strange and impressive facts. The
Hundred Years War began in 1337. It raged on and on, year after year and year after
year; and at last England stretched France prone with that fearful blow at Crécy. But she
rose and struggled on year after year, and at last again she went down under another
devastating blow - Poitiers. She gathered her crippled strength once more, and the war
raged on, and on and still on, year after year, decade after decade. Children were born,
grew up, married, died - the war raged on; their children in turn grew up,
married, died - the war raged on; their children, growing saw France struck down
again; this time under the incredible disaster of Agincourt - and still the war raged on,
year after year, and in time these children married in their turn.
France was a wreck, a ruin, a desolation. The half of it belonged to England, with none
to dispute or deny the truth; the other half belonged to nobody - in three months would be
flying the English flag: the French King was making ready to throw away his crown and flee
beyond the seas.
Now came the ignorant country maid out of her remote village and confronted this hoary
war, this all-consuming conflagration that had swept the land for three generations. Then
began the briefest and most amazing campaign that is recorded in history. In seven weeks
it was finished. In seven weeks she hopelessly crippled that gigantic war that was
ninety-one years old. At Orleans she struck it a staggering blow; on the field of Patay
she broke its back.
Think of it. Yes, one can do that; but understand it? Ah, that is another
matter; none will ever be able to comprehend that stupefying marvel.
Seven weeks - with here and there a little bloodshed. Perhaps the most of it, in any
single fight, at Patay, where the English began six thousand strong and left two thousand
dead upon the field. It is said and believed that in three battles alone - Crécy,
Poitiers, and Agincourt - near a hundred thousand Frenchmen fell, without counting the
thousand other fights of that long war. The dead of that war make a mournful long list -
an interminable list. Of men slain in the field the count goes by tens of thousand; of
innocent women and children slain by bitter hardship and hunger, it goes by that appalling
term, millions.
It was an ogre, that war; an ogre that went about for near a hundred years, crunching
men and dripping blood from his jaws. And with her little hand that child of seventeen
struck him down; and yonder he lies stretched on the field of Patay, and will not get up
any more while this old world lasts.
Chapter 32
The great news of Patay was carried over the whole of France in twenty hours, people
said. I do not know as to that; but one thing is sure, anyway: the moment a man got it he
flew shouting and glorifying God and told his neighbour; and that neighbour flew with it
to the next homestead; and so on and so on, without resting, the word travelled; and when
a man got it in the night, at what hour soever, he jumped out of his bed and bore the
blessed message along. And the joy that went with it was like the light that flows across
the land when an eclipse is receding from the face of the sun; and indeed you may say that
France had lain in an eclipse this long time; yes buried in a black gloom which these
beneficent tidings were sweeping away, now, before the onrush of their white splendour.
The news beat the flying enemy to Yeuville, and the town rose against its English
masters and shut the gates against their brethren. It flew to Mont Pipeau, to Saint-Simon,
and to this, that, and the other English fortress; and straightway the garrison applied
the torch and took to the fields and the woods. A detachment of our army occupied Meung
and pillaged it.
When we reached Orleans that town was as much as fifty times insaner with joy than we
had ever seen it before - which is saying much. Night had just fallen, and the
illuminations were on so wonderful a scale that we seemed to plough through seas of fire;
and as to the noise - the hoarse cheering of the multitude, the thundering of cannon, the
clash of bells - indeed there was never anything like it. And everywhere rose a new cry
that burst upon us like a storm when the column entered the gates, and nevermore ceased:
Welcome to Joan of Arc - way for the SAVIOUR OF FRANCE! And there was another
cry: Crécy is avenged! Poitiers is avenged! Agincourt is avenged! - Patay shall
live for ever!
Mad? Why, you never could imagine it in this world. The prisoners were in the centre of
the column. When that came along and the people caught sight of their masterful old enemy
Talbot, that had made them dance so long to his grim war-music, you may imagine what the
uproar was like if you can, for I cannot describe it. They were so glad to see him that
presently they wanted to have him out and hang him; so Joan had him brought up to the
front to ride in her protection. They made a striking pair.
Chapter 33
Yes, Orleans was in a delirium of felicity. She invited the King, and made sumptuous
preparations to receive him, but - he didnt come. He was simply a serf at that time,
and La Tremouille was his master. Master and serf were visiting together at the
masters castle of Sully-sur-Loire.
At Beaugency Joan had engaged to bring about a reconciliation between the Constable
Richemont and the King. She took Richemont to Sully-sur-Loire and made her promise good.
The great deeds of Joan of Arc are five:
- The Raising of the Siege.
- The Victory of Patay.
- The Reconciliation at Sully-sur-Loire.
- The Coronation of the King.
- The Bloodless March.
We shall come to the Bloodless March presently (and the Coronation). It was the
victorious long march which Joan made through the enemys country from Gien to
Rheims, and thence to the gates of Paris, capturing every English town and fortress that
barred the road, from the beginning of the journey to the end of it, and this by the mere
force of her name, and without shedding a drop of blood - perhaps the most extraordinary
campaign in this regard in history - this is the most glorious of her military exploits.
The Reconciliation was one of Joans most important achievements. No one else
could have accomplished it; and in fact no one else of high consequence had any
disposition to try. In brains, in scientific warfare, and in statesmanship the Constable
Richemont was the ablest man in France. His loyalty was sincere; his probity was above
suspicion - (and it made him sufficiently conspicuous in that trivial and conscienceless
Court).
In restoring Richemont to France, Joan made thoroughly secure the successful completion
of the great work which she had begun. She had never seen Richemont until he came to her
with his little army. Was it not wonderful that at a glance she should know him for the
one man who could finish and perfect her work and establish it in perpetuity? How was it
that that child was able to do this? It was because she had the seeing eye, as
one of our knights had once said. Yes, she had that great gift - almost the highest and
rarest that has been granted to man. Nothing of an extraordinary sort was still to be
done, yet the remaining work could not safely be left to the Kings idiots; for it
would require wise statesmanship and long and patient though desultory hammering of the
enemy. Now and then, for a quarter of a century yet, there would be a little fighting to
do, and a handy man could carry that on with small disturbance to the rest of the country;
and little by little, and with progressive certainty, the English would disappear from
France.
And that happened. Under the influence of Richemont the King became at a later time a
man - a man, a king, a brave and capable and determined soldier. Within six years after
Patay he was leading storming parties himself; fighting in fortress ditches up to his
waist in water, and climbing scaling-ladders under a furious fire with a pluck that would
have satisfied even Joan of Arc. In time he and Richemont cleared away all the English;
even from regions where the people had been under their mastership for three hundred
years. In such regions wise and careful work was necessary, for the English rule had been
fair and kindly; and men who have been ruled in that way are not always anxious for a
change.
Which of Joans five chief deeds shall we call the chiefest? It is my thought that
each in its turn was that, this is saying that, taken as a whole, they equalised each other, and neither was then greater than its mate.
Do you perceive? Each was a stage in an ascent. To leave out one of them would defeat
the journey; to achieve one of them at the wrong time and in the wrong place would have
the same effect.
Consider the Coronation. As a masterpiece of diplomacy, where can you find its superior
in history? Did the King suspect its vast importance? No. Did his ministers? No. Did the
astute Bedford, representative of the English crown? No. An advantage of incalculable
importance was here under the eyes of the King and of Bedford; the King could get it by a
bold stroke, Bedford could get it without an effort; but being ignorant of its value,
neither of them put forth his hand. Of all the wise people in high office in France, only
one knew the priceless worth of this neglected prize - the untaught child of seventeen,
Joan of Arc - and she had known it from the beginning, had spoken of it from the beginning
as an essential detail of her mission.
How did she know it? It is simple: she was a peasant. That tells the whole story. She
was of the people and knew the people; those others moved in a loftier sphere and knew
nothing much about them. We make little account of that vague, formless, inert mass, that
mighty underlying force which we call the people - an epithet which carries
contempt with it. It is a strange attitude; for at bottom we know that the throne which
the people support, stands, and that when that support is removed, nothing in this world
can save it.
Now, then, consider this fact, and observe its importance. Whatever the parish priest
believes, his flock believe; they love him, they revere him; he is their unfailing friend,
their dauntless protector, their comforter in sorrow, their helper in their day of need;
he has their whole confidence; what he tells them to do, that they will do, with a blind
and affectionate obedience, let it cost what it may. Add these facts thoughtfully
together, and what is the sum? This: The parish priest governs the nation. What
is the king, then, if the parish priest withdraw his support and deny his authority?
Merely a shadow and no king; let him resign.
Do you get that idea? Then let us proceed. A priest is consecrated to his office by the
awful hand of God, laid upon him by His appointed representative on earth. That
consecration is final; nothing can undo it, nothing can remove it. Neither the Pope nor
any other power can strip the priest of his office; God gave it, and it is for ever sacred
and secure. The dull parish knows all this. To priest and parish, whosoever is anointed of
God bears an office whose authority can no longer be disputed or assailed. To the parish
priest, and to his subjects the nation, an uncrowned king is a similitude of a person who
has been named for holy orders but has not been consecrated; he has no office, he has not
been ordained, another may be appointed in his place. In a word, an uncrowned king is a doubtful king; but if God appoint him and His servant the bishop anoint him, the doubt is
annihilated, the priest and the parish are his loyal subjects straightway, and while he
lives they will recognise no king but him.
To Joan of Arc the peasant girl, Charles VII was no King until he was crowned; to her
he was only the Dauphin; that is to say, the heir. If I have ever made
her call him King, it was a mistake; she called him the Dauphin, and nothing else until
after the Coronation. It shows you as in a mirror - for Joan was a mirror in which the
lowly hosts of France were clearly reflected - that to all that vast underlying force
called the people he was no King but only Dauphin before his crowning, and was
indisputably and irrevocably King after it.
Now you understand what a colossal move on the political chessboard the Coronation was.
Bedford realised this by-and-by, and tried to patch up his mistake by crowning his King; but what good could that do? None in the world.
Speaking of chess, Joans great acts may be likened to that game. Each move was
made in its proper order, and it was great and effective because it was made in its proper
order and not out of it. Each, at the time made, seemed the greatest move; but the final
result made them all recognisable as equally essential and equally important. This is the
game, as played:
- Joan moves Orleans and Patay - check.
- Then moves the Reconciliation - but does not proclaim check, it being a move for
position, and to take effect later.
- Next she moves the Coronation - check.
- Next, the Bloodless March - check.
- Final move (after her death) the reconciled Constable Richemont to the French
Kings elbow - checkmate.
Chapter 34
The Campaign of the Loire had as good as opened the road to Rheims. There was no
sufficient reason now why the Coronation should not take place. The Coronation would
complete the mission which Joan had received from heaven, and then she would be for ever
done with war, and would fly home to her mother and her sheep, and never stir from the
hearthstone and happiness any more. That was her dream; and she could not rest, she was so
impatient to see it fulfilled. She became so possessed with this matter that I began to
lose faith in her two prophecies of her early death - and of course when I found that
faith wavering I encouraged it to waver all the more.
The King was afraid to start to Rheims, because the road was mile-posted with English
fortresses, so to speak. Joan held them in light esteem and not things to be afraid of in
the existing modified condition of English confidence.
And she was right. As it turned out, the march to Rheims was nothing but a holiday
excursion. Joan did not even take any artillery along, she was so sure it would not be
necessary. We marched from Gien twelve thousand strong. This was the 29th of June. The
Maid rode by the side of the King; on his other side was the Duke dAlençon. After
the Duke followed three other princes of the blood. After these followed the Bastard of
Orleans, the Marshal de Boussac, and the Admiral of France. After these came La Hire,
Saintrailles, Tremouille, and a long procession of knights and nobles.
We rested three days before Auxerre. The city provisioned the army, and a deputation
waited upon the King, but we did not enter the place.
Saint-Florentin opened its gates to the King.
On the 4th of July we reached Saint-Fal, and yonder lay Troyes before us - a town which
had a burning interest for us boys; for we remembered how, seven years before, in the
pastures of Domremy, the Sunflower came with his black flag and brought us the shameful
news of the Treaty of Troyes - that treaty which gave France to England, and a daughter of
our royal line in marriage to the Butcher of Agincourt. That poor town was not to blame,
of course; yet we flushed hot with that old memory, and hoped there would be a
misunderstanding here, for we dearly wanted to storm the place and burn it. It was
powerfully garrisoned by English and Burgundian soldiery, and was expecting
re-enforcements from Paris. Before night we camped before its gates and made rough work
with a sortie which marched against us.
Joan summoned Troyes to surrender. Its commandant, seeing that she had no artillery,
scoffed at the idea, and sent her a grossly insulting reply. Five days we consulted and
negotiated. No result. The King was about to turn back now, and give up. He was afraid to
go on, leaving this strong place in his rear. Then La Hire put in a word, with a slap in
it for some of his Majestys advisers:
The Maid of Orleans undertook this expedition of her own motion; and it is my
mind that it is her judgement that should be followed here, and not that of any other, let
him be of whatsoever breed and standing he may.
There was wisdom and righteousness in that. So the King sent for the Maid, and asked
her how she thought the prospect looked. She said, without any tone of doubt or question
in her voice:
In three days time the place is ours.
The smug Chancellor put in a word now:
If we were sure of it we would wait here six days.
Six days, forsooth! Name of God, man, we will enter the gates tomorrow!
Then she mounted, and rode her lines, crying out -
Make preparation - to your work, friends, to your work! We assault at dawn!
She worked hard that night; slaving away with her own hands like a common soldier. She
ordered fascines and fagots to be prepared and thrown into the fosse, thereby to bridge
it; and in this rough labour she took a mans share.
At dawn she took her place at the head of the storming force and the bugles blew the
assault. At that moment a flag of truce was flung to the breeze from the walls, and Troyes
surrendered without firing a shot.
The next day the King with Joan at his side and the Paladin bearing the banner entered
the town in state at the head of the army. And a goodly army it was, now, for it had been
growing bigger and bigger from the first.
And now a curious thing happened. By the terms of the treaty made with the town, the
garrison of English and Burgundian soldiery were allowed to carry away their
goods with them. This was well, for otherwise how would they buy the
wherewithal to live? Very well; these people were all to go out by the one gate, and at
the time set for them to depart we young fellows went to that gate, along with the Dwarf,
to see the march-out. Presently here they came in an interminable file, the foot soldiers
in the lead. As they approached one could see that each bore a burden of a bulk and weight
to sorely tax his strength; and we said among ourselves, truly these folk are well off for
poor common soldiers. When they were come nearer, what do you think? Every rascal of them
had a French prisoner on his back! They were carrying away their goods, you
see - their property - strictly according to the permission granted by the treaty.
Now think how clever that was, how ingenious! What could a body say? What could a body
do? For certainly these people were within their right. These prisoners were property;
nobody could deny that. My dears, if those had been English captives, conceive of
the richness of that booty! For English prisoners had been scarce and precious for a
hundred years; whereas it was a different matter with French prisoners. They had been
over-abundant for a century. The possessor of a French prisoner did not hold him long for
ransom, as a rule, but presently killed him to save the cost of his keep. This shows you
how small was the value of such a possession in those times. When we took Troyes a calf
was worth thirty francs, a sheep sixteen, a French prisoner eight. It was an enormous
price for those other animals - a price which naturally seems incredible to you. It was
the war, you see. It worked two ways: it made meat dear and prisoners cheap.
Well, here were these poor Frenchmen being carried off. What could we do? Very little
of a permanent sort, but we did what we could. We sent a messenger flying to Joan, and we
and the French guards halted the procession for a parley - to gain time, you see. A big
Burgundian lost his temper and swore a great oath that none should stop him; he
would go, and would take his prisoner with him. But we blocked him off, and he saw that he
was mistaken about going - he couldnt do it. He exploded into the maddest cursings
and revilings then, and unlashed his prisoner from his back, stood him up, all bound and
helpless; then drew his knife, and said to us with a light of sarcastic triumph in his eye
-
I may not carry him away, you say - yet he is mine, none will dispute it. Since I
may not convey him hence, this property of mine, there is another way. Yes, I can kill
him; not even the dullest among you will question that right. Ah, you had not
thought of that - vermin!
That poor starved fellow begged us with his piteous eyes to save him; then spoke, and
said he had a wife and little children at home. Think how it wrung our heartstrings. But
what could we do? The Burgundian was within his right. We could only beg and plead for the
prisoner. Which we did. And the Burgundian enjoyed it. He stayed his hand to hear more of
it, and laugh at it. That stung. Then the Dwarf said -
Prithee, young sirs, let me beguile him; for when a matter requiring persuasion
is to the fore, I have indeed a gift in that sort, as any will tell you that know me well.
You smile; and that is punishment for my vanity, and fairly earned, I grant it you. Still,
if I may toy a little, just a little - saying which he stepped to the Burgundian and
began a fair soft speech, all of goodly and gentle tenor; and in the midst he mentioned
the Maid; and was going on to say how she out of her good heart would prize and praise
this compassionate deed which he was about to -
It was as far as he got. The Burgundian burst into his smooth oration with an insult
levelled at Joan of Arc. We sprang forward, but the Dwarf, his face all livid, brushed us
aside and said, in a most grave and earnest way -
I crave your patience. Am not I her guard of honour? This is my affair.
And saying this he suddenly shot his right hand out and gripped the great Burgundian by
the throat, and so held him upright on his feet. You have insulted the Maid,
he said; and the Maid is France. The tongue that does that earns a long
furlough.
One heard the muffled cracking of bones. The Burgundians eyes began to protrude
from their sockets and stare with a leaden dullness at vacancy. The colour deepened in his
face and became an opaque purple. His hands hung down limp, his body collapsed with a
shiver, every muscle relaxed its tension and ceased from its function. The Dwarf took away
his hand and the column of inert mortality sank mushily to the ground.
We struck the bonds from the prisoner and told him he was free. His crawling humbleness
changed to frantic joy in a moment, and his ghastly fear to a childish rage. He flew at
that dead corpse and kicked it, spat in its face; danced upon it, crammed mud into its
mouth, laughing, jeering, cursing and volleying forth indecencies and bestialities like a
drunken fiend. It was a thing to be expected: soldiering makes few saints. Many of the
onlookers laughed, others were indifferent, none was surprised. But presently in his mad
caperings the freed man capered within reach of the waiting file, and another Burgundian
promptly slipped a knife through his neck, and down he went with a death-shriek, his
brilliant artery-blood spurting ten feet as straight and bright as a ray of light. There
was a great burst of jolly laughter all around from friend and foe alike; and thus closed
one of the pleasantest incidents of my chequered military life.
And now came Joan hurrying and deeply troubled. She considered the claim of the
garrison, then said -
You have right upon your side. It is plain. It was a careless word to put in the
treaty, and covers too much. But ye may not take these poor men away. They are French, and
I will not have it. The King shall ransom them, every one. Wait till I send you word from
him; and hurt no hair of their heads; for I tell you, I who speak, that that would cost
you very dear.
That settled it. The prisoners were safe for one while, anyway. Then she rode back
eagerly and required that thing of the King, and would listen to no paltering and no
excuses. So the King told her to have her way, and she rode straight back and bought the
captives free in his name and let them go.
Chapter 35
It was here that we saw again the Grand Master of the Kings Household, in whose
castle Joan was guest when she tarried at Chinon in those first days of her coming out of
her own country. She made him Bailiff of Troyes, now, by the Kings permission.
And now we marched again; Châlons surrendered to us; and there by Châlons in a talk,
Joan being asked if she had no fears for the future, said yes, one - treachery. Who could
believe it? who could dream it? And yet in a sense it was prophecy. Truly man is a pitiful
animal.
We marched, marched, kept on marching; and at last on the 16th of July we came in sight
of our goal, and saw the great cathedral towers of Rheims rise out of the distance! Huzzah
after huzzah swept the army from van to rear; and as for Joan of Arc, there where she sat
her horse gazing, clothed all in white armour, dreamy, beautiful, and in her face a deep,
deep joy, a joy not of earth, oh, she was not flesh, she was a spirit! Her sublime mission
was closing - closing in flawless triumph. Tomorrow she could say, It is finished -
let me go free.
We camped, and the hurry and rush and turmoil of the grand preparations began. The
Archbishop and a great deputation arrived; and after these came flock after flock, crowd
after crowd, of citizens and country folk hurrahing in, with banners and music, and flowed
over the camp, one rejoicing inundation after another, everybody drunk with happiness. And
all night long Rheims was hard at word, hammering away, decorating the town, building
triumphal arches, and clothing the ancient cathedral within and without in a glory of
opulent splendours.
We moved betimes in the morning: the coronation ceremonies would begin at nine and last
five hours. We were aware that the garrison of English and Burgundian soldiers had given
up all thought of resisting the Maid, and that we should find the gates standing
hospitably open and the whole city ready to welcome us with enthusiasm.
It was a delicious morning, brilliant with sunshine, but cool and fresh and inspiring.
The army was in great form, and fine to see, as it uncoiled from its lair fold by fold,
and stretched away on the final march of the peaceful Coronation Campaign.
Joan, on her black horse, with the Lieutenant-General and the personal staff grouped
about her, took past for a final review and a good-bye; for she was not expecting to ever
be a soldier again or ever serve with these or any other soldiers any more after this day.
The army knew this, and believed it was looking for the last time upon the girlish face of
its invincible little Chief, its pet, its pride, its darling, whom it had ennobled in its
private heart with nobilities of its own creation, calling her Daughter of
God, Saviour of France, Victorys Sweetheart,
Page of Christ, together with still softer titles which were simply naïf and
frank endearments such as men are used to confer upon children whom they love. And so one
saw a new thing now; a thing bred of the emotion that was present there on both sides.
Always before, in the march-past, the battalions had gone swinging by in a storm of
cheers, heads up and eyes flashing, the drums rolling, the bands braying paeans of
victory; but now there was nothing of that. But for one impressive sound, one could have
closed his eyes and imagined himself in a world of the dead. That one sound was all that
visited the ear in the summer stillness - just that one sound - the muffled tread of the
marching host. As the serried masses drifted by, the men put their right hands up to their
temples, palms to the front, in military salute, turning their eyes upon Joans face
in mute God-bless-you and farewell, and keeping them there while they could. They still
kept their hands up in reverent salute many steps after they had passed by. Every time
Joan put her handkerchief to her eyes you could see a little quiver or emotion crinkle
along the faces of the files.
The march-past after a victory is a thing to drive the heart mad with jubilation; but
this one was a thing to break it.
We rode now to the Kings lodging, which was the Archbishops country palace;
and he was presently ready, and we galloped off and took position at the head of the army.
By this time the country people were arriving in multitudes from every direction and
massing themselves on both sides of the road to get sight of Joan - just as had been done
every day since our first days march began.
Our march now lay through the grassy plain, and those peasants made a dividing double
border for that plain. They stretched right down through it, a broad belt of bright
colours on each side of the road; for every peasant girl and woman in it had a white
jacket on her body and a crimson skirt on the rest of her. Endless borders made of poppies
and lilies stretching away in front of us - that is what it looked like. And that is the
kind of lane we had been marching through all these days. Not a lane between multitudinous
flowers standing upright on their stems - no, these flowers were always kneeling;
kneeling, these human flowers, with their hands and faces lifted toward Joan of Arc, and
the grateful tears streaming down. And all along, those closest to the road hugged her
feet and kissed them and laid their wet cheeks fondly against them. I never, during all
those days, saw any of either sex stand while she passed, nor any man keep his head
covered. Afterwards, in the Great Trial, these touching scenes were used as a weapon
against her. She had been made an object of adoration by the people, and this was proof
that she was a heretic - so claimed that unjust court.
As we drew near the city the curving long sweep of ramparts and towers was gay with
fluttering flags and black with masses of people, and all their air was vibrant with the
crash of artillery and gloomed with drifting clouds of smoke. We entered the gates in
state and moved in procession through the city, with all the guilds and industries in
holiday costume marching in our rear with their banners; and all the route was hedged with
a huzzahing crush of people, and all the windows were full and all the roofs; and from the
balconies hung costly stuffs of rich colours; and the waving of handkerchiefs, seen in
perspective through a long vista, was like a snow-storm.
Joans name had been introduced into the prayers of the Church - an honour
theretofore restricted to royalty. But she had a dearer honour and an honour more to be
proud of, from a humbler source: the common people had had leaden medals struck which bore
her effigy and her escutcheon, and these they wore as charms. One saw them everywhere.
From the Archbishops Palace, where we halted, and where the King and Joan were to
lodge, the King sent to the Abby Church of St-Remi, which was over toward the gate by
which we had entered the city, for the Sainte Ampoule, or flask of holy oil. This
oil was not earthly oil; it was made in heaven - the flask also. The flask, with the oil
in it, was brought down from heaven by a dove. It was sent down to St-Remi just as he was
going to baptise King Clovis, who had become a Christian. I know this to be true. I had
known it long before, for Père Fronte told me in Domremy. I cannot tell you how strange
and awful it made me feel when I saw that flask and knew I was looking with my own eyes
upon a thing which had actually been in heaven; a thing which had been seen by angels,
perhaps - and by God Himself of a certainty, for He sent it. And I was looking upon it -
I. At one time I could have touched it. But I was afraid; for I could not know but that
God had touched it. It is most probable that He had.
From this flask Clovis had been anointed; and from it all the Kings of France had been
anointed since. Yes, ever since the time of Clovis; and that was nine hundred years. And
so, as I have said, that flask of holy oil was sent for, while we waited. A coronation
without that would not have been a coronation at all in my belief.
Now in order to get the flask, a most ancient ceremonial had to be gone through with;
otherwise the Abbé of St-Remi, hereditary guardian in perpetuity of the oil, would not
deliver it. So, in accordance with custom, the King deputed five great nobles to ride in
solemn state and richly armed and accoutred, they and their steeds, to the Abbey Church as
a guard of honour to the Archbishop of Rheims and his cannons, who were to bear the
Kings demand for the oil. When the five great lords were ready to start, they knelt
in a row and put their mailed hands before their faces, palm joined to palm, and swore
upon their lives to conduct the sacred vessel safely, and safely restore it again to the
Church of St-Remi after the anointing of the King. The Archbishop and his subordinates,
thus nobly escorted, took their way to St-Remi. The Archbishop was in grand costume, with
his mitre on his head and his cross in his hand. At the door of St-Remi they halted and
formed, to receive the holy phial. Soon one heard the deep tones of the organ and of
chanting men; then one saw a long file of lights approaching through the dim church. And
so came the Abbot, in his sacerdotal panoply, bearing the phial, with his people following
after. He delivered it, with solemn ceremonies, to the Archbishop; then the march back
began, and it was most impressive; for it moved the whole way between two multitudes of
men and women who lay flat upon their faces, and prayed in dumb silence and in dread while
that awful thing went by that had been in heaven.
This august company arrived at the great west door of the Cathedral; and as the
Archbishop entered a noble anthem rose and filled the vast building. The Cathedral was
packed with people - people in thousands. Only a wide space down the centre had been kept
free. Down this space walked the Archbishop and his canons, and after them followed those
five stately figures in splendid harness, each bearing his feudal banner - and riding!
Oh, that was a magnificent thing to see! Riding down the cavernous vastness of the
building through the rich lights streaming in long rays from the pictured windows - oh,
there was never anything so grand!
They rode clear to the choir - as much as four hundred feet from the door, it was said.
Then the Archbishop dismissed them, and they made deep obeisance till their plumes touched
their horses necks, then made those proud prancing and mincing and dancing creatures
go backwards all the way to the door - which was pretty to see, and graceful; then they
stood them on their hind feet and spun them around and plunged away and disappeared.
For some minutes there was a deep hush, a waiting pause; a silence so profound that it
was as if all those packed thousands there were steeped in dreamless slumber - why, you
could even notice the faintest sounds, like the drowsy buzzing of insects; then came a
mighty flood of rich strains from four hundred silver trumpets, and then, framed in the
pointed archway of the great west door, appeared Joan and the King. They advanced slowly,
side by side, through a tempest of welcome - explosion after explosion of cheers and
cries, mingled with the deep thunders of the organ and rolling tides of triumphant song
and from chanting choirs. Behind Joan and the King came the Paladin with the Banner
displayed; and a majestic figure he was, and most proud and lofty in his bearing, for he
knew that the people were marking him and taking note of the gorgeous state dress which
covered his armour.
At his side was the Sire dAlbert, proxy for the Constable of France, bearing the
Sword of State.
After these, in order of rank, came a body royally attired representing the lay peers
of France; it consisted of three princes of the blood, and La Tremouille and the young De
Laval brothers.
These were followed by the representatives of the ecclesiastical peers - the Archbishop
of Rheims, and the Bishops of Laon, Châlons, Orleans, and one other.
Behind these came the Grand Staff, all our great generals and famous names, and
everybody was eager to get a sight of them. Through all the din one could hear shouts, all
along, that told you where two of them were: Live the Bastard of Orleans!
Satan La Hire for ever!
The august procession reached its appointed place in time, and the solemnities of the
Coronation began. They were long and imposing - with prayers, and anthems, and sermons,
and everything that is right for such occasions; and Joan was at the Kings side all
these hours, with her Standard in her hand. But at last came the grand act: the King took
the oath, he was anointed with the sacred oil; a splendid personage, followed by
train-bearers and other attendants, approached, bearing the Crown of France upon a
cushion, and kneeling offered it. The King seemed to hesitate - in fact, did hesitate; for he put out his hand and then stopped with it there in the air over the
crown, the fingers in the attitude of taking hold of it. But that was for only a moment -
though a moment is a notable something when it stops the heart-beat of twenty thousand
people and makes them catch their breath. Yes, only a moment; than he caught Joans
eye, and she gave him a look with all the joy of her thankful great soul in it, then he
smiled, and took the Crown of France in his hand, and right finely and right royally
lifted it up and set it upon his head.
Then what a crash there was! All about us cries and cheers, and the chanting of the
choirs and groaning of the organ; and outside the clamouring of the bells and the blooming
of the cannon.
The fantastic dream, the incredible dream, the impossible dream of the peasant child
stood fulfilled: the English power was broken, the Heir of France was crowned.
She was like one transfigured, so divine was the joy that shone in her face as she sank
to her knees at the Kings feet and looked up at him through her tears. Her lips were
quivering, and her words came soft and low and broken:
Now, O gentle King, is the pleasure of God accomplished according to His command
that you should come to Rheims and receive the crown that belongeth of right to you, and
unto none other. My work which was given me to do is finished; give me your peace, and let
me go back to my mother, who is poor and old, and has need of me.
The King raised her up, and there before all that host he praised her great deeds in
most noble terms; and there he confirmed her nobility and titles, making her the equal of
a count in rank, and also appointed a household and officers for her according to her
dignity; and then he said:
You have saved the crown. Speak - require - demand; and whatsoever grace you ask
it shall be granted, though it make the kingdom poor to meet it.
Now that was fine, that was royal. Joan was on her knees again straightway, and said:
Then, O gentle King, if out of your compassion you will speak the word, I pray
you give commandment that my village, poor and hard pressed by reason of war, may have its
taxes remitted.
It is so commanded. Say on.
That is all.
All? Nothing but that?
It is all. I have no other desire.
But that is nothing - less than nothing. Ask - do not be afraid.
Indeed I cannot, gentle King. Do not press me. I will not have aught else, but
only this alone.
The King seemed nonplussed, and stood still a moment, as if trying to comprehend and
realise the full stature of this strange unselfishness. Then he raised his head and said:
She has won a kingdom and crowned its King: and all she asks and all she will
take is the poor grace - and even this is for others, not for herself. And it is well; her
act being proportioned to the dignity of one who carries in her head and heart riches
which outvalue any that any king could add, though he gave his all. She shall have her
way. Now therefore it is decreed that from this day forth Domremy, natal village of Joan
of Arc, Deliverer of France, called the Maid of Orleans, is freed from all taxation for
ever. Whereat the silver horns blew a jubilant blast.
There, you see, she had had a vision of this very scene the time she was in a trance in
the pastures of Domremy, and we asked her to name the boon she would demand of the King if
he should ever chance to tell her she might claim one. But whether she had the vision or
not, this act showed that after all the dizzy grandeurs that had come upon her, she was
still the same simple unselfish creature that she was that day.
Yes, Charles VII remitted those taxes for ever. Often the gratitude of
kings and nations fades and their promises are forgotten or deliberately violated; but
you, who are children of France, should remember with pride that France has kept this one
faithfully. Sixty-three years have gone by since that day. The taxes of the region wherein
Domremy lies have been collected sixty-three times since then, and all the villages of
that region have paid except that one - Domremy. The tax-gatherer never visits Domremy.
Domremy has long ago forgotten what that dreaded sorrow-sowing apparition is like.
Sixty-three tax books have been filled meantime, and they lie yonder with the other public
records, and any may see them that desire it. At the top of every page in the sixty-three
books stands the name of a village, and below that name its weary burden of taxation is
figured out and displayed; in the case of all save one. It is true, just as I tell you. In
each of the sixty-three books there is a page headed Domremy, but under that
name not a figure appears. Where the figures should be, there are three words written; and
the same words have been written every year for all these years; yes, it is a blank page,
with always those grateful words lettered across the face of it - a touching memorial.
Thus:
DOMREMI
RIEN-LA PUCELLE
NOTHING - THE MAID OF ORLEANS. How brief it is; yet how much it says! It is
the nation speaking. You have the spectacle of that unsentimental thing, a Government,
making reverence to that name and saying to its agent, Uncover and pass on; it
is France that commands. Yes, the promise has been kept; it will be kept
always; for ever were the Kings words.
[It was faithfully kept during three hundred and sixty years and more; then
the over-confident octogenarian's prophecy failed. During the tumult of the French
Revolution the promise was forgotten and the grace withdrawn. It has remained in disuse
ever since. Joan never asked to be remembered, but France has remembered her with an
inextinguishable love and reverence; Joan never asked for a statue, but France has
lavished them upon her; Joan never asked for a church for Domremy, but France is building
one; Joan never asked for saintship, but even that is impending. Everything which Joan of
Arc did not ask for has been given her, and with a noble profusion; but the one humble
little thing which she did ask for and get, has been taken away from her. There is
something infinitely pathetic about this. France owes Domremy a hundred years of taxes,
and could hardly find a citizen within her borders who would vote against the payment of
the debt. -Note by the Translator]
At two oclock in the afternoon the ceremonies of the Coronation came at last to
an end; then the procession formed once more, with Joan and the King at its head, and took
up its solemn march through the midst of the church, all instruments and all people making
such clamour of rejoicing noises as was indeed a marvel to hear. And so ended the third of
the great days of Joans life. And how close together they stand - May 8th, June
18th, July 17th!
Chapter 36
We mounted and rode, a spectacle to remember, a most noble display of rich vestments
and nodding plumes, and as we moved between the banked multitudes they sank down all along
abreast of us as we advanced, like grain before the reaper, and kneeling hailed with a
rousing welcome the consecrated King and his companion the Deliverer of France. But
by-and-by when we had paraded about the chief parts of the city and were come near to the
end of our course, we being now approaching the Archbishops palace, one saw on the
right, hard by the inn that is called the Zebra, a strange thing - two men not kneeling
but standing! Standing in the front rank of the kneelers; unconscious,
transfixed, staring. Yes, and clothed in the coarse garb of the peasantry, these two. Two
halberdiers sprang at them in a fury to teach them better manners; but just as they seized
them Joan cried out Forebear! and slid from her saddle and flung her arms
about one of those peasants, calling him by all manner of endearing names, and sobbing.
For it was her father; and the other was her uncle Laxart.
The news flew everywhere, and shouts of welcome were raised, and in just one little
moment those two despised and unknown plebeians were become famous and popular and envied,
and everybody was in a fever to get sight of them and be able to say, all their lives
long, that they had seen the father of Joan of Arc and the brother of her mother. How easy
it was for her to do miracles like to this! She was like the sun; on whatsoever dim and
humble object her rays fell, that thing was straightway drowned in glory.
All graciously the King said:
Bring them to me.
And she brought them; she radiant with happiness and affection, they trembling and
scared, with their caps in their shaking hands; and there before all the world the King
gave them his hand to kiss, while the people gazed in envy and admiration; and he said to
old DArc -
Give God thanks for that you are father to this child, this dispenser of
immortalities. You who bear a name that will still live in the mouths of men when all the
race of kings has been forgotten, it is not meet that you bare your head before the
fleeting fames and dignities of a day - cover yourself! And truly he looked right
fine and princely when he said that. Then he gave order that the Bailly of Rheims be
brought; and when he was come, and stood bent low and bare, the King said to him,
These two are guests of France; and bade him use them hospitably.
I may as well say now as later, that Papa DArc and Laxart were stopping in that
little Zebra inn, and that there they remained. Finer quarters were offered them by the
Bailly, also public distinctions and brave entertainment; but they were frightened at
these projects, they being only humble and ignorant peasants: so they begged off, and had
peace. They could not have enjoyed such things. Poor souls, they did not even know what to
do with their hands, and it took all their attention to keep from treading on them. The
Bailly did the best he could in the circumstances. He made the innkeeper place a whole
floor at their disposal, and told him to provide everything they might desire, and charge
all to the city. Also the Bailly gave them a horse apiece, and furnishings; which so
overwhelmed them with pride and delight and astonishment that they couldnt speak a
word; for in their lives they had never dreamed of wealth like this, and could not
believe, at first, that the horses were real and would not dissolve to a mist and blow
away. They could not unglue their minds from those grandeurs, and were always wrenching
the conversation out of its groove and dragging the matter of animals into it, so that
they could say my horse here and my horse there are yonder and all
around, and taste the words and lick their chops over them, and spread their legs and
hitch up their thumbs in their armpits, and feel as the good God feels when He looks out
on His fleets and constellations ploughing the awful deeps of space and reflects with
satisfaction that they are His - all His. Well, they were the happiest old
children one ever saw, and the simplest.
The city gave a grand banquet to the King and Joan in mid-afternoon, and to the Court
and the Grand Staff; and about the middle of it Père DArc and Laxart were sent for,
but would not venture until it was promised that they might sit in a gallery and be all by
themselves and see all that was to be seen and yet be unmolested. And so they sat there
and looked down upon the splendid spectacle, and were moved till the tears ran down their
cheeks to see the unbelievable honours that were paid to their small darling and how
naïvely serene and unafraid she sat there with those consuming glories beating upon her.
But at last her serenity was broken up. Yes, it stood the strain of the Kings
gracious speech, and of DAlençons praiseful words, and the Bastards;
and even La Hires thunder-blast, which took the place by storm; but at last, as I
have said, they brought a force to bear which was too strong for her. For at the close the
King put up his hand to command silence, and so waited, with his hand up, till every sound
was dead and it was as if one could almost feel the stillness, so profound it
was. Then out of some remote corner of that vast place there rose a plaintive voice, and
in tones most tender and sweet and rich came floating through that enchanted hush our poor
old simple song LArbre Fée de Bourlemont! and then Joan broke down and
put her face in her hands and cried. Yes, you see, all in a moment the pomps and grandeurs
dissolved away, and she was a little child again herding her sheep with the tranquil
pastures stretched about her, and war and wounds and blood and death and the mad frenzy
and turmoil of battle a dream. Ah, that shows you the power of music, that magician of
magicians; who lifts his wand and says his mysterious word and all things real pass away
and the phantoms of your mind walk before you clothed in flesh.
That was the Kings invention, that sweet and dear surprise. Indeed, he had fine
things hidden away in his nature, though one seldom got a glimpse of them, with that
scheming Tremouille and those others always standing in the light, and he so indolently
content to save himself fuss and argument and let them have their way.
At the fall of night we the Domremy contingent of the personal staff were with the
father and uncle at the inn, in their private parlour, brewing generous drinks and
breaking ground for a homely talk about Domremy and the neighbours, when a large parcel
arrived from Joan to be kept till she came; and soon she came herself and sent her guard
away, saying she would take one of her fathers rooms and sleep under his roof, and
so be at home again. We of the staff rose and stood, as was meet, until she made us sit.
Then she turned and saw that the two old men had gotten up too, and were standing in an
embarrassed and unmilitary way; which made her want to laugh, but she kept it in, as not
wishing to hurt them; and got them to their seats and snuggled down between them, and took
a hand of each of them upon her knees and nestled her own hands in them and said -
Now we will have no more ceremony, but be kin and playmates as in other times;
for I am done with the great wars, now, and you two will take me home with you, and I
shall see - She stopped, and for a moment her happy face sobered, as if a doubt or a
presentiment had flitted through her mind; then it cleared again, and she said, with a
passionate yearning, ' oh, if the day were but come and we could start!
The old father was surprised, and said -
Why, child, are you in earnest? Would you leave doing these wonders that make you
to be praised by everybody while there is still so much glory to be won; and would you go
out from this grand comradeship with princes and generals to be a drudging villager again
and a nobody? It is not rational.
No, said the uncle Laxart, it is amazing to hear, and indeed not
understandable. It is a stranger thing to hear her say she will stop the soldiering than
it was to hear her say she would begin it; and I who speak to you can say in all truth
that that was the strangest word that ever I had heard till this day and hour. I would it
could be explained.
It is not difficult, said Joan. I was not ever fond of wounds and
suffering, nor fitted by my nature to inflict wounds and suffering, nor fitted by my
nature to inflict them; and quarrellings did always distress me, and noise and tumult were
against my liking, my disposition being toward peace and quietness, and love for all
things that have life; and being made like this, how could I bear to think of wars and
blood, and the pain that goes with them, and the sorrow and mourning that follow after?
But by his angels God laid His great commands upon me, and could I disobey? I did as I was
bid. Did He command me to do many things? No; only two: to raise the siege of Orleans, and
crown the King at Rheims. The task is finished, and I am free. Has ever a poor soldier
fallen in my sight, whether friend or foe, and I not felt his pain in my own body, and the
grief of his home-mates in my own heart? No, not one; and, oh, it is such bliss to know
that my release is won, and that I shall not any more see these cruel things or suffer
these tortures of the mind again! Then why should I not go to my village and be as I was
before? It is heaven! And ye wonder that I desire it. Ah, ye are men - just men! My mother
would understand.
They didnt quite know what to say; so they sat still awhile, looking pretty
vacant. Then old DArc said -
Yes, your mother - that is true. I never saw such a woman. She worries, and
worries, and worries; and wakes nights, and lies so, thinking - that is, worrying;
worrying about you. And when the night-storms go raging along, she moans and says,
"Ah, God pity her, she is out in this with her poor wet soldiers." And when the
lightning glares and the thunder crashes she wrings her hands and trembles, saying,
"It is like the awful cannon and the flash, and yonder somewhere she is riding down
upon the spouting guns and I not there to protect her."
Ah, poor mother, it is pity, it is pity!
Yes, a most strange woman, as I have noticed a many times. When there is news of
a victory and all the village goes mad with pride and joy, she rushes here and there in a
maniacal frenzy till she finds out the one only thing she cares to know - that you are
safe; then down she goes on her knees in the dirt and praises God as long as there is any
breath left in her body; and all on your account, for she never mentions the battle once.
And always she says, "Now it is over - now France is saved - now she will come home" - and always is disappointed, and goes about mourning.
Dont, father, it breaks my heart. I will be so good to her when I get home.
I will do her work for her, and be her comfort, and she shall not suffer any more through
me.
There was some more talk of this sort, then Uncle Laxart said -
You have done the will of God, dear, and are quits; it is true, and none may deny
it; but what of the King? You are his best soldier; what if he command you to stay?
That was a crusher - and sudden! It took Joan a moment or two to recover from the shock
of it; then she said, quite simply and resignedly:
The King is my Lord; I am his servant. She was silent and thoughtful a
little while, then she brightened up and said, cheerily, But let us drive such
thoughts away - this is no time for them. Tell me about home.
So the two old gossips talked and talked; talked about everything and everybody in the
village; and it was good to hear. Joan out of her kindness tried to get us into the
conversation, but that failed, of course. She was the Commander-in-Chief, we were
nobodies; her name was the mightiest in France, we were invisible atoms; she was the
comrade of princes and heroes, we of the humble and obscure; she held rank above all
Personages and all Puissances whatsoever in the whole earth, by right of bearing her
commission direct from God. To put it in one word, she was JOAN OF ARC - and when that is
said, all is said. To us she was divine. Between her and us lay the bridgeless abyss which
that word implies. We could not be familiar with her. No, you can see yourselves that that
would have been impossible.
And yet she was so human, too, and so good and kind and dear and loving and cheery and
charming and unspoiled and unaffected! Those are all the words I think of now, but they
are not enough; no, they are too few and colourless and meagre to tell it all, or tell the
half. Those simple old men didnt realise her; they couldn't; they had never known
any people but human beings, and they had no other standard to measure her by. To them,
after their first little shyness had worn off, she was just a girl - that was all. It was
amazing. It made one shiver, sometimes, to see how calm and easy and comfortable they were
in her presence, and hear them talk to her exactly as they would have talked to any other
girl in France.
Why, that simple old Laxart sat up there and droned out the most tedious and empty tale
one ever heard, and neither he nor Papa DArc ever gave a thought to the badness of
the etiquette of it, or ever suspected that that foolish tale was anything but dignified
and valuable history. There was not an atom of value in it; and whilst they thought it
distressing and pathetic, it was in fact not pathetic at all, but actually ridiculous. At
least it seemed so to me, and it seems so yet. Indeed I known it was, because it made Joan
laugh; and the more sorrowful it got the more it made her laugh; and the Paladin said that
he could have laughed himself if she had not been there, and Noël Rainguesson said the
same. It was about old Laxart going to a funeral there at Domremy two or three weeks back.
He had spots all over his face and hands, and he got Joan to rub some healing ointment on
them, and while she was doing it, and comforting him, and trying to say pitying things to
him, he told her how it happened. And first he asked her if she remembered that black bull
calf that she left behind when she came away, and she said indeed she did, and he was a
dear, and she loved him so, and was he well? - and just drowned him in questions about the
creature. And he said it was a young bull now, and very frisky; and he was to bear a
principal hand at a funeral; and she said, The bull? and he said, No,
myself; but said the bull did take a hand, but not because of being
invited, for he wasn't; but anyway he was away over beyond the Fairy Tree, and fell asleep
on the grass with his Sunday funeral clothes on, and a long black rag on his hat and
hanging down his back; and when he woke he saw by the sun how late it was, and not a
moment to lose; and jumped up terribly worried, and saw the young bull grazing there, and
thought maybe he could ride part way on him and gain time; so he tied a rope around the
bulls body to hold on by, and put a halter on him to steer with, and jumped on and
started; but it was all new to the bull, and he was discontented with it, and scurried
around and bellowed and reared and pranced, and Uncle Laxart was satisfied, and wanted to
get off and go by the next bull or some other way that was quieter, but he didnt
dare try; and it was getting very warm for him, too, and disturbing and wearisome, and not
proper for Sunday; but by-and-by the bull lost all his temper, and went tearing down the
slope with his tail in the air and bellowing in the most awful way; and just in the edge
of the village he knocked down some bee-hives, and the bees turned out and joined the
excursion, and soared along in a black cloud that nearly hid those other two from sight,
and prodded them both, and jabbed them and speared them and spiked them, and made them
bellow and shriek, and shriek and bellow; and here they came roaring through the village
like a hurricane, and took the funeral procession right in the centre, and sent that
section of it sprawling, and galloped over it, and the rest scattered apart and fled
screeching in every direction, every person with a layer of bees on him, and not a rag of
that funeral left but the corpse; and finally the bull broke for the river and jumped in,
and when they fished Uncle Laxart out he was nearly drowned, and his face looked like a
pudding with raisins in it. And then he turned around, this old simpleton, and looked a
long time in a dazed way at Joan where she had her face in a cushion, dying, apparently,
and says -
What do you reckon she is laughing at?
And old DArc stood looking at her the same way, sort of absently scratching his
head; but had to give it up, and said he didnt know - must have been
something that happened when we werent noticing.
Yes, both of those old people thought that that tale was pathetic; whereas to my mind
it was purely ridiculous, and not in any way valuable to any one. It seemed so to me then,
and it seems so to me yet. And as for history, it does not resemble history, for the
office of history is to furnish serious and important facts that teach; whereas
this strange and useless event teaches nothing; nothing that I can see, except not to ride
a bull to a funeral; and surely no reflecting person needs to be taught that.
Chapter 37
Now, these were nobles, you know, by decree of the King! - these precious old infants.
But they did not realise it; they could not be called conscious of it; it was an
abstraction, a phantom; to them it had no substance; their minds could not take hold of
it. No, they did not bother about their nobility; they lived in their horses. The horses
were solid; they were visible facts, and would make a mighty stir in Domremy. Presently
something was said about the Coronation, and old DArc said it was going to be a
grand thing to be able to say, when they got home, that they were present in the very town
itself when it happened. Joan looked troubled, and said -
Ah, that reminds me. You were here and you didnt send me word. In the town,
indeed! Why, you could have sat with the other nobles, and been welcome; and could have
looked upon the crowning itself, and carried that home to tell. Ah, why did you
use me so, and send me no word?
The old father was embarrassed, now, quite visibly embarrassed, and had the air of one
who does not quite know what to say. But Joan was looking up in his face, her hands upon
his shoulders - waiting. He had to speak; so presently he drew her to his breast, which
was heaving with emotion; and he said, getting out his words with difficulty -
There, hide your face, child, and let your old father humble himself and make his
confession. I - I dont you see, dont you understand? - I could not know that
these grandeurs would not turn your young head - it would be only natural. I might shame
you before these great per-
Father!
And then I was afraid, as remembering that cruel thing I said once in my sinful
anger. Oh, appointed of God to be a soldier, and the greatest in the land! and in my
ignorant anger I said I would drown you with my own hands if you unsexed yourself and
brought shame to your name and family. Ah, how could I ever have said it, and you so good
and dear and innocent! I was afraid; for I was guilty. You understand it now, my child,
and you forgive?
Do you see? Even that poor groping old land-crab, with his skull full of pulp, had
pride. Isnt that wonderful? And more - he had conscience; he had a sense of right
and wrong, such as it was; he was able to feel remorse. It looks impossible, it looks
incredible, but it is not. I believe that some day it will be found out that peasants are
people. Yes, beings in a great many respects like ourselves. And I believe that some day they will find this out, too - and then! Well, then I think they will rise up and demand to be
regarded as part of the race, and that by consequence there will be trouble. Whenever one
sees in a book or in a kings proclamation those words the nation, they
bring before us the upper classes; only those; we know no other nation; for us
and the kings no other nation exists. But from the day that I saw old
DArc the peasant acting and feeling just as I should have acted and felt myself, I
have carried the conviction in my heart that our peasants are not merely animals, beasts
of burden put here by the good God to produce food and comfort for the nation,
but something more and better. You look incredulous. Well, that is your training; it is
the training of everybody; but as for me, I thank that incident for giving me a better
light, and I have never forgotten it.
Let me see - where was I? Ones mind wanders around here and there and yonder,
when one is old. I think I said Joan comforted him. Certainly, that is what she would do -
there was no need to say that. She coaxed him and petted him and caressed him, and laid
the memory of that old hard speech of his to rest. Laid it to rest until she should be
dead. Then he would remember it again - yes, yes! Lord, how those things sting, and burn,
and gnaw - the things which we did against the innocent dead! And we say in our anguish,
If they could only come back! Which is all very well to say, but, as far as I
can see, it doesnt profit anything. In my opinion the best way is not to do the
thing in the first place. And I am not alone in this; I have heard our two knights say the
same thing; and a man there in Orleans - no, I believe it was at Beaugency, or one of
those places - it seems more as if it was at Beaugency that the others - this man said the
same thing exactly; almost the same words; a dark man with a cast in his eye and one leg
shorter than the other. His name was - was - it is singular that I cant call that
mans name; I had it in my mind only a moment ago, and I know it begins with - no, I
dont remember what it begins with; but never mind, let it go; I will think of it
presently, and then I will tell you.
Well, pretty soon the old father wanted to know how Joan felt when she was in the thick
of a battle, with the bright blades hacking and flashing all around her, and the blows
rapping and slatting on her shield, and blood gushing on her from the cloven ghastly face
and broken teeth of the neighbour at her elbow, and the perilous sudden back surge of
massed horses upon a person when the front ranks give way before a heavy rush of the
enemy, and men tumble limp and groaning out of saddles all around, and battle-flags
falling from dead hands wipe across ones face and hide the tossing turmoil a moment,
and in the reeling and swaying and labouring jumble ones horses hoofs sink
into soft substances and shrieks of pain respond, and presently - panic! rush! swarm!
flight! and death and hell following after! And the old fellow got ever so much excited;
and strode up and down, his tongue going like a mill, asking question after question and
never waiting for an answer, and finally he stood Joan up in the middle of the room and
stepped off and scanned her critically, and said -
No - I dont understand it. You are so little. So little and slender. When
you had your armour on, today, it gave one a sort of notion of it; but in these pretty
silks and velvets, you are only a dainty page, not a league-striding war-colossus, moving
in clouds and darkness and breathing smoke and thunder. I would God I might see you at it
and go tell your mother! That would help her sleep, poor thing! Here - teach me
the arts of the soldier, that I may explain them to her.
And she did it. She gave him a pike, and put him through the manual of arms; and made
him do the steps, too. His marching was incredibly awkward and slovenly, and so was his
drill with the pike; but he didnt know it, and was wonderfully pleased with himself,
and mightily excited and charmed with the ringing, crisp words of command. I am obliged to
say that if looking proud and happy when one is marching were sufficient, he would have
been the perfect soldier.
And he wanted a lesson in sword-play, and got it. But of course that was beyond him, he
was too old. It was beautiful to see Joan handle the foils, but the old man was a bad
failure. He was afraid of the things, and skipped and dodged and scrambled around like a
woman who has lost her mind on account of the arrival of a bat. He was of no good as an
exhibition. But if La Hire had only come in, that would have been another matter. Those
two fenced often; I saw them many times. True, Joan was easily his master, but it made a
good show for all that, for La Hire was a grand swordsman. What a swift creature Joan was!
You would see her standing erect with her ankle-bones together and her foil arched over
her head, the hilt in one hand and the button in the other - the old general opposite,
bent forward, left hand reposing in his back, his foil advanced, slightly wiggling and
squirming, his watching eye boring straight into hers - and all of a sudden she would give
a spring forward, and back again; and there she was, with the foil arched over her head as
before. La Hire had been hit, but all that the spectator saw of it was a something like a
thin flash of light in the air, but nothing distinct, nothing definite.
We kept the drinkables moving, for that would please the Bailly and the landlord; and
old Laxart and DArc got to feeling quite comfortable, but without being what you
could call tipsy. They got out the presents which they had been buying to carry home -
humble things and cheap, but they would be fine there, and welcome. And they gave Joan a
present from Père Fronte and one from her mother - the one a little leaden image of the
Holy Virgin, the other half a yard of blue silk ribbon; and she was as pleased as a child;
and touched, too, as one could see plainly enough. Yes, she kissed those poor things over
and over again, as if they had been something costly and wonderful; and she pinned the
Virgin on her doublet, and sent for her helmet and tied the ribbon on that; first one way,
then another; then a new way, then another new way; and with each effort perching the
helmet on her head to one side and then the other, examining the effect, as a bird does
when it has got a new bug. And she said she could almost wish she was going to the wars
again; for then she would fight with the better courage, as having always with her
something which her mothers touch had blessed.
Old Laxart said he hoped she would go to the wars again, but home first, for that all
the people there were cruel anxious to see her - and so he went on:
They are proud of you, dear. Yes, prouder than any village ever was of anybody
before. And indeed it is right and rational; for it is the first time a village has ever
had anybody like you to be proud of and call its own. And it is strange and beautiful how
they try to give your name to every creature that has a set that is convenient. It is but
half a year since you began to be spoken of and left us, and so it is surprising to see
how many babies there are already in that region that are named for you. First it was just
Joan; then it was Joan-Orleans; then Joan-Orleans-Beaugency-Patay; and now the next ones
will have a lot of towns and the Coronation added, of course. Yes, and the animals the
same. They know how you love animals, and so they try to do you honour and show their love
for you by naming all those creatures after you; insomuch that if a body should step out
and call "Joan of Arc - come!" there would be a landslide of cats and all such
things, each supposing it was the one wanted, and all willing to take the benefit of the
doubt, anyway, for the sake of the food that might be on delivery. The kitten you left
behind - the last estray you fetched home - bears your name now, and belongs to Père
Fronte, and is the pet and pride of the village; and people have come miles to look at it
and pet it and stare at it and wonder over it because is was Joan of Arcs cat.
Everybody will tell you that; and one day when a stranger threw a stone at it, not knowing
it was your cat, the village rose against him as one man and hanged him. And but for Père
Fronte -
There was an interruption. It was a messenger from the King, bearing a note for Joan,
which I read to her, saying he had reflected, and had consulted his other generals, and
was obliged to ask her to remain at the head of the army and withdraw her resignation.
Also, would she come immediately and attend a council of war? Straightway, at a little
distance, military commands and the rumble of drums broke on the still night, and we knew
that her guard was approaching.
Deep disappointment clouded her face for just one moment and no more - it passed, and
with it the homesick girl, and she was Joan of Arc, Commander-in-Chief again, and ready
for duty.
Chapter 38
In my double quality of page and secretary I followed Joan to the council. She entered
that presence with the bearing of a grieved goddess. What was become of the volatile child
that so lately was enchanted with a ribbon and suffocated with laughter over the
distresses of a foolish peasant who had stormed a funeral on the back of a bee-stung bull?
One may not guess. Simply it was gone, and had left no sign. She moved straight to the
council-table, and stood. Her glance swept from face to face there, and, where it fell,
these it lit as with a torch, those it scorched as with a brand. She knew where to strike.
She indicated the generals with a nod, and said -
My business is not with you. You have not craved a council of war. Then she
turned toward the Kings privy council, and continued: No; it is with you. A
council of war! It is amazing. There is but one thing to do, and only one, and lo, ye call
a council of war! Councils of war have no value but to decide between two or several
doubtful courses. But a council of war when there is only one course? Conceive of
a man in a boat and his family in the water, and he goes out among his friends to ask what
he would better do? A council of war, name of God! To determine what?
She stopped, and turned till her eyes rested upon the face of La Tremouille and so she
stood, silent, measuring him, the excitement in all faces burning steadily higher and
higher, and all pulses beating faster and faster; then she said, with deliberation -
Every sane man - whose loyalty to his King is not a show and a pretence - knows
that there is but one rational thing before us - the march upon Paris!
Down came the fist of La Hire with an approving crash upon the table. La Tremouille
turned white with anger, but he pulled himself firmly together and held his peace. The
Kings lazy blood was stirred and his eye kindled finely, for the spirit of war was
away down in him somewhere, and a frank bold speech always found it and made it tingle
gladsomely. Joan waited to see if the chief minister might wish to defend his position;
but he was experienced and wise, and not a man to waste his forces where the current was
against him. He would wait; the Kings private ear would be at his disposal
by-and-by.
That pious fox the Chancellor of France took the word now. He washed his soft hands
together, smiling persuasively, and said to Joan:
Would it be courteous, your Excellency, to move abruptly from here without
waiting for an answer from the Duke of Burgundy? You may not know that we are negotiating
with his Highness, and that there is likely to be a fortnights truce between us; and
on his part a pledge to deliver Paris into our hands without cost of a blow or the fatigue
of a march thither.
Joan turned to him and said, gravely -
This is not a confessional, my lord. You were not obliged to expose that shame
here.
The Chancellors face reddened, and he retorted -
Shame? What is there shameful about it?
Joan answered in level, passionless tones -
One may describe it without hunting far for words. I knew of this poor comedy, my
lord, although it was not intended that I should know. It is to the credit of the devisers
of it that they tried to conceal it - this comedy whose text and impulse are describable
in two words.
The Chancellor spoke up with a fine irony in his manner:
Indeed? And will your Excellency be good enough to utter them?
Cowardice and treachery!
The fists of all the generals came down this time, and again the Kings eye
sparkled with pleasure. The Chancellor sprang to his feet, and appealed to his Majesty -
Sire, I claim your protection.
But the King waved him to his seat again, saying -
Peace. She had a right to be consulted before that thing was undertaken, since it
concerned war as well as politics. It is but just that she be heard upon it now.
The Chancellor sat down trembling with indignation, and remarked to Joan -
Out of charity I will consider that you did not know who devised this measure
which you condemn in so candid language.
Save your charity for another occasion, my lord, said Joan, as calmly as
before. Whenever anything is done to injure the interests and degrade the honour of
France, all but the dead know how to name the two conspirators-in-chief.
Sire, sire! this insinuation -
It is not an insinuation, my lord, said Joan placidly, it is a
charge. I bring it against the Kings chief minister and his Chancellor.
Both men were on their feet now, insisting that the King modify Joans frankness;
but he was not minded to do it. His ordinary councils were stale water - his spirit was
drinking wine now, and the taste of it was good. He said -
Sit - and be patient. What is fair for one must in fairness be allowed the other.
Consider - and be just. When have you spared her? What dark charges and harsh names have
you withheld when you spoke of her? Then he added, with a veiled twinkle in his eye,
If these are offences, I see no particular difference between them, except that she
says her hard things to your faces, whereas you say yours behind her back.
He was pleased with that neat shot and the way it shrivelled those two people up, and
made La Hire laugh out loud and the other generals softly quake and chuckle. Joan
tranquilly resumed -
From the first, we have been hindered by this policy of shilly-shally; this
fashion of counselling and counselling and counselling where no counselling is needed, but
only fighting. We took Orleans on the 8th of May, and could have cleared the region round
about in three days and saved the slaughter of Patay. We could have been in Rheims six
weeks ago, and in Paris now; and would see the last Englishman pass out of France in half
a year. But we struck no blow after Orleans, but went off into the country - what for?
Ostensibly to hold councils; really to give Bedford time to send reinforcements to Talbot
- which he did; and Patay had to be fought. After Patay, more counselling, more waste of
precious time. O my King, I would that you would be persuaded! She began to warm up,
now. Once more we have our opportunity. If we rise and strike, all is well. Bid me
march upon Paris. In twenty days it shall be yours, and in six months all France! Here is
half a years work before us; if this chance be wasted, I give you twenty years to do
it in. Speak the word, O gentle King - speak but the one -
I cry you mercy! interrupted the Chancellor, who saw a dangerous enthusiasm
rising in the Kings face. March upon Paris? Does you Excellency forget that
the way bristles with English strongholds?
That for your English strongholds! and Joan snapped her fingers
scornfully. Whence have we marched in these last days? From Gien. And whither? To
Rheims. What bristled between? English strongholds. What are they now? French ones - and
they never cost a blow!
Here applause broke out from the group of generals, and Joan had to pause a moment to
let it subside. Yes, English strongholds bristled before us; now French ones bristle
behind us. What is the argument? A child can read it. The strongholds between us and Paris
are garrisoned by no new breed of English, but by the same breed as those others - with
the same fears, the same questionings, the same weaknesses, the same disposition to see
the heavy hand of God descending upon them. We have but to march! - on the instant - and
they are ours, Paris is ours, France is ours! Give the word, O my King, command your
servant to -
Stay! cried the Chancellor. It would be madness to put this affront
upon his Highness the Duke of Burgundy. By the treaty which we have every hope to make
with him -
Oh, the treaty which we hope to make with him! He has scorned you for years, and
defied you. Is it your subtle persuasions that have softened his manners and beguiled him
to listen to proposals? No; it was blows! - the blows which we gave him! That is
the only teaching that that sturdy rebel can understand. What does he care for wind? The treaty which we hope to make with him - alack! He deliver Paris! There is no pauper in
the land that is less able to do it. He deliver Paris! Ah, but that would make great
Bedford smile! Oh, the pitiful pretext! the blind can see that this thin pourparler with
its fifteen day truce has no purpose but to give Bedford time to hurry forward his forces
against us. More treachery - always treachery! We call a council of war - with nothing to
counsel about; but Bedford calls no council to teach him what our one course is. He knows
what he would do in our place. He would hang his traitors and march upon Paris! O
gentle King, rouse! The way is open, Paris beckons, France implores. Speak and we -
Sire, it is madness, sheer madness! Your Excellency, we cannot, we must not go
back from what we have done; we have proposed to treat, we must treat with the Duke of
Burgundy.
And we will! said Joan.
Ah? How?
At the point of the lance!
The house rose to a man - all that had French hearts - and let go a crash of applause -
and kept it up; and in the midst of it one heard La Hire growl out: At the point of
the lance! By God, that is the music! The King was up, too, and drew his sword, and
took it by the blade and strode to Joan and delivered the hilt of it into her hand, saying
-
There, the King surrenders. Carry it to Paris.
And so the applause burst out again, and the historical council of war that has bred so
many legends was over.
Chapter 39
It was away past midnight, and had been a tremendous day in the matter of excitement
and fatigue, but that was no matter to Joan when there was business on hand. She did not
think of bed. The generals followed her to her official quarters, and she delivered her
orders to them as fast as she could talk, and they sent them off to their different
commands as fast as delivered; wherefore the messengers galloping hither and thither
raised a world of clatter and racket in the still streets; and soon were added to this the
music of distant bugles and the roll of drums - notes of preparation; for the vanguard
would break camp at dawn.
The generals were soon dismissed, but I wasnt; nor Joan; for it was my turn to
work now. Joan walked the floor and dictated a summons to the Duke of Burgundy to lay down
his arms and make peace and exchange pardons with the King; or, if he must fight,
go fight the Saracens. Pardonnez-vous lun à lautre de bon coeur,
entièrement, ainsi que doivent faire loyaux chrétiens, et, sil vous plait de
guerroyer, allez contre les Sarrasins. It was long, but it was good, and had the
sterling ring to it. It is my opinion that it was a fine and simple and straightforward
and eloquent a state paper as she ever uttered.
It was delivered into the hands of a courier, and he galloped away with it. Then Joan
dismissed me, and told me to go to the inn and stay; and in the morning give to her father
the parcel which she had left there. It contained presents for the Domremy relatives and
friends and a peasant dress which she had brought for herself. She said she would say
good-bye to her father and uncle in the morning if it should still be their purpose to go,
instead of tarrying awhile to see the city.
I didnt say anything, of course; but I could have said that wild horses
couldnt keep those men in that town half a day. They waste the glory of
being the first to carry the great news to Domremy - the taxes remitted for ever! - and hear the bells clang and clatter, and the people cheer and shout? Oh, not they.
Patay and Orleans and the Coronation were events which in a vague way these men understood
to be colossal; but they were colossal mists, films, abstractions: this was a
gigantic reality!
When I got there, do you suppose they were abed? Quite the reverse. They and the rest
were as mellow as mellow could be; and the Paladin was doing his battles over in great
style, and the old peasants were endangering the building with their applause. He was
doing Patay now: and was bending his big frame forward and laying out the positions and
movements with a rake here and a rake there of his formidable sword on the floor, and the
peasants were stooped over with their hands on their spread knees observing with excited
eyes and ripping out ejaculations of wonder and admiration all along:
Yes, here we were, waiting - waiting for the word; our horses fidgeting and
snorting and dancing to get away, we lying back on the bridles till our bodies fairly
slanted to the rear; and word rang out at last - Go! and we went!
Went? There was nothing like it ever seen! Where we swept by squads of scampering
English, the mere wind of our passage laid them flat in piles and rows! Then we plunged
into the ruck of Fastolfes frantic battle-corps and tore through it like a
hurricane, leaving a causeway of the dead stretching far behind; no tarrying, no slacking
rein, but on! on! on! on! far yonder in the distance lay our prey - Talbot and
his host looming vast and dark like a storm-cloud brooding on the sea! Down we swooped
upon them, glooming all the air with a quivering pall of dead leaves flung up by the
whirlwind of our flight. In another moment we should have struck them as world strikes
world when disorbited constellations crash into the Milky Way, but by misfortune and the
inscrutable dispensation of God I was recognised! Talbot turned white, and shouting,
"Save yourselves, it is the Standard-bearer of Joan of Arc!" drove his spurs
home till they met in the middle of his horses entrails, and fled the field with his
billowing multitudes at his back! I could have cursed myself for not putting on a
disguise. I saw reproach in the eyes of her Excellency, and was bitterly ashamed. I had
caused what seemed an irreparable disaster. Another might have gone aside to grieve, as
not seeing any way to mend it; but I thank God I am not of those. Great occasions only
summon as with a trumpet-call the slumbering reserves of my intellect. I saw my
opportunity in an instant - in the next I was away! Through the woods I vanished - fst! - like an extinguished light! Away around through the curtaining forest I sped, as if on
wings, none knowing what was become of me, none suspecting my design. Minute after minute
passed, on and on I flew; on and still on; and at last with a great cheer I flung my
Banner to the breeze and burst out in front of Talbot! Oh, it was a mighty
thought! That weltering chaos of distracted men whirled and surged backward like a tidal
wave which has struck a continent, and the day was ours! Poor helpless creatures, they
were in a trap; they were surrounded; they could not escape to the rear, for there was our
army; they could not escape to the front, for there was I. Their hearts shrivelled in
their bodies, their hands fell listless at their sides. They stood still, and at our
leisure we slaughtered them to a man; all except Talbot and Fastolfe, whom I saved and
brought away, one under each arm.
Well, there is no denying it, the Paladin was in great form that night. Such style!
such noble grace of gesture, such grandeur of attitude, such energy when he got going!
such steady rise, on such sure wind, such nicely graduated expenditures of voice according
to weight of matter, such skilfully calculated approaches to his surprises and explosions,
such belief-compelling sincerity of tone and manner, such a climaxing peal from his brazen
lungs, and such a lightning-vivid picture of his mailed form and flaunting banner when he
burst out before that despairing army! And oh, the gentle art of the last half of his last
sentence - delivered in the careless and indolent tone of one who has finished his real
story, and only adds a colourless and inconsequential detail because it has happened to
occur to him in a lazy way.
It was a marvel to see those innocent peasants. Why they went all to pieces with
enthusiasm, and roared out applauses fit to raise the roof and wake the dead. When they
had cooled down at last and there was silence but for their heaving and planting, old
Laxart said, admiringly -
As it seems to me, you are an army in your single person.
Yes, that is what he is, said Noël Rainguesson, convincingly. He is
a terror; and not just in this vicinity. His mere name carries a shudder with it
to distant lands - just his mere name; and when he frowns, the shadow of it falls as far
as Rome, and the chickens go to roost an hour before schedule time. Yes; and some say
-
Noël Rainguesson, you are preparing yourself for trouble. I will say just one
word to you, and it will be to your advantage to -
I saw that the usual thing had got a start. No man could prophesy when it would end. So
I delivered Joans message and went off to bed.
Joan made her good-byes to those old fellows in the morning, with loving embraces and
many tears, and with a packed multitude for sympathisers, and they rode proudly away on
their precious horses to carry their great news home. I had seen better riders, I will say
that; for horsemanship was a new art to them.
The vanguard moved out at dawn and took the road, with bands braying and banners
flying; the second division followed at eight. Then came the Burgundian ambassadors, and
lost us the rest of that day and whole of the next. But Joan was on hand, and so they had
their journey for their pains. The rest of us took the road at dawn, next morning, July
20th. And got how far? Six leagues. Tremouille was getting in his sly work with the
vacillating King, you see. The King stopped at St-Marcoul and prayed three days. Precious
time lost - for us; precious time gained for Bedford. He would know how to use it.
We could not go on without the King; that would be to leave him in the
conspirators camp. Joan argued, reasoned, implored; and at last we got under way
again.
Joans prediction was verified. It was not a campaign it was only another holiday
excursion. English strongholds lined our route; they surrendered without a blow; we
garrisoned them with Frenchmen and passed on. Bedford was on the march against us with his
new army by this time, and on the 25th of July the hostile forces faced each other and
made preparation for battle; but Bedfords good judgement prevailed, and he turned
and retreated towards Paris. Now was our chance. Our men were in great spirits.
Will you believe it? Our poor stick of a King allowed his worthless advisers to
persuade him to start back for Gien, whence we had set out when we first marched for
Rheims and the Coronation! And we actually did start back. The fifteen-day truce had just
been concluded with the Duke of Burgundy, and we would go and tarry at Gien until he
should deliver Paris to us without a fight.
We marched to Bray; then the King changed his mind once more, and with it his face
toward Paris. Joan dictated a letter to the citizens of Rheims to encourage them to keep
heart in spite of the truce, and promising to stand by them. She furnished them the news
herself that the King had made this truce; and in speaking of it she was her usual frank
self. She said she was not satisfied with it, and didnt know whether she would keep
it or not; that if she kept it, it would be solely out of tenderness for the Kings
honour. All French children know those famous words. How naïve they are! De cette
trève qui a été faite, je ne suis pas contente, et je ne sais si je la tiendrai. Si je
la tiens, ce sera seulement pour garder Ihonneur du roi. But in any case, she
said, she would not allow the blood royal to be abused, and would keep the army in good
order and ready for work at the end of the truce.
Poor child, to have to fight England, Burgundy, and a French conspiracy all at the same
time - it was too bad. She was a match for the others, but a conspiracy - ah, nobody is a
match for that, when the victim that is to be injured is weak and willing. It grieved her,
these troubled days, to be so hindered and delayed and baffled, and at times she was sad
and the tears lay near the surface. Once, talking with her good old faithful friend and
servant the Bastard of Orleans, she said -
Ah, if it might but please God to let me put off this steel raiment and go back
to my father and my mother, and tend my sheep again with my sister and my brothers, who
would be so glad to see me!
By the 12th of August we were camped near Dampmartin. Later we had a brush with
Bedfords rear-guard, and had hopes of a big battle on the morrow, but Bedford and
all his force got away in the night and went on toward Paris.
Charles sent heralds and received the submission of Beauvais. The Bishop Pierre
Cauchon, that faithful friend and slave of the English, was not able to prevent it, though
he did his best. He was obscure then, but his name was to travel round the globe
presently, and live for ever in the curses of France! Bear with me now, while I spit in
fancy upon his grave.
Compiègne surrendered, and hauled down the English flag. On the 14th we camped two
leagues from Senlis. Bedford turned and approached, and took up a strong position. We went
against him, but all our efforts to beguile him out from his intrenchments failed, though
he had promised us a duel in the open field. Night shut down. Let him look out for the
morning! But in the morning he was gone again.
We entered Compiègne the 18th of August, turning out the English garrison and hoisting
our own flag.
On the 23rd Joan gave command to move upon Paris. The King and the clique were not
satisfied with this, and retired sulking to Senlis, which had just surrendered. Within a
few days many strong places submitted - Creil, Pont-Saint-Maxence, Choisy,
Gournay-sur-Aronde, Remy, La Neufville-en-Hez, Moguay, Chantilly, Saintines. The English
power was tumbling, crash after crash! And still the King sulked and disapproved, and was
afraid of our movement against the capital.
On the 26th of August, 1429, Joan camped at Saint-Denis; in effect, under the walls of
Paris.
And still the King hung back and was afraid. If we could but have had him there to back
us with his authority! Bedford had lost heart and decided to waive resistance and go and
concentrate his strength in the best and loyalest province remaining to him - Normandy.
Ah, if we could only have persuaded the King to come and countenance us with his presence
and approval at this supreme moment!
Chapter 40
Courier after courier was despatched to the King, and he promised to come, but
didnt. The Duke dAlençon went to him and got his promise again, which he
broke again. Nine days were lost thus; then he came, arriving at St-Denis September 7th.
Meantime the enemy had begun to take heart: the spiritless conduct of the King could
have no other result. Preparations had now been made to defend the city. Joans
chances had been diminished, but she and her generals considered them plenty good enough
yet. Joan ordered the attack for eight oclock next morning, and at that hour it
began.
Joan placed her artillery and began to pound a strong work which protected the gate
St-Honoré. When it was sufficiently crippled the assault was sounded at noon, and it was
carried by storm. Then we moved forward to storm the gate itself, and hurled ourselves
against it again and again, Joan in the lead with her standard at her side, and smoke
enveloping us in choking clouds, and the missiles flying over us and through us as thick
as hail.
In the midst of our last assault, which would have carried the gate sure and given us
Paris, and in effect France, Joan was struck down by a crossbow bolt, and our men fell
back instantly and almost in a panic - for what were they without her? She was
the army, herself.
Although disabled, she refused to retire, and begged that a new assault be made, saying
it must win; and adding, with the battle-light rising in her eyes, I will
take Paris now or die! She had to be carried away by force, and this was done by
Gancourt and the Duke dAlençon.
But her spirits were at the very top notch, now. She was brimming with enthusiasm. She
said she would be carried before the gate in the morning, and in half an hour Paris would
be ours without any question. She could have kept her word. About this there is no doubt.
But she forgot one factor - the King, shadow of that substance named La Tremouille. The
King forbade the attempt!
You see, a new Embassy had just come from the Duke of Burgundy, and another sham
private trade of some sort was on foot.
You would know, without my telling you, that Joans heart was nearly broken.
Because of the pain of her wound and the pain at her heart she slept little that night.
Several times the watchers heard muffled sobs from the dark room where she lay at
St-Denis, and many times the grieving words It could have been taken! - it could
have been taken! which were the only ones she said.
She dragged herself out of bed a day later with a new hope. DAlençon had thrown
a bridge across the Seine near St-Denis. Might she not cross by that and assault Paris at
another point? But the King got wind of it and broke the bridge down! And more - he
declared the campaign ended! And more still - he had agreed to leave Paris unthreatened
and unmolested, and go back to the Loire whence he had come!
Joan of Arc, who had never been defeated by the enemy, was defeated by her own King.
She had said once that all she feared for her cause was treachery. It had struck its first
blow now. She hung up her white armour in the royal basilica of St-Denis, and went and
asked the King to relieve her of her functions and let her go home. As usual, she was
wise. Grand combinations, far-reaching great military moves were at an end, now; for the
future, when the truce should end, the war would be merely a war of random and idle
skirmishes, apparently; work suitable for subalterns, and not requiring the supervision of
a sublime military genius. But the King would not let her go. The truce did not embrace
all France; there were French strongholds to be watched and preserved; he would need her.
Really, you see, Tremouille wanted to keep her where he could balk and hinder her.
Now came her Voices again. They said, Remain at St-Denis. There
was no explanation. They did not say why. That was the voice of God; it took precedence of
the command of the King; Joan resolved to stay. But that filled La Tremouille with dread.
She was too tremendous a force to be left to herself; she would surely defeat all his
plans. He beguiled the King to use compulsion. Joan had to submit - because she was
wounded and helpless. In the Great Trial she said she was carried away against her will;
and that if she had not been wounded it could not have been accomplished. Ah, she had a
spirit, that slender girl! a spirit to brace all earthly powers and defy them. We shall
never know why the Voices ordered her to stay. We only know this: that if she could have
obeyed, the history of France would not be as it now stands written in the books. Yes,
well we know that.
On the 13th of September the army, sad and spiritless, turned its face toward the
Loire, and marched - without music! Yes, one noted that detail. It was a funeral march;
that is what it was. A long, dreary funeral march, with never a shout or a cheer; friends
looking on in tears, all the way, enemies laughing. We reached Gien at last - that place
whence we had set out on our splendid march toward Rheims less than three months before,
with flags flying, bands playing, the victory-flush of Patay glowing in our faces, and the
massed multitudes shouting and praising and giving us God-speed. There was a dull rain
falling now, the day was dark, the heavens mourned, the spectators were few, we had no
welcome but the welcome of silence, and pity, and tears.
Then the King disbanded that noble army of heroes; it furled its flags, it stored its
arms: the disgrace of France was complete. La Tremouille wore the victors crown;
Joan of Arc, the unconquerable, was conquered.
Chapter 41
Yes, it was as I have said: Joan had Paris and France in her grip, and the Hundred
Years War under her heel, and the King made her open her fist and take away her
foot.
Now followed about eight months of drifting about with the King and his council, and
his gay and showy and dancing and flirting and hawking and frolicking and serenading and
dissipating Court - drifting from town to town and from castle to castle - a life which
was pleasant to us of the personal staff, but not to Joan. However, she only saw it, she didnt live it. The King did his sincerest best to make her happy, and showed
a most kind and constant anxiety in this matter. All others had to go loaded with the
chains of an exacting Court etiquette, but she was free, she was privileged. So that she
paid her duty to the King once a day and passed the pleasant word, nothing further was
required of her. Naturally, then, she made herself a hermit, and grieved the weary days
through in her own apartments, with her thoughts and devotions for company, and the
planning of now for ever unrealisable military combinations for entertainment. In fancy
she moved bodies of men from this and that and the other point, so calculating the
distances to be covered, the time required for each body, and the nature of the country to
be traversed as to have them appear in sight of each other on a given day or at a given
hour and concentrate for battle. It was her only game, her only relief from her burden of
sorrow and inaction. She played it hour after hour, as others play chess; and lost herself
in it, and so got repose for her mind and healing for her heart.
She never complained, of course. It was not her way. She was the sort that endure in
silence. But - she was a caged eagle just the same, and pined for the free air and the
alpine heights and the fierce joys of the storm.
France was full of rovers - disbanded soldiers ready for anything that might turn up.
Several times, at intervals, when Joans dull captivity grew too heavy to bear, she
was allowed to gather a troop of cavalry and make a health-restoring dash against the
enemy. These things were like a bath to her spirits.
It was like old times, there at Saint-Pierre-le-Moutier, to see her lead assault after
assault, be driven back again and again, but always rally and charge anew, all in a blaze
of eagerness and delight; till at last the tempest of missiles rained so intolerably thick
that old DAulon, who was wounded, sounded the retreat (for the King had charged him
on his head to let no harm come to Joan); and away everybody rushed after him - as he
supposed; but when he turned and looked, there were we of the staff still hammering away;
wherefore he rode back and urged her to come, saying she was mad to stay there with only a
dozen men. Her eye danced merrily, and she turned upon him, crying out -
A dozen men! name of God, I have fifty thousand, and will never budge till this
place is taken! Sound the charge!
Which he did, and over the walls we went, and the fortress was ours. Old DAulon
thought her mind was wandering; but all she meant was that she felt the might of fifty
thousand men surging in her heart. It was a fanciful expression; but, to my thinking,
truer word was never said.
Then there was the affair near Lagny, where we charged the intrenched Burgundians
through the open field four times, the last time victoriously; the best prize of it
Franquet dArras, the freebooter and pitiless scourge of the region round about.
Now and then other such affairs; and at last, away toward the end of May, 1430, we were
in the neighbourhood of Compiègne, and Joan resolved to go to the help of that place,
which was being besieged by the Duke of Burgundy.
I had been wounded lately, and was not able to ride without help; but the good Dwarf
took me on behind him, and I held on to him and was safe enough. We started at midnight,
in a sullen downpour of warm rain, and went slowly and softly and in dead silence, for we
had to slip through the enemys lines. We were challenged only once; we made no
answer, but held our breath and crept steadily along, and got through without any
accident. About three or half-past we reached Compiègne, just as the grey dawn was
breaking in the east.
Joan set to work at once, and concerted a plan with Guillaume de Flavy, captain of the
city - a plan for a sortie toward evening against the enemy, who was posted in three
bodies on the other side of the Oise, in the level plain. From our side one of the city
gates communicated with a bridge. The end of this bridge was defended on the other side of
the river by one of those fortresses called a boulevard; and this boulevard also commanded
a raised road, which stretched from its front across the plain to the village of Marguy. A
force of Burgundians occupied Marguy; another was camped at Clairoix, a couple of miles above the raised road; and a body of English was holding Venette, a mile and a half below it. A kind of bow-and-arrow arrangement, you see: the causeway the arrow, the boulevard at
the feather-end of it, Marguy at the barb, Venette at one end of the bow, Clairoix at the
other.
Joans plan was to go straight per causeway against Marguy, carry it by assault,
then turn swiftly upon Clairoix, up to the right, and capture that camp in the same way,
then face to the rear and be ready for heavy work, for the Duke of Burgundy lay behind
Clairoix with a reserve. Flavys lieutenant, with archers and the artillery of the
boulevard, was to keep the English troops from coming up from below and seizing the
causeway and cutting off Joans retreat in case she should have to make one. Also, a
fleet of covered boats was to be stationed near the boulevard as an additional help in
case a retreat should become necessary.
It was the 24th of May. At four in the afternoon Joan moved out at the head of six
hundred cavalry - on her last march in this life.
It breaks my heart. I had got myself helped up on to the walls, and from there I saw
much that happened; the rest was told me long afterwards by our two knights and other
eye-witnesses. Joan crossed the bridge, and soon left the boulevard behind her and went
skimming away over the raised road with her horsemen clattering at her heels. She had on a
brilliant silver-gilt cape over her armour, and I could see it flap and flare and rise and
fall like a little patch of white flame.
It was a bright day, and one could see far and wide over that plain. Soon we saw the
English force advancing swiftly and in handsome order, the sunlight flashing from its
arms.
Joan crashed into the Burgundians at Marguy and was repulsed. Then we saw the other
Burgundians moving down from Clairoix. Joan rallied her men and charged again, and was
again rolled back. Two assaults occupy a good deal of time - and time was precious here.
The English were approaching the road, now from Venette, but the boulevard opened fire on
them and they were checked. Joan heartened her men with inspiring words and led them to
the charge again in great style. This time she carried Marguy with a hurrah. Then she
turned at once to the right and plunged in the plain and struck the Clairoix force, which
was just arriving; then there was heavy work, and plenty of it, the two armies hurling
each other backward turn about and about, and victory inclining first to one, then to the
other. Now all of a sudden there was a panic on our side. Some say one thing caused it,
some another. Some say the cannonade made our front ranks think retreat was being cut off
by the English, some say the rear ranks got the idea that Joan was killed. Anyway our men
broke, and went flying in a wild rout for the causeway. Joan tried to rally them and face
them around, crying to them that victory was sure, but it did no good, they divided and
swept by her like a wave. Old DAulon begged her to retreat while there was yet a
chance for safety, but she refused; so he seized her horses bridle and bore her with
the wreck and ruin in spite of herself. And so along the causeway they came swarming, that
wild confusion of frenzied men and horses - and the artillery had to stop firing, of
course; consequently the English and Burgundians closed in in safety, the former in front,
the latter behind their prey. Clear to the boulevard the French were washed in this
enveloping inundation; and there, cornered in an angle formed by the flank of the
boulevard and the slope of the causeway, they bravely fought a hopeless fight, and sank
down one by one.
Flavy, watching from the city wall, ordered the gate to be closed and the drawbridge
raised. This shut Joan out.
The little personal guard around her thinned swiftly. Both of our good knights went
down disabled; Joans two brothers fell wounded; then Noël Rainguesson - all wounded
while loyally sheltering Joan from blows aimed at her. When only the Dwarf and the Paladin
were left, they would not give up, but stood their ground stoutly, a pair of steel towers
streaked and splashed with blood; and where the axe of the one fell, and the sword of the
other, an enemy gasped and died. And so fighting, and loyal to their duty to the last,
good simple souls, they came to their honourable end. Peace to their memories! they were
very dear to me.
Then there was a cheer and a rush, and Joan, still defiant, still laying about her with
her sword, was seized by her cape and dragged from her horse. She was borne away a
prisoner to the Duke of Burgundys camp, and after her followed the victorious army
roaring its joy.
The awful news started instantly on its round; from lip to lip it flew; and wherever it
came it struck the people as with a sort of paralysis; and they murmured over and over
again, as if they were talking to themselves, or in their sleep, The Maid of Orleans
taken!
. Joan of Arc a prisoner!
the Saviour of France lost to us! - and
would keep saying that over, as if they couldnt understand how it could be, or how
God could permit it, poor creatures!
You know what a city is like when it is hung from eaves to pavement with rustling
black? Then you know what Tours was like, and some other cities. But can any man tell you
what the mourning in the hearts of the peasantry of France was like? No, nobody can tell
you that; and poor dumb things, they could not have told you themselves; but it was there
- indeed yes. Why, it was the spirit of a whole nation hung with crape!
The 24th of May. We will draw down the curtain, now, upon the most strange, and
pathetic, and wonderful military drama that has been played upon the stage of the world.
Joan of Arc will march no more.
Book 3
Chapter 1
I cannot bear to dwell at great length upon the shameful history of the summer and
winter following the capture. For a while I was not much troubled, for I was expecting
every day to hear that Joan had been put to ransom, and that the King - no, not the King,
but grateful France - had come eagerly forward to pay it. By the laws of war she could not
be denied the privilege of ransom. She was not a rebel; she was a legitimately constituted
soldier, head of the armies of France by her Kings appointment, and guilty of no
crime known to military law; therefore she could not be detained upon any pretext, if
ransom were proffered.
But day after day dragged by and no ransom was offered! It seemed incredible, but it is
true. Was that reptile Tremouille busy at the Kings ear? All we know is, that the
King was silent, and made no offer and no effort in behalf of this poor girl who had done
so much for him.
But unhappily there was alacrity enough in another quarter. The news of the capture
reached Paris the day after it happened, and the glad English and Burgundians deafened the
world all the day and all the night with the clamour of their joy-bells and the thankful
thunder of their artillery; and the next day the Vicar General of the Inquisition sent a
message the Duke of Burgundy requiring the delivery of the prisoner into the hand so the
Church to be tried as an idolater.
The English had seen their opportunity, and it was the English power that was really
acting, not the Church. The Church was being used as a blind, a disguise; and for a
forcible reason: the Church was not only able to take the life of Joan of Arc, but to
blight her influence and the valour-breeding inspiration of her name, whereas the English
power could but kill her body; that would not diminish or destroy the influence of her
name; it would magnify it and make it permanent. Joan of Arc was the only power in France
that the English did not despise, the only power in France that they considered
formidable. If the Church could be brought to take her life, or to proclaim her an
idolater, a heretic, a witch, sent from Satan, not from heaven, it was believed that the
English supremacy could be at once reinstated.
The Duke of Burgundy listened - but waited. He could not doubt that the French King or
the French people would come forward presently and pay a higher price than the English. He
kept Joan a close prisoner in a strong fortress, and continued to wait, week after week.
He was a French Prince, and was at heart ashamed to sell her to the English. Yet with all
his waiting no offer came to him from the French side.
One day Joan played a cunning trick on her jailer, and not only slipped out of her
prison, but locked him up in it. But as she fled away she was seen by a sentinel, and was
caught and brought back.
Then she was sent to Beaurevoir, a stronger castle. This was early in August, and she
had been in captivity more than two months, now. Here she was shut up in the top of a
tower which was sixty feet high. She ate her heart there for another long stretch - about
three months and a half. And she was aware, all these weary five months of captivity, that
the English, under cover of the Church, were dickering for her as one would dicker for a
horse or a slave, and that France was silent, the King silent, all her friends the same.
Yes, it was pitiful.
And yet when she heard at last that Compiègne was being closely besieged and likely to
be captured, and that the enemy had declared that no inhabitant of it should escape the
massacre, not even children of seven years of age, she was in a fever at once to fly to
our rescue. So she tore her bed-clothes to strips and tied them together and descended
this frail rope in the night, and it broke and she fell and was badly bruised, and
remained three days insensible, meantime neither eating nor drinking.
And now came relief to us, led by the Count of Vendôme, and the Compiègne was saved
and the siege raised. This was a disaster to the Duke of Burgundy. He had to have money,
now. It was a good time for a new bid to be made for Joan of Arc. The English at once sent
a French Bishop - that for ever infamous Pierre Cauchon of Beauvais. He was partly
promised the Archbishopric of Rouen, which was vacant, if he should succeed. He claimed
the right to preside over Joans ecclesiastical trial because the battle-ground where
she was taken was within his diocese.
By the military usage of the time the ransom of a royal Prince was 10 000 livres of
gold, which is 61 125 francs - a fixed sum, you see. It must be accepted, when offered; it
could not be refused.
Cauchon brought the offer of this very sum from the English - a royal Princes sum
for the poor little peasant girl of Domremy. It shows in a striking way the English idea
of her formidable importance. It was accepted. For that sum Joan of Arc the Saviour of
France was sold; sold to her enemies; to the enemies of her county; enemies who had lashed
and thrashed and thumped and trounced France for a century and made a holiday sport of it;
enemies who had forgotten, years and years ago, what a Frenchmans face was like, so
used they were to seeing nothing but his back; enemies whom she had whipped, whom she had
cowed, whom she had taught to respect French valour, new-born in her nation by the breath
of her spirit; enemies who hungered for her life as being the only puissance able to stand
between English triumph and French degradation. Sold to a French priest by a French
Prince, with the French King and the French nation standing thankless by and saying
nothing.
And she - what did she say? Nothing. Not a reproach passed her lips. She was too great
for that - she was Joan of Arc; and when that is said, all is said.
As a soldier, her record was spotless. She could not be called to account for anything
under that head. A subterfuge must be found, and, as we have seen, was found. She must be
tried by priests for crimes against religion. If none could be discovered, some must be
invented. Let the miscreant Cauchon alone contrive those.
Rouen was chosen as the scene of the trial. It was in the heart of the English power;
its population had been under English dominion so many generations that they were hardly
French now, save in language. The place was strongly garrisoned. Joan was taken there near
the end of December 1430, and flung into a dungeon. Yes, and clothed in chains, that free
spirit!
Still France made no move. How do I account for this? I think there is only one way.
you will remember that whenever Joan was not at the front, the French held back and
ventured nothing; that whenever she led, they swept everything before them, so long as
they could see her white armour or her banner; that every time she fell wounded or was
reported killed - as at Compiègne - they broke in panic and fled like sheep. I argue from
this that they had undergone no real transformation as yet; that at bottom they were still
under the spell of a timorousness born of generations of unsuccess, and a lack of
confidence in each other and in their leaders born of old and bitter experience in the way
of treacheries of all sorts - for their kings had been treacherous to their great vassals
and to their generals, and these in turn were treacherous to the head of the state and to
each other. The soldiery found that they could depend utterly on Joan, and upon her alone.
With her gone, everything was gone. She was the sun that melted the frozen torrents and
set them boiling; with that sun removed, they froze again, and the army and all France
became what they had been before, mere dead corpses - that and nothing more; incapable of
thought, hope, ambition or motion.
Chapter 2
My wound gave me a great deal of trouble clear into the first part of October; then the
fresher weather renewed my life and strength. All this time there were reports drifting
about that the King was going to ransom Joan. I believed these, for I was young and had
not yet found out the littleness and meanness of our poor human race which brags about
itself so much, and thinks it is better and higher that the other animals.
In October I was well enough to go out with two sorties, and in the second one, on the
23rd, I was wounded again. My luck had turned, you see. On the night of the 25th the
besiegers decamped, and in the disorder and confusion one of their prisoners escaped and
got safe into Compiègne, and hobbled into my room as pallid and pathetic an object as you
would wish to see.
What? Alive? Noël Rainguesson!
It was indeed he. It was a most joyful meeting, that you will easily know; and also as
sad as it was joyful. We could not speak Joans name. Ones voice would have
broken down. We knew who was meant when she was mentioned; we could say she
and her, but we could not speak the name.
We talked of the personal staff. Old DAulon, wounded and a prisoner, was still
with Joan and serving her, by permission of the Duke of Burgundy. Joan was being treated
with the respect due to her rank and to her character as a prisoner of war taken in
honourable conflict. And this was continued - as we learned later - until she fell into
the hands of that bastard of Satan, Pierre Cauchon, Bishop of Beauvais.
Noël was full of noble and affectionate praises and appreciations of our old boastful
big Standard-bearer, now gone silent for ever, his real and imaginary battles all fought,
his work done, his life honourably closed and completed.
And think of his luck! burst out Noël, with his eyes full of tears.
Always the pet child of luck! See how it followed him and stayed by him, from his
first step all through, in the field or out of it; always a splendid figure in the public
eye, courted and envied everywhere; always having a chance to do fine things and always
doing them; in the beginning called the Paladin in joke, and called it afterwards in
earnest because he magnificently made the title good; and at last - supremest luck of all
- died in the field! died with his harness on; died faithful to his charge, the Standard
in his hand; died - oh, think of it - with the approving eye of Joan of Arc upon him! He
drained the cup of glory to the last drop, and went jubilant to his place blessedly spared
all part in the disaster which was to follow. What luck, what luck! And we? What was our
sin that we are still here, we who have also earned our place with the happy dead?
And presently he said:
They tore the sacred Standard from his dead hand and carried it away, their most
precious prize, after its captured owner. But they havent it now. A month ago we put
our lives upon the risk - our two knights, my fellow-prisoners, and I - and stole it, and
got it smuggled by trusty hands to Orleans, and there it is now, safe for all time in the
Treasury.
I was glad and grateful to learn that. I have seen it often since, when I have gone to
Orleans on the 8th of May, to be the petted old guest of the city and hold the first place
of honour at the banquets and in the processions - I mean since Joans brothers
passed from this life. It will still be there, sacredly guarded by French love, a thousand
years from now - yes, as long as any shred of it hangs together.
[It remained there three hundred and sixty years, and then was destroyed in
a public bonfire, together with two swords, a plumed cap, several suits of state apparel,
and other relics of the Maid, by the mob, in the time of the Revolution. Nothing which the
hand of Joan of Arc is know to have touched now remains in existence except a few
preciously guarded military and state papers which she signed, her pen being guided by a
clerk or her secretary Louis de Conte. A boulder exists from which she is known to have
mounted her horse when she was once setting out upon a campaign. Up to a quarter of a
century ago there was a single hair from her head still in existence. It was drawn through
the wax of a seal attached to the parchment of a state document. it was surreptitiously
snipped out, seal and all, by some vandal relic-hunter, and carried off. Doubtless it
still exists, but only the thief knows where. - Translator.]
Two or three weeks after this talk came the tremendous news like a thunder-clap, and we
were aghast - Joan of Arc sold to the English!
Not for a moment had we ever dreamed of such a thing. We were young, you see, and did
not know the human race, as I have said before. We had been so proud of our country, so
sure of her nobleness, her magnanimity, her gratitude. We had expected little of the King,
but of France we had expected everything. Everybody knew that in various towns patriot
priests had been marching in procession urging the people to sacrifice money, property,
everything, and buy the freedom of their heaven-sent deliverer. That the money would be
raised we had not thought of doubting.
But it was all over now, all over. It was a bitter time for us. The heavens seemed hung
with black; all cheer went out from our hearts. Was this comrade here at my bedside really
Noël Rainguesson, that light-hearted creature whose whole life was but one long joke, and
who used up more breath in laughter than in keeping his body alive? No, no; that Noël I was to see no more. This ones heart was broken. He moved grieving about, and
absently, like one in a dream, the stream of his laughter was dried at its source.
Well, that was best. It was my own mood. We were company for each other. He nursed me
patiently through the dull long weeks, and at last, in January, I was strong enough to go
about again. Then he said:
Shall we go now?
Yes.
There was no need to explain. Our hearts were in Rouen, we would carry our bodies
there. All that we cared for in this life was shut up in that fortress. We could not help
her, but it would be some solace to us to be near her, to breathe the air that she
breathed, and look daily upon the stone walls that hid her. What if we should be made
prisoners there? Well, we could but do our best, and let luck and fate decide what should
happen.
And so we stared. We could not realise the change which had come upon the country. We
seemed able to choose our own route and go wherever we pleased, unchallenged and
unmolested. When Joan of Arc was in the field, there was a sort of panic of fear
everywhere; but now that she was out of the way, fear had vanished. Nobody was troubled
about you or afraid of you, nobody was curious about you or your business, everybody was
indifferent.
We presently saw that we could take to the Seine and not weary ourselves out with land
travel. So we did it, and were carried in a boat to within a league of Rouen. Then we got
ashore; not on the hilly side but on the other, where it is as level as a floor. Nobody
could enter or leave the city without explaining himself. It was because they feared
attempts at a rescue of Joan.
We had no trouble. We stopped in the plain with a family of peasants and stayed a week,
helping them with their work for board and lodging, and making friends of them. We got
clothes like theirs, and wore them. When we had worked our way through their reserves and
gotten their confidence, we found that they secretly harboured French hearts in their
bodies. Then we came out frankly and told them everything, and found them ready to do
anything they could to help us. Our plan was soon made, and was quite simple. It was to
help them drive a flock of sheep to the market of the city. One morning early we made the
venture in a melancholy drizzle of rain, and passed through the frowning gates unmolested.
Our friends had friends living over a humble wine-shop in a quaint tall building situated
in one of the narrow lanes that run down from the cathedral to the river, and with these
they bestowed us; and the next day they smuggled our own proper clothing and other
belongings to us. The family that lodged us - the Pierrons - were French in sympathy, and
we needed to have no secrets from them.
Chapter 3
It was necessary for me to have some way to gain bread for Noël and myself; and when
the Pierrons found that I knew how to write, they applied to their confessor on my behalf,
and he got a place for me with a good priest named Manchon, who was to be the chief
recorder in the Great Trial of Joan of Arc now approaching. It was a strange position for
me - clerk to the recorder - and dangerous if my sympathies and late employment should be
found out. But there was not much danger. Manchon was at bottom friendly to Joan and would
not betray me; and my name would not, for I had discarded my surname and retained only my
given one, like a person of low degree.
I attended Manchon constantly straight along, out of January and into February, and was
often in the citadel with him - in the very fortress where Joan was imprisoned, though not
in the dungeon where she was confined, and so did not see her, of course.
Manchon told me everything that had been happening before my coming. Ever since the
purchase of Joan, Cauchon had been busy packing his jury for the destruction of the Maid -
weeks and weeks he had spent in this bad industry. The University of Paris had sent him a
number of learned and able and trusty ecclesiastics of the stripe he wanted; and he had
scraped together a clergyman of like stripe and great fame here and there and yonder,
until he was able to construct a formidable court numbering half a hundred distinguished
names. French names they were, but their interests and sympathies were English.
A great officer of the Inquisition was also sent from Paris, for the accused must be
tried by the forms of the Inquisition; but this was a brave and righteous man, and he said
squarely that this court had no power to try the case, wherefore he refused to act; and
the same honest talk was uttered by two or three others.
The Inquisitor was right. The case as here resurrected against Joan had already been
tried long ago at Poitiers, and decided in her favour. Yes, and by a higher tribunal than
this one, for at the head of it was an Archbishop - he of Rheims - Cauchons own
metropolitan. So here, you see, a lower court was impudently preparing to re-try and
re-decide a cause which had already been decided by its superior, a court of higher
authority. Imagine it! No, the case could not properly be tried again. Cauchon could not
properly preside in this new court, for more than one reason: Rouen was not in his
diocese; Joan had not been arrested in her domicile, which was still Domremy; and finally
this proposed judge was the prisoners outspoken enemy, and therefore he was
incompetent to try her. Yet all these large difficulties were gotten rid of. The
territorial Chapter of Rouen finally granted territorial letters to Cauchon - though only
after a struggle and under compulsion. Force was also applied to the Inquisitor, and he
was obliged to submit.
So, then, the little English King, by his representative, formally delivered Joan in
the hands of the court, but with this reservation: if the court failed to condemn her,
he was to have her back again!
Ah, dear, what chance was there for that forsaken and friendless child? Friendless
indeed - it is the right word. For she was in a black dungeon, with half a dozen brutal
common soldiers keeping guard night and day in the room where her cage was - for she was
in a cage; an iron cage, and chained to her bed by neck and hands and feet. Never a person
near her whom she had ever seen before; never a woman at all. Yes, this was indeed
friendlessness.
Now it was a vassal of Jean de Luxembourg who captured Joan at Compiègne, and it was
Jean who sold her to the Duke of Burgundy. Yet this very De Luxembourg was shameless
enough to go and show his face to Joan in her cage. He came with two English earls,
Warwick and Stafford. He was a poor reptile. He told her he would get her set free if she
would promise not to fight the English any more. She had been in that cage a long time
now, but not long enough to break her spirit. She retorted scornfully -
Name of God, you but mock me. I know that you have neither the power nor the will
to do it.
He insisted. Then the pride and dignity of the soldier rose in Joan, and she lifted her
chained hands and let them fall with a clash, saying -
See these! They know more than you, and can prophesy better. I know that the
English are going to kill me, for they think that when I am dead they can get the Kingdom
of France. It is not so. Though there were a hundred thousand of them they would never get
it.
This defiance infuriated Stafford, and he - now think of it - he a free, strong man,
she a chained and helpless girl - he drew his dagger and flung himself at her to stab her.
But Warwick seized him and held him back. Warwick was wise. Take her life in that way?
Send her to Heaven stainless and undisgraced? It would make her the idol of France, and
the whole nation would rise and march to victory and emancipation under the inspiration of
her spirit. No, she must be saved for another fate than that.
Well, the time was approaching for the Great Trial. For more than two months Cauchon
had been raking and scarping everywhere for any odds and ends of evidence or suspicion or
conjecture that might be made usable against Joan, and carefully suppressing all evidence
that came to hand in her favour. He had limitless ways and means and powers at his
disposal for preparing and strengthening the case for the prosecution, and he used them
all.
But Joan had no one to prepare her case for her, and she was shut up in those stone
walls and had no friend to appeal to for help. And as for witnesses, she could not call a
single one in her defence; they were all far away, under the French flag, and this was an
English court; they would have been seized and hanged if they had shown their faces at the
gates of Rouen. No, the prisoner must be the sole witness - witness for the prosecution,
witness for the defence; and with a verdict of death resolved upon before the doors were
opened for the courts first sitting.
When she learned that the court was made up of ecclesiastics in the interest of the
English she begged that in fairness an equal number of priests of the French party should
be added to these. Cauchon scoffed at her message, and would not even deign to answer it.
By the law of the Church - she being a minor under twenty-one - it was her right to
have counsel to conduct her case, advise her how to answer when questioned, and protect
her from falling into traps set by cunning devices of the prosecution. She probably did
not know that this was her right, and that she could demand it and require it, for there
was none to tell her that; but she begged for this help at any rate. Cauchon refused it.
she urged and implored, pleading her youth and her ignorance of the complexities and
intricacies of the law and of legal procedure. Cauchon refused again, and said she must
get along with her case as best she might by herself. Ah, his heart was a stone.
Cauchon prepared the proces verbal. I will simplify that by calling it the
Bill of Particulars. It was a detailed list of the charges against her, and formed the
basis of the trial. Charges? It was a list of suspicions and public rumours -
those were the words used. It was merely charged that she was suspected of having been
guilty of heresies, witchcraft, and other such offences against religion.
Now by law of the Church, a trial of that sort could not be begun until a searching
inquiry had been made into the history and character of the accused; and it was essential
that the result of this inquiry be added to the proces verbal and form a part of
it. You remember that that was the first thing they did before the trial of Poitiers. They
did it again now. An ecclesiastic was sent to Domremy. There and all about the
neighbourhood he made an exhaustive search into Joans history and character, and
came back with his verdict. It was very clear. The searcher reported that he found
Joans character to be in every way what he would like his own sisters
character to be. Just about the same report that was brought back to Poitiers, you
see. Joans was a character which could endure the minutest examination.
This verdict was a strong point for Joan, you will say. Yes, it would have
been if it could have seen the light; but Cauchon was awake, and it disappeared from the proces
verbal before the trial. People were prudent enough not to inquire what became of it.
One would imagine that Cauchon was ready to begin the trial by this time. But no, he
devised one more scheme for poor Joans destruction, and it promised to be a deadly
one.
One of the great personages picked out and sent down by the University of Paris was an
ecclesiastic named Nicolas Loyseleur. He was tall, handsome, grave, of smooth soft speech
and courteous and winning manners. There was no seeming of treachery or hypocrisy about
him, yet he was full of both. He was admitted to Joans prison by night, disguised as
a cobbler; he pretended to be from her own country; he professed to be secretly a patriot;
he revealed the fact that he was a priest. She was filled with gladness to see one from
the hills and plains that were so dear to her; happier still to look upon a priest and
disburden her heart in confession, for the offices of the Church were the bread of life,
the breath of her nostrils to her, and she had been long forced to pine for them in vain.
She opened her whole innocent heart to this creature, and in return he gave her advice
concerning her trial which could have destroyed her if her deep native wisdom had not
protected her against following it.
You will ask, what value could this scheme have, since the secrets of the confessional
are sacred and cannot be revealed? True - but suppose another person should overhear them?
That person is not bound to keep the secret. Well, that is what happened. Cauchon had
previously caused a hole to be bored through the wall; and he stood with his ear to that
hole and heard all. It is pitiful to think of these things. One wonders who they could
treat that poor child so. she had not done them any harm.
Chapter 4
On Tuesday, the 20th of February, whilst I sat at my masters work in the evening,
he came in, looking sad, and said it had been decided to begin the trial at eight
oclock the next morning, and I must get ready to assist him.
Of course I had been expecting such news every day for many days; but no matter, the
shock of it almost took my breath away and set me trembling like a leaf. I suppose that
without knowing it I had been half imagining that at the last moment something would
happen, something that would stop this fatal trial: maybe that La Hire would burst in at
the gates with his hellions at his back; maybe that God would have pity and stretch forth
His mighty hand. But now - now there was no hope.
The trial was to begin in the chapel of the fortress and would be public. So I went
sorrowing away and told Noël, so that he might be there early and secure a place. It
would give him a chance to look again upon the face which we so revered and which was so
precious to us. All the way, both going and coming, I ploughed through chattering and
rejoicing multitudes of English soldiery and English-hearted French citizens. There was no
talk but of the coming event. Many times I heard the remark, accompanied by a pitiless
laugh -
The fat Bishop has got things as he wants them at last, and says he will lead the
vile witch a merry dance and a short one.
But here and there I glimpsed compassion and distress in a face, and it was not always
a French one. English soldiers feared Joan, but they admired her for her great deeds and
her unconquerable spirit.
In the morning Manchon and I went early, yet as we approached the vast fortress we
found crowds of men already there and still others gathering. The chapel was already full
and the way barred against further admissions of unofficial persons. We took our appointed
places. Throned on high sat the president, Cauchon, Bishop of Beauvais, in his grand
robes, and before him in rows sat his robed court - fifty distinguished ecclesiastics, men
of high degree in the church, of clear-cut intellectual faces, men of deep learning,
veteran adepts in strategy and casuistry, practised setters of traps for ignorant minds
and unwary feet. When I looked around upon this army of masters of legal fence, gathered
here to find just one verdict and no other, and remembered that Joan must fight for her
good name and her life single-handed against them, I asked myself what chance an ignorant
poor country girl of nineteen could have in such an unequal conflict; and my heart sank
down low, very low. When I looked again at that obese president, puffing and wheezing
there, his great belly distending and receding with each breath, and noted his three
chins, fold above fold, and his knobby and knotty face, and his purple and splotchy
complexion, and his repulsive cauliflower nose, and his cold and malignant eyes - a brute,
every detail of him - my heart sank lower still. And when I noted that all were afraid of
this man, and shrank and fidgeted in their seats when his eye smote theirs, my last poor
ray of hope dissolved away and wholly disappeared.
There was one unoccupied seat in this place, and only one. It was over against the
wall, in view of every one. It was a little wooden bench without a back, and it stood
apart and solitary on a sort of dais. Tall men-at-arms in morion, breast-plate, and steel
gauntlets stood as stiff as their own halberds on each side of this dais, but no other
creature was near by it. A pathetic little bench to me it was, for I knew whom it was for;
and the sight of it carried my mind back to the great court of Poitiers, where Joan sat
upon one like it and calmly fought her cunning fight with the astonished doctors of the
Church and Parliament, and rose from it victorious and applauded by all, and went forth to
fill the world with the glory of her name.
What a dainty little figure she was, and how gentle and innocent, how winning and
beautiful in the fresh bloom of her seventeen years! Those were grand days. And so recent
- for she was but just nineteen now - and how much she had seen since, and what wonders
she had accomplished!
But now - oh, all was changed now. She had been languishing in dungeons, away from
light and air and the cheer of friendly faces, for nearly three quarters of a year - she,
born child of the sun, natural comrade of the birds and of all happy free creatures. She
would be weary now, and worn with this long captivity, her forces impaired; despondent,
perhaps, as knowing there was no hope. Yes, all was changed.
All this time there had been a muffled hum of conversation, and rustling of robes and
scraping of feet on the floor, a combination of dull noises which filled all the place.
Suddenly -
Produce the accused!
It made me catch my breath. My heart began to thump like a hammer. But there was
silence now - silence absolute. All those noises ceased, and it was as if they had never
been. Not a sound; the stillness grew oppressive; it was like a weight upon one. All faces
were turned towards the door; and one could properly expect that, for most of the people
there suddenly realised, no doubt, that they were about to see, in actual flesh and blood,
what had been to them before only an embodied prodigy, a word, a phrase, a world-girdling
Name.
The stillness continued. Then, far down the stone-paved corridors, one heard a vague
slow sound approaching: clank
clink
clank - Joan of Arc,
Deliverer of France, in chains!
My head swam; all things whirled and spun about me. Ah, I was realising, too.
Chapter 5
I give you my honour, now, that I am not going to distort or discolour the facts of
this miserable trial. No, I will give them to you honestly, detail by detail, just as
Manchon and I set them down daily in the official record of the court, and just as one may
read them in the printed histories. There will be only this difference: that in talking
familiarly with you I shall use my right to comment upon the proceedings and explain them
as I go along, so that you can understand them better; also I shall throw in trifles which
came under our eyes and have a certain interest for you and me, but were not important
enough to go into the official record.
[He kept his word. His account of the Great Trial will be found to be in
strict and detailed accordance with the sworn facts of history. - Translator]
To take up my story, now, where I left off. We heard the clanking of Joans chains
down the corridors; she was approaching.
Presently she appeared; a thrill swept the house, and one heard deep breaths drawn. Two
guardsmen followed her at a short distance to the rear. Her head was bowed a little, and
she moved slowly, she being weak and her irons heavy. She had on mens attire - all
black; a soft woollen stuff, intensely black, funereally black, not a speck of relieving
colour in it from her throat to the floor. A wide collar of this same black stuff lay in
radiating folds upon her shoulders and breast; the sleeves of her doublet were full, down
to the elbows, and tight thence to her manacled wrists; below the doublet, tight black
hose down to the chains on her ankles.
Half-way to her bench she stopped, just where a wide shaft of light fell slanting from
a window, and slowly lifted her face. Another thrill! - it was totally colourless, white
as snow; a face of gleaming snow set in vivid contrast upon that slender statue of sombre
unmitigated black. It was smooth and pure and girlish, beautiful beyond belief, infinitely
sad and sweet. But, dear, dear! when the challenge of those untamed eyes fell upon that
judge, and the droop vanished from her form and it straightened up soldierly and noble, my
heart leaped for joy; and I said, all is well, all is well - they have not broken her,
they have not conquered her, she is Joan of Arc still! Yes, it was plain to me, now, that
there was one spirit there which this dreaded judge could not quell nor make afraid.
She moved to her place and mounted the dais and seated herself upon her bench,
gathering her chains into her lap and nestling her little white hands there. Then she
waited in tranquil dignity, the only person there who seemed unmoved and unexcited. A
bronzed and brawny English soldier, standing at martial ease in the front rank of the
citizen spectators, did now most gallantly and respectfully put up his great hand and give
her the military salute; and she, smiling friendly, put up hers and returned it; whereat
there was a sympathetic little break of applause, which the judge sternly silenced.
Now the memorable inquisition called in history the Great Trial began. Fifty experts
against a novice, and no one to help the novice!
The judge summarised the circumstances of the case and the public reports and
suspicions upon which it was based; then he required Joan to kneel and make oath that she
would answer with exact truthfulness to all questions asked her.
Joans mind was not asleep. It suspected that dangerous possibilities might lie
hidden under this apparently fair and reasonable demand. She answered with the simplicity
which so often spoiled the enemys best-laid plans in the trial at Poitiers, and
said:
No; for I do not know what you are going to ask me; you might ask of me things
which I would not tell you.
This incensed the court, and brought out a brisk flurry of angry exclamations. Joan was
not disturbed. Cauchon raised his voice and began to speak in the midst of this noise, but
he was so angry that he could hardly get his words out. He said -
With the divine assistance of our Lord we require you to expedite these
proceedings for the welfare of your conscience. Swear, with your hands upon the Gospels,
that you will answer true to the questions which shall be asked you! and he brought
down his fat hand with a crash upon his official table.
Joan said with composure -
As concerning my father and mother, and the faith, and what things I have done
since my coming into France, I will gladly answer; but as regards the revelations which I
have received from God, my Voices have forbidden me to confide them to any save my King
-
Here there was another angry outburst of threats and expletives, and much movement and
confusion; so she had to stop, and wait for the noise to subside; then her waxen face
flushed a little and she straightened up and fixed her eye on the judge, and finished her
sentence in a voice that had the old ring in it -
- and I will never reveal these things though you cut my head off!
Well, maybe you know what a deliberative body of Frenchmen is like. The judge and half
the court were on their feet in a moment, and all shaking their fists at the prisoner and
all storming and vituperating at once, so that you could hardly hear yourself think. They
kept this up several minutes; and because Joan sat untroubled and indifferent, they grew
madder and noisier all the time. Once she said, with a fleeting trace of the old-time
mischief in her eye and manner -
Prithee speak one at a time, fair lords, then I will answer all of you.
At the end of three whole hours of furious debating over the oath, the situation had
not changed a jot. The Bishop was still requiring an unmodified oath, Joan was refusing
for the twentieth time to take any except the one which she had herself proposed. There
was a physical change apparent, but it was confined to court and judge; they were hoarse,
droopy, exhausted by their long frenzy, and had a sort of haggard look in their faces,
poor men, whereas Joan was still placid and reposeful and did not seem noticeably tired.
The noise quieted down; there was a waiting pause of some moments duration. Then
the judge surrendered to the prisoner, and with bitterness in his voice told her to take
the oath after her own fashion. Joan sunk at once to her knees; and as she laid her hands
upon the Gospels, that big English soldier set free his mind:
By God if she were but English, she were not in this place another half a
second!
It was the soldier in him responding to the soldier in her. But what a stinging rebuke
it was, what an arraignment of her French character and French loyalty! Would that he
could have uttered just that one phrase in the hearing of Orleans! I know that that
grateful city, that adoring city, would have risen, to the last man and the last woman,
and marched upon Rouen. Some speeches - speeches that shame a man and humble him - burn
themselves into the memory and remain there. That one is burnt into mine.
After Joan had made oath, Cauchon asked her her name, and where she was born, and some
questions about her family; also what her age was. She answered these. Then he asked her
how much education she had.
I have learned from my mother the Pater Noster, the Ave Maria, and the Belief.
All that I know was taught me by my mother.
Questions of this unessential sort dribbled on for a considerable time. Everybody was
tired out by now, except Joan. The tribunal prepared to rise. At this point Cauchon
forbade Joan to try to escape from prison, upon pain of being held guilty of the crime of
heresy - singular logic! She answered simply -
I am not bound by this prohibition. If I could escape I would not reproach
myself, for I have given no promise, and I shall not.
Then she complained of the burden of her chains, and asked that they might be removed,
for she was strongly guarded in that dungeon and there was no need of them. But the Bishop
refused, and reminded her that she had broken out of prison twice before. Joan of Arc was
too proud to insist. She only said, as she rose to go with the guard -
It is true I have wanted to escape, and I do want to escape. Then she
added, in a way that would touch the pity of anybody, I think, It is the right of
every prisoner.
And so she went from the place in the midst of an impressive stillness, which made the
sharper and more distressful to me the clank of those pathetic chains.
What presence of mind she had! One could never surprise her out of it. She saw Noël
and me there when she first took her seat on her bench; and we flushed to the forehead
with excitement and emotion, but her face showed nothing, betrayed nothing. Her eyes
sought us fifty times that day, but they passed on and there was never any ray of
recognition in them. Another would have started upon seeing us, and then - why then there
could have been trouble for us, of course.
We walked slowly home together, each busy with his own grief and saying not a word.
Chapter 6
That night Manchon told me that all through the days proceedings Cauchon had had
some clerks concealed in the embrasure of a window who were to make a special report
garbling Joans answers and twisting them from their right meaning. Ah, that was
surely the cruellest man and the most shameless that has lived in this world. But his
scheme failed. Those clerks had human hearts in them, and their base work revolted them,
and they turned to and boldly made a straight report, whereupon Cauchon cursed them and
ordered them out of his presence with a threat of drowning, which was his favourite and
most frequent menace. The matter had gotten abroad and was making great and unpleasant
talk, and Cauchon would not try to repeat this shabby game right away. It comforted me to
hear that.
When we arrived at the citadel next morning, we found that a change had been made. The
chapel had been found too small. The court had now removed to a noble chamber situated at
the end of the great hall of the castle. The number of judges was increased to sixty-two -
one ignorant girl against such odds, and none to help her.
The prisoner was brought in. She was as white as ever, but she was looking no whit
worse than she looked when she had first appeared the day before. Isnt it a strange
thing? Yesterday she had sat five hours on that backless bench with her chains in her lap,
baited, badgered, persecuted by that unholy crew, without even the refreshment of a cup of
water - for she was never offered anything, and if I have made you know her by this time
you will know without my telling you that she was not a person likely to ask favours of
those people. And she had spent the night caged in her wintry dungeon with her chains upon
her; yet here she was, as I say, collected, unworn, and ready for the conflict; yes, and
the only person there who showed no signs of the wear and worry of yesterday. And her eyes
- ah, you should have seen them and broken your hearts. Have you seen that veiled deep
glow, that pathetic hurt dignity, that unsubdued and unsuduable spirit that burns and
smoulders in the eye of a caged eagle and makes you feel mean and shabby under the burden
of its mute reproach? Her eyes were like that. How capable they were, and how wonderful!
Yes, at all times and in all circumstances they could express as by print every shade of
the wide range of her moods. In them were hidden floods of gay sunshine, the softest and
peacefullest twilights, and devastating storms and lightnings. Not in this world have
there been others that were comparable to them. Such is my opinion, and none that had the
privilege to see them would say otherwise than this which I have said concerning them.
The séance began. And how did it begin, should you think? Exactly as it began before -
with that same tedious thing which had been settled once, after so much wrangling. The
Bishop opened thus:
You are required, now, to take the oath pure and simple, to answer truly all
questions asked you.
Joan replied placidly -
I have made oath yesterday, my lord; let that suffice.
The Bishop insisted and insisted, with rising temper; Joan but shook her head and
remained silent. At last she said -
I made oath yesterday; it is sufficient. Then she sighed and said, Of
a truth, you do burden me too much.
The Bishop still insisted, still commanded, but he could not move her. At last he gave
it up and turned her over for the days inquest to an old hand at tricks and traps
and deceptive plausibilities - Beaupere, a doctor of theology. Now notice the form of this
sleek strategists first remark - flung out in an easy, off-hand way that would have
thrown any unwatchful person off his guard -
Now, Joan, the matter is very simple; just speak up and frankly and truly answer
the questions which I am going to ask you, as you have sworn to do.
It was a failure. Joan was not asleep. She saw the artifice. She said -
No. You could ask me things which I could not tell you - and would not.
Then reflecting upon how profane and out of character it was for these ministers of God to
be prying into matter which had proceeded from His hands under the awful seal of His
secrecy, she added, with a warning note in her tone, If you were well informed
concerning me you would wish me out of your hands. I have done nothing but by
revelation.
Beaupere changed his attack, and began an approach from another quarter. He would slip
upon her, you see, under cover of innocent and unimportant questions.
Did you learn any trade at home?
Yes, to sew and to spin. Then the invincible soldier, victor of Patay,
conqueror of the lion Talbot, deliverer of Orleans, restorer of a kings crown,
commander-in-chief of a nation's armies, straightened herself proudly up, gave her head a
little toss, and said with naïve complacency, And when it comes to that, I am not
afraid to be matched against any woman in Rouen!
The crowd of spectators broke out with applause - which pleased Joan - and there was
many a friendly and petting smile to be seen. But Cauchon stormed at the people and warned
them to keep still and mind their manners.
Beaupere asked other questions. Then -
Had you other occupations at home?
Yes. I helped my mother in the household work and went to the pastures with the
sheep and the cattle.
Her voice trembled a little, but one could hardly notice it. As for me, it brought
those old enchanted days flooding back to me, and I could not see what I was writing for a
little while.
Beaupere cautiously edged along up with other questions toward the forbidden ground,
and finally repeated a question which she had refused to answer a little while back - as
to whether she had received the Eucharist in those days at other festivals than that of
Easter. Joan merely said -
Passez outre. Or, as one might say, Pass on to matters which
you are privileged to pry into.
I heard a member of the court say to a neighbour -
As a rule, witnesses are but dull creatures, and an easy prey - yes, and easily
embarrassed, easily frightened - but truly one can neither scare this child nor find her
dozing.
Presently the house pricked up its ears and began to listen eagerly, for Beaupere began
to touch upon Joans Voices, a matter of consuming interest and curiosity to
everybody. His purpose was to trick her into heedless sayings that could indicate that the
Voices had sometimes given her evil advice - hence that they had come from Satan, you see.
To have dealings with the devil - well, that would send her to the stake in brief order,
and that was the deliberate end and aim of this trial.
When did you first hear these Voices?
I was thirteen when I first heard a Voice coming from God to help me to live
well. I was frightened. It came at mid-day, in my fathers garden in the
summer.
Had you been fasting?
Yes.
The day before?
No.
From what direction did it come?
From the right - from toward the church.
Did it come with a bright light?
Oh, indeed yes. It was brilliant. When I came into France I often heard the
Voices very loud.
What did the Voices sound like?
It was a noble Voice, and I thought it was sent to me from God. The third time I
heard it I recognised it as being an angels.
You could understand it?
Quite easily. It was always clear.
What advice did it give you as to the salvation of your soul?
It told me to live rightly and be regular in attendance upon the services of the
Church. And it told me that I must go to France.
In what species of form did the Voice appear?
Joan looked suspiciously at the priest a moment, then said, tranquilly -
As to that I will not tell you.
Did the Voice seek you often?
Yes. Twice or three times a week, saying, "Leave your village and go to
France."
'Did your father know about your departure?
No. The voice said, "Go to France"; therefore I could not abide at home
any longer.
What else did it say?
That I should raise the siege of Orleans.
Was that all?
No, I was to go to Vaucouleurs, and Robert de Baudricourt would give me soldiers
to go with me to France; and I answered, saying that I was a poor girl who did not know
how to ride, neither how to fight.
Then she told how she was baulked and interrupted at Vaucouleurs, but finally got her
soldiers, and began her march.
How were you dressed?
The court of Poitiers had distinctly decided and decreed that as God had appointed her
to do a mans work, it was meet and no scandal to religion that she should dress as a
man; but no matter, this court was ready to use any and all weapons against Joan, even
broken and discredited ones, and much was going to be made of this one before this trial
should end.
I wore a mans dress, also a sword which Robert de Baudricourt gave me, but
no other weapon.
Who was it that advised you to wear the dress of a man?
Joan was suspicious again. She would not answer.
The question was repeated.
She refused again.
Answer. It is a command!
Passez outre, was all she said.
So Beaupere gave up the matter for the present.
What did Baudricourt say to you when you left?
He made them that were to go with me promise to take charge of me, and to me he
said, "Go, and let happen what may!" (Advienne que pourra!)
After a good deal of questioning upon other matters she was asked again about her
attire. She said it was necessary for her to dress as a man.
Did your Voice advise it?
Joan merely answered placidly:
I believe my Voice gave me good advice.
It was all that could be got of her, so the questions wandered to other matters, and
finally to her first meeting with the King at Chinon. She said she chose out the King, who
was unknown to her, by the revelation of her Voices. All that happened at that time was
gone over. Finally -
Do you still hear those Voices?
They come to me every day.
What do you ask of them?
I have never asked of them any recompense but the salvation of my soul.
Did the Voice always urge you to follow the army?
He is creeping upon her again. She answered:
It required me to remain behind at St-Denis. I would have obeyed if I had been
free, but I was helpless by my wound, and the knights carried me away by force.
When were you wounded?
I was wounded in the moat before Pairs, in the assault.
The next question reveals what Beaupere had been leading up to:
Was it a feast day?
You see? The suggestion is that a voice coming from God would hardly advise or permit
the violation, by war and bloodshed, of a sacred day.
Joan was troubled a moment, then she answered: Yes, it was a feast day.
Now, then, tell me this: did you hold it right to make the attack on such a
day?
This was a shot which might make the first breach in a wall which had suffered no
damage thus far. There was immediate silence in the court and intense expectancy
noticeable all about. But Joan disappointed the house. She merely made a slight little
motion with her hand, as when one brushes away a fly, and said with reposeful
indifference:
Passez outre.
Smiles danced for a moment in some of the sternest faces there, and several even
laughed outright. The trap had been long and laboriously prepared; it fell, and was empty.
The court rose. It had sat for hours, and was cruelly fatigued. Most of the time had
been taken up with apparently idle and purposeless inquiries about the Chinon events, the
exiled Duke of Orleans, Joans first proclamation, and so on; but all this seemingly
random stuff had really been sown thick with traps. But Joan had fortunately escaped them
all, some by the protecting luck which attends upon ignorance and innocence, some by happy
accident, the others by force of her best and surest helper, the clear vision and
lightning intuitions of her extraordinary mind.
Now, then, this daily baiting and badgering of this friendless girl, a captive in
chains, was to continue a long, long time - dignified sport, a kennel of mastiffs and
blood-hounds harassing a kitten! - and I may as well tell you, upon sworn testimony, what
it was like from the first day to the last. When poor Joan had been in her grave a quarter
of a century, the Pope called together that great court which cleared her illustrious name
from every spot and stain, and laid upon the verdict and conduct of our Rouen tribunal the
blight of its everlasting execrations. Manchon and several of the judges who had been
members of our court were among the witnesses who appeared before that Tribunal of
Rehabilitation. Recalling these miserable proceedings which I have been telling you about,
Manchon testified thus: - here you have it, all in fair print in the official history:
When Joan spoke of her apparitions she was interrupted at almost every word. They
wearied her with long and multiplied interrogatories upon all sorts of things. Almost
every day the interrogations of the morning lasted three or four hours; then from
these morning interrogatories they exacted the particularly difficult and subtle points,
and these served as material for the afternoon interrogatories, which lasted two or
three hours. Moment by moment they skipped from one subject to another; yet in spite
of this she always responded with an astonishing wisdom and memory. She often
corrected the judges, saying, But I have already answered that once before - ask the
recorder, referring them to me.
And here is the testimony of one of Joans judges. Remember, these witnesses are
not talking about two or three days, they are talking about a tedious long procession of days:
They asked her profound questions, but she extricated herself quite well. Sometimes the
questioners changed suddenly and passed to another subject to see if she would not
contradict herself. They burdened her with long interrogations of two or three hours,
from which the judges themselves went forth fatigued. From the snares with which
she was beset the expertest man in the world could not have extricated himself but
with difficulty. She gave her responses with great prudence; indeed, to such a degree
that during three weeks I believed she was inspired.
Ah, had she a mind such as I have described? You see what the priests say under oath -
picked men, men chosen for their places in that terrible court on account of their
learning, their experience, their keen and practised intellects and their strong bias
against the prisoner. They make that poor young country girl out the match, and more than
the match, of the sixty-two trained adepts. Isnt it so? They from the University of
Paris, she from the sheepfold and the cow-stable! Ah, yes, she was great, she was
wonderful. It took six thousand years to produce her; her like will not be seen in the
earth again in fifty thousand. Such is my opinion.
Chapter 7
The third meeting of the court was in that same spacious chamber, next day, 24th of
February.
How did it begin work? In just the same old way. When the preparations were ended, the
robed sixty-two, massed in their chairs and the guards and order-keepers distributed to
their stations, Cauchon spoke from his throne and commanded Joan to lay her hands upon the
Gospels and swear to tell the truth concerning everything asked her!
Joans eyes kindled, and she rose; rose and stood, fine and noble, and faced
toward the bishop and said -
Take care what you do, my lord, you who are my judge, for you take a terrible
responsibility on yourself and you presume too far.
It made a great stir, and Cauchon burst out upon her with an awful threat - the threat
of instant condemnation unless she obeyed. That made the very bones in my body turn cold,
and I saw cheeks about me blanch - for it meant fire and the stake! But Joan, still
standing, answered him back, proud and undismayed -
Not all the clergy in Paris and Rouen could condemn me, lacking the right!
This made a great tumult, and part of it was applause from the spectators. Joan resumed
her seat. The Bishop still insisted. Joan said -
I have already made oath. It is enough.
The Bishop shouted -
In refusing to swear, you place yourself under suspicion!
Let be. I have sworn already. It is enough.
The Bishop continued to insist. Joan answered that she would tell what she knew -
but not all that she knew.
The Bishop plagued her straight along, till at last she said, in a weary tone -
I came from God; I have nothing more to do here. Return me to God, from whom I
came.
It was piteous to hear; it was the same as saying, You only want my life; take it
and let me be at peace.
The Bishop stormed out again -
Once more I command you to -
Joan cut in with a nonchalant Passez outre, and Cauchon retired
from the struggle; but he retired with some credit this time, for he offered a compromise,
and Joan, always clear-headed, saw protection for herself in it and promptly and willingly
accepted it. She was to swear to tell the truth as touching the matters set down in
the proces = verbal. They could not sail her outside of definite limits
now; her course was over a charted sea henceforth. The Bishop had granted more that he had
intended, and more than he would honestly try to abide by.
By command, Beaupere resumed his examination of the accused. It being Lent, there might
be a chance to catch her neglecting some detail of her religious duties. I could have told
him he would fail there. Why, religion was her life!
Since when have you eaten or drunk?
If the least thing had passed her lips in the nature of sustenance, neither her youth
not the fact that she was being half starved in her prison could save her from dangerous
suspicion of contempt for the commandments of the Church.
I have done neither since yesterday at noon.
The priest shifted to the Voices again.
When have you heard your Voice?
Yesterday and today.
At what time?
Yesterday it was in the morning.
What were you doing then?
I was asleep and it woke me.
By touching your arm?
No, without touching me.
Did you thank it? Did you kneel?
He had Satan in his mind, you see; and was hoping, perhaps, that by-and-by it could be
shown that she had rendered homage to the arch-enemy of God and man.
Yes, I thanked it; and knelt in my bed where I was chained, and joined my hands
and begged it to implore Gods help for me so that I might have light and instruction
as touching the answers I should give here.
Then what did the Voice say?
It told me to answer boldly, and God would help me. Then she turned toward
Cauchon and said, You say that you are my judge; now I tell you again, take care
what you do, for in truth I am sent of God and you are putting yourself in great
danger.
Beaupere asked her if the Voice's counsels were not fickle and variable.
No. It never contradicts itself. This very day it has told me again to answer
boldly.
Has it forbidden you to answer only part of what is asked you?
I will tell you nothing as to that. I have revelations touching the King my
master, and those I will not tell you. Then she was stirred by a great emotion, and
the tears sprang to her eyes and she spoke out as with strong conviction, saying -
I believe wholly - as wholly as I believe the Christian faith and that God has
redeemed us from the fires of hell, that God speaks to me by that Voice!
Being questioned further concerning the Voice, she said she was not at liberty to tell
all she knew.
Do you think God would be displeased at your telling the whole truth?
The Voice has commanded me to tell the King certain things, and not you - and
some very lately - even last night; things which I would he knew. He would be more easy at
his dinner.
Why doesnt the Voice speak to the King itself, as it did when you were with
him? Would it not if you asked it?
I do not know if it be the wish of God. She was pensive a moment or two,
busy with her thoughts and far away, no doubt; then she added a remark in which Beaupere,
always watchful, always alert, detected a possible opening - a chance to set a trap. Do
you think he jumped at it instantly, betraying the joy he had in his find, as a young hand
at craft and artifice would do? No, oh no, you could not tell that he had noticed the
remark at all. He slid indifferently away from it at once, and began to ask idle questions
about other things, so as to slip around and spring on it from behind, so to speak:
tedious and empty questions as to whether the Voice had told her she would escape from
this prison; and if it had furnished answers to be used by her in todays s=E9ance;
if it was accompanied with a glory of light; if it had eyes, &c. That risky remark of
Joans was this:
Without the Grace of God I could do nothing.
The court saw the priests game, and watched his play with a cruel eagerness. Poor
Joan was grown dreamy and absent; possibly she was tired. Her life was in imminent danger,
and she did not suspect it. The time was ripe now, and Beaupere quietly and stealthily
sprung his trap:
Are you in a state of Grace?
Ah, we had two or three honourable brave men in that pack of judges; and Jean Lefevre
was one of them. He sprang to his feet and cried out:
It is a terrible question! The accused is not obliged to answer it!
Cauchon's face flushed black with anger to see this plank flung to the perishing child,
and he shouted:
Silence! and take your seat. The accused will answer the question!
There was no hope, no way out of the dilemma; for whether she said yes or whether she
said no, it would be all the same - a disastrous answer, for the Scriptures had said one cannot
know this thing. Think what hard hearts they were to set this fatal snare for that
ignorant young girl and be proud of such work and happy in it. It was a miserable moment
for me while we waited; it seemed a year. All the house showed excitement; and mainly it
was glad excitement. Joan looked out upon these hungering faces with innocent untroubled
eyes, and then humbly and gently she brought out that immortal answer which brushed the
formidable snare away as it had been but a cobweb:
If I be not in a state of Grace, I pray God place me in it; if I be in it, I
pray God to keep me so.
Ah, you will never see an effect like that; no, not while you live. For a space there
was the silence of the grave. Men looked wondering into each others faces, and some
were awed and crossed themselves; and I heard Lefevre mutter -
It was beyond the wisdom of man to devise that answer. = Whence come
this childs amazing inspirations?
Beaupere presently took up his work again, but the humiliation of his defeat weighed
upon him, and he made but a rambling and dreary business of it, he not being able to put
any heart in it.
He asked Joan a thousand questions about her childhood and about the oak wood, and the
fairies, and the childrens games and romps under our dear Arbre F=E9e de
Bourlemont, and this stirring up old memories broke her voice and made her cry a
little, but she bore up as well as she could, and answered everything.
Then the priest finished by touching again upon the matter of her apparel - a matter
which was never to be lost sight of in this still-hunt for this innocent creatures
life, but kept always hanging over her a menace charged with mournful possibilities:
Would you like a womans dress?
Indeed you, if I may go out from this prison - but here, no.
Chapter 8
The court met next on Monday the 27th. Would you believe it? The Bishop ignored the
contract limiting the examination to matters set down in the proces verbal and
again commanded Joan to take the oath without reservations. She said -
You should be content; I have sworn enough.
She stood her ground, and Cauchon had to yield.
The examination was resumed, concerning Joans Voices.
You have said that you recognised them as being the voices of angels the third
time you heard them. What angels were they?
St Catherine and St Marguerite.
How did you know that it was those two saints? How could you tell the one from
the other?
I know it was they; and I know how to distinguish them.
By what sign?
By their manner of saluting me. I have been these seven years under their
direction, and I knew who they were because they told me.
Whose was the first Voice that came to you when you were thirteen years
old?
It was the Voice of St Michael. I saw him before my eyes; and he was not alone,
but attended by a cloud of angels.
Did you see the archangel and the attendant angels in the body, or in the
spirit?
I saw them with the eyes of my body, just as I see you; and when they went away I
cried because they did not take me with them.
It made me see that awful shadow again that fell dazzling white upon her that day under lArbre Fée de Bourlemont, and it made me shiver again, though it was so
long ago. It was really not very long gone by, but it seemed so, because so much had
happened since.
In what shape and form did St Michael appear?
As to that I have not received permission to speak.
What did the archangel say to you that first time?
I cannot answer you today.
Meaning, I think, that she would have to get permission of her Voices first.
Presently, after some more questions as to the revelations which had been conveyed
through her to the King, she complained of the unnecessity of all this, and said -
I will say again, as I have said before, many times in these sittings, that I
answered all questions of this sort before the court at Poitiers, and I would that you
would bring here the record of that court and read from that. Prithee send for that
book.
There was no answer. It was a subject that had to be got around and put aside. That
book had wisely been gotten out of the way, for it contained things which would be very
awkward here. Among them was a decision that Joans mission was from God, whereas it
was the intention of this inferior court to show that it was from the devil; also a
decision permitting Joan to wear male attire, whereas it was the purpose of this court to
make male attire do hurtful work against her.
How was it that you were moved to come into France - by your own desire?
Yes; and by command of God. But that it was His will I would not have come. I
would sooner have had my body torn in sunder by horses than come, lacking that.
Beaupere shifted once more to the matter of the male attire now, and proceeded to make
a solemn talk about it. That tried Joans patience; and presently she interrupted and
said -
It is a trifling thing and of no consequence. And I did not put it on by counsel
of any man, but by command of God.
Robert de Baudricourt did not order you to wear it?
No.
Do you think you did well in taking the dress of a man?
I did well to do whatsoever thing God commanded me to do.
But in this particular case do you think you did well in taking the dress of a
man?
I have done nothing but by command of God.
Beaupere made various attempts to lead her into contradictions of herself; also to put
her words and acts in disaccord with the Scriptures. But it was lost time. He did not
succeed. He returned to her visions, the light which shone about them, her relations with
the King, and so on.
Was there an angel above the Kings head the first time you saw him?
By the Blessed Mary! -
She forced her impatience down, and finished her sentence with tranquillity: If
there was one I did not see it.
Was there light?
There were more than three hundred soldiers there, and five hundred torches,
without taking account of spiritual light.
What made the King believe in the revelations which you brought him?
He had signs; also the counsel of the clergy.
What revelations were made to the King?
You will not get that out of me this year. Presently she added:
During three weeks I was questioned by the clergy at Chinon and Poitiers. The King
had a sign before he would believe; and the clergy were of opinion that my acts were good
and not evil.
The subject was dropped now for a while, and Beaupere took up the matter of the
miraculous sword of Fierbois to see if he could not find a chance there to fix the crime
of sorcery upon Joan.
How did you know that there was an ancient sword buried in the ground under the
rear of the altar of the church of St Catherine of Fierbois?
Joan had no concealments to make as to this:
I knew the sword was there because my Voices told me so; and I sent to ask that
it be given to me to carry in the wars. It seemed to me that it was not very deep in the
ground. The clergy of the church caused it to be sought for and dug up; and they polished
it, and the rust fell easily off from it.
Were you wearing it when you were taken in battle at Compiègne?
No. But I wore it constantly until I left St-Denis after the attack upon
Paris.
This sword, so mysteriously discovered, and so long and so constantly victorious, was
suspect of being under the protection of enchantment.
Was that sword blest? What blessing had been invoked upon it?
None. I loved it because it was found in the church of St Catherine, for I loved
that church very dearly.
She loved it because it had been built in honour of one of her angels.
Didnt you lay it upon the altar, to the end that it might be lucky?
(The altar of St-Denis.)
No.
Didnt you pray that it might be made lucky?
Truly it were no harm to wish that my harness might be fortunate.
Then it was not that sword which you wore in the field of Compiègne? What sword
did you wear there?
The sword of the Burgundian Franquet dArras, whom I took prisoner in the
engagement at Lagny. I kept it because it was a good war-sword - good to lay on stout
thumps and blows with.
Shed said that quite simply; and the contrast between her delicate little self
and the grim soldier-words which she dropped with such easy familiarity from her lips made
many spectators smile.
What is become of the other sword? Where is it now?
Is that in the proces verbal?
Beaupere did not answer.
Which do you love best, your banner or your sword?
Her eye lighted gladly at the mention of her banner, and she cried out -
I love my banner best - oh, forty times more than the sword! Sometimes I carried
it myself when I charged the enemy, to avoid killing any one. Then she added,
naïvely, and with again that curious contrast between her girlish little personality and
her subject, I have never killed any one.
It made a great many smile; and no wonder, when you consider what a gentle and innocent
little thing she looked. One could hardly believe she had ever seen men slaughtered, she
looked so little fitted for such things.
In the final assault at Orleans did you tell your soldiers that the arrows shot
by the enemy and the stones discharged from the catapults and cannon would not strike any
one but you?
No. And the proof is, that more than a hundred of my men were struck. I told them
to have no doubts and no fears; that they would raise the siege. I was wounded in the neck
by an arrow in the assault upon the bastille that commanded the bridge, but St Catherine
comforted me, and I was cured in fifteen days without having to quit the saddle and leave
my work.
Did you know that you were going to be wounded?
Yes; and I had told it to the King beforehand. I had it from my Voices.
When you took Jargeau, why did you not put its commandant to ransom?
I offered him leave to go out unhurt from the place with all his garrison; and if
he would not I would take it by storm.
And you did, I believe?
Yes.
Had your Voices counselled you to take it by storm?
As to that I do not remember.
Thus closed a weary long sitting, without result. Every device that could be contrived
to trap Joan into wrong thinking, wrong doing, or disloyalty to the Church, or sinfulness
as a little child at home or later had been tried, and none of them had succeeded. She had
come unscathed through the ordeal.
Was the court discouraged? No. Naturally it was very much surprised, very much
astonished, to find its work baffling and difficult instead of simple and easy, but it had
powerful allies in the shape of hunger, cold, fatigue, persecution, deception, and
treachery; and opposed to this array nothing but a defenceless and ignorant girl who must
some time or other surrender to bodily and mental exhaustion or get caught in one of the
thousand traps set for her.
And had the court made no progress during these seemingly resultless sittings? Yes. It
had been feeling its way, groping here, groping there, and found one or two vague trails
which might freshen by-and-by and lead to something. The male attire, for instance, and
the visions and Voices. Of course no one doubted that she had seen supernatural beings and
been spoken to and advised by them. And of course no one doubted that by supernatural help
miracles had been done by Joan, such as choosing out the King in a crowd when she had
never seen him before, and her discovery of the sword buried under the altar. It would
have been foolish to doubt these things, for we all know that the air is full of devils
and angels that are visible to traffickers in magic on the one hand and to the stainlessly
holy on the other; but what many and perhaps most did doubt was, that Joans visions,
voices, and miracles came from God. It was hoped that in time they could be proven to have
been of satanic origin. Therefore, as you see, the courts persistent fashion of
coming back to that subject every little while and spooking around it and prying into it
was not to pass the time - it had a strictly business end in view.
Chapter 9
The next sitting opened on Thursday the first of March. Fifty-eight judges present -
the others resting.
As usual, Joan was required to take an oath without reservations. She showed no temper
this time. She considered herself well buttressed by the proces verbal compromise
which Cauchon was so anxious to repudiate and creep out of, so she merely refused,
distinctly and decidedly; and added, in a spirit of fairness and candour-
But as to matters set down in the proces verbal, I will freely tell the
whole truth - yes, as freely and fully as if I were before the Pope.
Here was a chance! We had two or three Popes, then; only one of them could be the true
Pope, of course. Everybody judiciously shirked the question of which was the true
Pope and refrained from naming him, it being clearly dangerous to go into particulars in
this matter. Here was an opportunity to trick an unadvised girl into bringing herself into
peril, and the unfair judge lost no time in taking advantage of it. He asked, in a
plausibly indolent and absent way -
Which one do you consider to be the true Pope?
The house took an attitude of deep attention, and so waited to hear the answer and see
the prey walk into the trap. But when the answer came it covered the judge with confusion,
and you could see many people covertly chuckling. For Joan asked in a voice and manner
which almost deceived even me, so innocent it seemed -
Are there two?
One of the ablest priests in that body and one of the beast swearers there, spoke right
out so that half the house heard him, and said -
'By God it was a master stroke!
As soon as the judge was better of his embarrassment he came back to the charge, but
was prudent and passed by Joans question -
Is it true that you received a letter from the Count of Armagnac asking you which
of the three Popes he ought to obey?
Yes, and answered it.
Copies of both letters were produced and read. Joan said that hers had not been quite
strictly copied. She said she had received the Counts letter when she was just
mounting her horse; and added -
So, in dictating a word or two of reply I said I would try to answer him from
Paris or somewhere where I could be at rest.
She was asked again which Pope she considered the right one.
I was not able to instruct the Count of Armagnac as to which one he ought to
obey; then she added, with a frank fearlessness which sounded fresh and wholesome in
that den of trimmers and shufflers, but as for me, I hold that we are bound to obey
our Lord the Pope who is at Rome.
The matter was dropped. Then they produced and read a copy of Joans first effort
at dictating - her proclamation summoning the English to retire from the siege of Orleans
and vacate France - truly a great and fine production for an unpractised girl of
seventeen.
Do you acknowledge as you own the document which has just been read?
'Yes, except that there are errors in it - words which make me give myself too much
importance. I saw that was coming; I was troubled and ashamed. For instance, I
did not say, "Deliver up to the Maid" (rendez a la Pucelle); I said,
"Deliver up to the King" (rendez au Roi); and I did not call myself
"Commander-in-Chief" (chef de guerre). Al those are words which my
secretary substituted; or mayhap he misheard me or forgot what I said.
She did not look at me when she said it; she spared me that embarrassment. I
hadnt misheard her at all, and hadnt forgotten. I changed her language
purposely, for she was Commander-in-Chief and entitled to call herself so, and it
was becoming and proper too; and who was going to surrender anything to the King? - at
that time a stick, a cipher? If any surrendering was done, it would be to the noble Maid
of Vaucouleurs, already famed and formidable though she had not yet struck a blow.
Ah, there would have been a fine and disagreeable episode (for me) there, if that
pitiless court had discovered that the very scribbler of that piece of dictation,
secretary to Joan of Arc, was present - and not only present, but helping to build the
record; and not only that, but destined at a far distant day to testify against lies and
perversions smuggled into it by Cauchon and deliver them over to eternal infamy!
Do you acknowledge that you dictated this proclamation?
I do.
Have you repented of it? Do you retract it?
Ah, then she was indignant!
No! Not even these chains - and she shook them - not even these
chains can chill the hopes that I uttered there. And more! - she rose, and stood a
moment with a divine strange light kindling in her face, then her words burst forth as in
a flood - I warn you now that before seven years a disaster will smite the English,
oh, many fold greater than the fall of Orleans! and -
Silence! Sit down!
- and then, soon after, they will lose all France!
Now consider these things. The French armies no longer existed. The French cause was
standing still, our King was standing still, there was no hint that by-and-by the
Constable Richemont would come forward and take up the great work of Joan of Arc and
finish it. In face of all this, Joan made that prophecy - made it with perfect confidence
- and it came true.
For within five years Paris fell - 1436 - and our King marched into it flying the
victors flag. So the first part of the prophecy was then fulfilled - in fact, almost
the entire prophecy; for, with Paris in our hands, the fulfilment of the rest of it was
assured.
Twenty years later all France was ours excepting a single town - Calais.
Now that will remind you of an earlier prophecy of Joans. At the time that she
wanted to take Paris, and could have done it with ease if our King had but consented, she
said that that was the golden time; that with Paris ours, all France would be ours in six
months. But if this golden opportunity to recover France was wasted, said she, I
give you twenty years to do it in.
She was right. After Paris fell, in 1436, the rest of the work had to be done city by
city, castle by castle, and it took twenty years to finish it.
Yes, it was the first day of March, 1431, there in the court, that she stood in the
view of everybody and uttered that strange and incredible prediction. Now and then, in
this world, somebodys prophecy turns up correct, but when you come to look into it
there is sure to be considerable room for suspicion that the prophecy was made after the
fact. But here the matter is different. There in that court Joans prophecy was set
down in the official record at the hour and moment of its utterance, years before the
fulfilment, and there you may read it to this day. Twenty-five years after Joans
death the record was produced in the great Court of the Rehabilitation and verified under
oath by Manchon and me, and surviving judges of our court confirmed the exactness of the
record in their testimony.
Joans startling utterance on that now so celebrated first of March stirred up a
great turmoil, and it was some time before it quieted down again. Naturally everybody was
troubled, for a prophecy is a grisly and awful thing, whether one thinks it ascends from
hell or comes down from heaven. All that these people felt sure of was, that the
inspiration back of it was genuine and puissant. They would have given their right hands
to know the source of it.
At last the questions began again.
How do you know that those things are going to happen?
I know it by revelation. And I know it as surely as I know that you sit here
before me.
This sort of answer was not going to allay the spreading uneasiness. Therefore, after
some further dallying, the judge got the subject out of the way and took up one which he
could enjoy more.
What language do your Voices speak?
French.
St Marguerite too?
Verily; why not? She is on our side, not on the English!
Saints and angles who did not condescend to speak English! a grave affront. They could
not be brought into court and punished for contempt, but the tribunal into court and
punished for contempt, but the tribunal could take silent note of Joans remark and
remember it against her; which they did. It might be useful by-and-by.
Do your saints and angels wear jewellery? - crowns, rings, ear-rings?
To Joan, questions like this were profane frivolities and not worthy of serious notice;
she answered indifferently. But the question brought to her mind another matter, and she
turned upon Cauchon and said -
I had two rings. They have been taken away from me during my captivity. You have
one of them. It is the gift of my brother. Give it back to me. If not to me, then I pray
that it be given to the Church.
The judges conceived the idea that maybe these rings were for the working of
enchantments. Perhaps they could be made to do Joan a damage.
Where is the other ring?
The Burgundians have it.
'Where did you get it?
My father and mother gave it to me.
Describe it.
It is plain and simple, and has "Jesus and Mary" engraved upon
it.
Everybody could see that that was not a valuable equipment to do devils work
with. So that trail was not worth following. Still, to make sure, one of the judges asked
Joan if she had ever cured sick people by touching them with the ring. She said no.
Now as concerning the fairies, that were used to abide near by Domremy, whereof
there are many reports and traditions. It is said that your grandmother surprised these
creatures on a summers night dancing under the tree called LArbre Fée de
Bourlemont. Is it not possible that your pretended saints and angels are but those
fairies?
Is that in your proces?
She made no other answer.
Have you not conversed with St Marguerite and St Catherine under that tree?
I do not know.
Or by the fountain near the tree?
Yes, sometimes.
What promises did they make you?
None but such as they had Gods warrant for.
But what promises did they make?
That is not in your proces; yet I will say this much: they told me that
the King would become master of his kingdom in spite of his enemies.
And what else?
There was a pause; then she said humbly -
They promised to lead me to Paradise.
If faces do really betray what is passing in mens minds, a fear came upon many in
that house, at this time, that maybe, after all, a chosen servant and herald of God was
here being hunted to her death. The interest deepened. Movements and whisperings ceased:
the stillness became almost painful.
Have you noticed that almost from the beginning the nature of the questions Joan showed
that in some way or other the questioner very often already knew his fact before he asked
his question? Have you noticed that somehow or other the questioners usually knew just how
and where to search for Joans secrets; that they really knew the bulk of her
privacies - a fact not suspected by her - and that they had no task before them but to
trick her into exposing those secrets?
Do you remember Loyseleur the hypocrite, the treacherous priest, tool of Cauchon? Do
you remember that under the sacred seal of the confessional Joan freely and trustingly
revealed to him everything concerning her history save only a few things regarding her
supernatural revelations which her Voices had forbidden her to tell to any one - and that
the unjust judge, Cauchon, was a hidden listener all the time?
Now you understand how the inquisitors were able to devise that long array of minutely
prying questions; questions whose subtlety and ingenuity and penetration are astonishing
until we come to remember Loyseleurs performance and recognise their source. Ah,
Bishop of Beauvais, you are now lamenting this cruel iniquity these many years in hell!
Yes, verily, unless one has come to your help. There is but one among the redeemed that
would do it; and it is futile to hope that that one has not already done it - Joan of Arc.
We will return to the court and the questionings.
Did they make you still another promise?
Yes; but that is not in your proces. I will not tell it now, but before
three months I will tell it you.
The judge seems to know the matter he is asking about already; one gets this idea from
his next question.
Did your Voices tell you that you would be liberated before three months?
Joan often showed a little flash of surprise at the good guessing of the judges, and
she showed one this time. I was frequently in terror to find my mind (which I could not
control) criticising the Voices and saying, They counsel her to speak boldly - a
thing which she would do without any suggestion from them or anybody else - but
when it comes to telling her any useful thing, such as how these conspirators manage to
guess their way so skilfully into her affairs, they are always off attending to some other
business. I am reverent by nature; and when such thoughts swept through my head they
made me cold with fear, and if there was a storm and thunder at the time, I was so ill
that I could but with difficulty abide at my post and do my work.
Joan answered:
That is not in your proces. I do not know when I shall be set free, but
some who wish me out of this world will go from it before me.
It made some of them shiver.
Have your Voices told you that you will be delivered from this prison?
Without a doubt they had, and the judge knew it before he asked the question.
Ask me again in three months and I will tell you.
She said it with such a happy look, the tired prisoner! And I! And Noël Rainguesson,
drooping yonder? - why, the floods of joy went streaming through us from crown to sole! It
was all that we could do to hold still and keep from making fatal exposure of our
feelings.
She was to be set free in three months. That was what she meant; we saw it. The Voices
had told her so, and told her true - true to the very day - May 30. But we know now that
they had mercifully hidden from her how she was to be set free, but left her in
ignorance. Home again! That was our understanding of it - Noëls and mine; that was
our dream; and now we would count the days, the hours, the minutes. They would fly lightly
along; they would soon be over. Yes, we would carry our idol home; and there, far from the
pomps and tumults of the world, we would take up our happy life again and live it out as
we had begun it, in the free air and the sunshine, with the friendly sheep and the
friendly people for comrades, and the grace and charm of the meadows, the woods, and the
river always before our eyes and their deep peace in our hearts. Yes, that was our dream,
the dream that carried us bravely through that three months to an exact and awful
fulfilment, the thought of which would have killed us, I think, if we had foreknown it and
been obliged to bear the burden of it upon our hearts the half of those heavy days.
Our reading of the prophecy was this: We believed the Kings soul was going to be
smitten with remorse; and that he would privately plan a rescue with Joans old
lieutenants, DAlençon and the Bastard and La Hire, and that this rescue would take
place at the end of the three months. So we made up our minds to be ready and take a hand
in it.
In the present and also in later sittings Joan was urged to name the exact day of her
deliverance; but she could not do that. She had not the permission of her Voices.
Moreover, the Voices themselves did not name the precise day. Ever since the fulfilment of
the prophecy, I have believed that Joan had the idea that her deliverance was going to
come in the form of death. But not that death! Divine as she was, dauntless as she was in
battle, she was human also. She was not solely saint, an angel, she was a clay-made girl
also - as human a girl as any in the world, and full of a human girls
sensitivenesses and tendernesses and delicacies. And so, that death! No, she
could not have lived the three months with that one before her, I think. You remember that
the first time she was wounded she was frightened, and cried, just as any other girl of
seventeen would have done, although she had known for eighteen days that she was going to
be wounded on that very day. No, she was not afraid of any ordinary death, and an ordinary
death was what she believed the prophecy of deliverance meant, I think, for her face
showed happiness, not horror, when she uttered it.
Now I will explain why I think as I do. Five weeks before she was captured in the
battle of Compiègne, her Voices told her what was coming. They did not tell her the day
or the place, but said she would be taken prisoner and that it would be before the feast
of St John. She begged that death, certain and swift, should be her fate, and the
captivity brief; for she was a free spirit, and dreaded confinement. The Voices made no
promise, but only told her to bear whatever came. Now as they did not refuse the
swift death, a hopeful young thing like Joan would naturally cherish that fact and make
the most of it, allowing it to grow and establish itself in her mind. And so now that she
was told she was to be delivered in three months, I think she believed it
meant that she would die in her bed in the prison, and that that was why she looked happy
and content - the gates of Paradise standing open for her, the time so short, you see, her
troubles so soon to be over, her reward so close at hand. Yes, that would make her look
happy, that would make her patient and bold, and able to fight her fight out like a
soldier. Save herself if she could, of course, and try her best, for that was the way she
was made; but die with her face to the front if die she must.
Then later, when she charged Cauchon with trying to kill her with a poisoned fish, her
notion that she was to be delivered by death in the prison - if she had it,
and I believed she had - would naturally be greatly strengthened, you see.
But I am wandering from the trial. Joan was asked to definitely name the time that she
would be delivered from prison.
I have always said that I was not permitted to tell you everything. I am to be
set free, and I desire to ask leave of my Voices to tell you the day. This is why I wish
for delay.
Do your Voices forbid you to tell the truth?
Is it that you wish to know matters concerning the King of France? I tell you
again that he will regain his kingdom, and that I know it as well as I know that you sit
here before me in this tribunal. She sighed, and after a little pause, added:
I should be dead but for this revelation, which comforts me always.
Some trivial questions were asked her about St Michael's dress and appearance. She
answered them with dignity, but one saw that they gave her pain. After a little she said -
I have great joy in seeing him, for when I see him I have the feeling that I am
not in mortal sin. She added, Sometimes St Marguerite and St Catherine have
allowed me to confess myself to them.
Here was a possible chance to set a successful snare for her innocence.
When you confessed were you in mortal sin, do you think?
But her reply did her no hurt. So the inquiry was shifted once more to the revelations
made to the King - secrets which the court had tried again and again to force out of Joan,
but without success.
Now as to the sign given to the King -
I have already told you that I will tell you nothing about it.
Do you know what the sign was?
As to that you will not find out from me.
All this refers to Joans secret interview with the King - held apart, though two
or three others were present. It was known - through Loyseleur, of course - that this sign
was a crown and was a pledge of the verity of Joans mission. But that is all a
mystery until this day - the nature of the crown, I mean - and will remain a mystery to
the end of time. we can never know whether a real crown descended upon the Kings
head, or only a symbol, the mystic fabric of a vision.
'Did you see a crown upon the Kings head when he received the revelation?
I cannot tell you as to that without perjury.
Did the King have that crown at Rheims?
I think the King put upon his head a crown which he found there; but a much
richer one was brought him afterwards.
Have you seen that one?
I cannot tell you without perjury. But whether I have seen it or not, I have
heard say that it was rich and magnificent.
They went on and pestered her to weariness about that mysterious crown, but they got
nothing more out of her. The sitting closed. A long, hard day for all of us.
Chapter 10
The court rested a day, then took up work again on Saturday the third of March.
This was one of our stormiest sessions. The whole court was out of patience; and with
good reason. These three-score distinguished churchmen, illustrious tacticians, veteran
legal gladiators, had left important posts where their supervision was needed, to journey
hither from various regions and accomplish a most simple and easy matter - condemn and
send to death a country lass of nineteen who could neither read nor write, knew nothing of
the wiles and perplexities of legal procedure, could call not a single witness in her
defence, was allowed no advocate or adviser, and must conduct her case by herself against
a hostile judge and a packed jury. In two hours she would be hopelessly entangled, routed,
defeated, convicted. Nothing could be more certain than this - so they thought. But it was
a mistake. The two hours had strung out into days, what promised to be a skirmish had
expanded into a siege; the thing which had looked so easy had proven to be surprisingly
difficult; the light victim who was to have been puffed away like a feather remained
planted like a rock; and on top of all this, if anybody had a right to laugh, it was the
country lass and not the court.
She was not doing that, for that was not her spirit; but others were doing it. The
whole town was laughing in its sleeve, and the court knew it, and its dignity was deeply
hurt. The members could not hide their annoyance.
And so, as I have said, the session was stormy. It was easy to see that these men had
made up their minds to force words from Joan today which should shorten up her case and
bring it to a prompt conclusion. It shows that after all their experience with her they
did not know her yet. They went into the battle with energy. They did not leave the
questioning to a particular member; no, everybody helped. They volleyed questions at Joan
from all over the house, and sometimes so many were talking at once that she had to ask
them to deliver their fire one at a time and not by platoons. The beginning was a usual:
You are once more required to take the oath pure and simple.
I will answer to what is in the proces verbal. When I do more, I will
choose the occasion for myself.
That old ground was debated and fought over inch by inch with great bitterness and many
threats. But Joan remained steadfast, and the questionings had to shift to other matters.
Half an hour was spent over Joans apparitions - their dress, hair, general
appearance, and so on - in the hope of fishing something of a damaging sort out of the
replies; but with no result.
Next, the male attire was reverted to, of course. After many well-worn questions had
been re-asked, one or two new ones were put forward.
Did not the King or the Queen sometimes ask you to quit the male dress?
That is not in your proces.
Do you think you would have sinned if you had taken the dress of your sex?
I have done best to serve and obey my sovereign Lord and Master.
After a while the matter of Joans Standard was taken up, in the hope of
connecting magic and witchcraft with it.
Did not your men copy your banner in their pennons?
The lancers of my guard did it. It was to distinguish them from the rest of the
forces. It was their own idea.
Were they often renewed?
Yes. When the lances were broken they were renewed.
The purpose of the questions unveils itself in the next one.
Did you not say to your men that pennons made like your banner would be
lucky?
The soldier-spirit in Joan was offended at this puerility. She drew herself up, and
said with dignity and fire: What I said to them was, "Ride these English
down!" and I did it myself.
Whenever she flung out a scornful speech like that at these French menials in English
livery it lashed them into a rage; and that is what happened this time. There were ten,
twenty, sometimes even thirty of them on their feet at a time, storming at the prisoner
minute after minute, but Joan was not disturbed.
By-and-by there was peace, and the inquiry was resumed.
It was now sought to turn against Joan the thousand loving honours which had been done
her when she was raising France out of the dirt and shame of a century of slavery and
castigation.
Did you not cause paintings and images of yourself to be made?
No. At Arras I saw a painting of myself kneeling in armour before the King and
delivering him a letter; but I caused no such things to be made.
Were not masses and prayers said in your honour?
If it was done it was not by my command. But if any prayed for me I think it was
no harm.
Did the French people believe you were sent of God?
As to that I know not: but whether they believed it or not, I was not the less
sent of God.
If they thought you were sent of God do you think it was well thought?
If they believed it, their trust was not abused.
What impulse was it, think you, that moved the people to kiss your hands, your
feet, and your vestments?
They were glad to see me, and so they did those things; and I could not have
prevented them if I had had the heart. Those poor people came lovingly to me because I had
not done them any hurt, but had done the best I could for them according to my
strength.
See what modest little words she uses to describe that touching spectacle, her marches
about France walled in on both sides by the adoring multitudes: They were glad to
see me. Glad? Why, they were transported with joy to see her. When they could not
kiss her hands or her feet, they knelt in the mire and kissed the hoof-prints of her
horse. They worshipped her; and that is what these priests were trying to prove. It was
nothing to them that she was not to blame for what other people did. No, if she was
worshipped, it was enough; she was guilty of mortal sin. Curious logic, one must say.
Did you not stand sponsor for some children baptised at Rheims?
At Troyes I did, and at St-Denis; and I named the boys Charles, in honour of the
King, and the girls I named Joan.
Did not women touch their rings to those which you wore?
Yes, many did; but I did not know their reason for it.
At Rheims was your Standard carried into the church? Did you stand at the altar
with it in your hand at the Coronation?
Yes.
In passing through the country did you confess yourself in the churches and
receive the sacrament?
Yes.
In the dress of a man?
Yes. But I do not remember that I was in armour.
It was almost a concession! almost a half-surrender of permission granted her by the
Church at Poitiers to dress as a man. The wily court shifted to another matter: to pursue
this one at this time might call Joans attention to her small mistake, and by her
native cleverness she might recover her lost ground. The tempestuous session had worn her
and drowsed her alertness.
It is reported that you brought a dead child to life in the church at Lagny. Was
that in answer to your prayers?
As to that I have no knowledge. Other young girls were praying for the child, and
I joined them and prayed also, doing no more than they.
Continue.
While we prayed it came to life, and cried. It had been dead three days, and was
as black as my doublet. It was straightway baptised, then it passed from life again and
was buried in holy ground.
Why did you jump from the tower of Beaurevoir by night and try to escape?
I would go to the succour of Compiègne.
It was insinuated that this was an attempt to commit the deep crime of suicide to avoid
falling into the hands of the English.
Did you not say that you would rather die than be delivered into the power of the
English?
Joan answered frankly, without perceiving the trap -
Yes; my words were, that I would rather that my soul be returned unto God than
that I should fall into the hands of the English.
It was now insinuated that when she came to, after jumping from the tower, she was
angry and blasphemed the name of God; and that she did it again when she heard of the
defection of the Commandant of Soissons. She was hurt and indignant at this, and said -
It is not true. I have never cursed. It is not my custom to swear.
Chapter 11
A halt was called. It was time. Cauchon was losing ground in the fight, Joan was
gaining it. There were signs that here and there in the court a judge was being softened
toward Joan by her courage, her presence of mind, her fortitude, her constancy, her piety,
her simplicity and candour, her manifest purity, the nobility of her character, her fine
intelligence, and the good brave fight she was making, all friendless and alone against
unfair odds, and there was grave room for fear that this softening process would spread
further and presently bring Cauchons plans in danger.
Something must be done, and it was done. Cauchon was not distinguished for compassion,
but he now gave proof that he had it in his character. He thought it pity to subject so
many judges to the prostrating fatigues of this trial when it could be conducted plenty
well enough by a handful of them. Oh, gentle Judge! But he did not remember to modify the
fatigues for the little captive.
He would let all the judges but a handful go, but he would select the handful himself,
and he did. He chose tigers. If a lamb or two got in, it was by oversight, not intention;
and he knew what to do with lambs when discovered.
He called a small council now, and during five days they sifted the huge bulk of
answers thus far gathered from Joan. They winnowed it of all chaff, all useless matter -
that is, all favourable to Joan; they saved up all matter which could be twisted to her
hurt, and out of this they constructed a basis for a new trial which should have the
semblance of a continuation of the old one. Another change. It was plain that the public
trial had wrought damage: its proceedings had been discussed all over the town and had
moved many to pity the abused prisoner. There should be no more of that. The sittings
should be secret hereafter, and no spectators admitted. So Noël could come no more. I
sent this news to him. I had not the heart to carry it myself. I would give the pain a
chance to modify before I should see him in the evening.
On the tenth of March the secret trial began. A week had passed since I had seen Joan.
Her appearance gave me a shock. She looked tired and weak. She was listless and far away,
and her answers showed that she was dazed and not able to keep perfect run of all that was
done and said. Another court would not have taken advantage of her state, seeing that her
life was at stake here, but would have adjourned and spared her. Did this one? No; it
worried her for hours, and with a glad and eager ferocity, making all it could out of this
great chance, the first one it had had.
She was tortured into confusing herself concerning the sign which had been
given the King, and the next day this was continued hour after hour. As a result, she made
partial revealments of particulars forbidden by her Voices; and seemed t me to state as
facts things which were but allegories and visions mixed with facts.
The third day she was brighter, and looked less worn. She was almost her normal self
again, and did her work well. Many attempts were made to beguile her into saying
indiscreet things, but she saw the purpose in view, and answered with tact and wisdom.
Do you know if St Catherine and St Marguerite hate the English?
They love whom Our Lord loves, and hate whom He hates.
Does God hate the English?
Of the love or the hatred of God toward the English I know nothing. Then
she spoke up with the old martial ring in her voice and the old audacity in her words, and
added, But I know this - that God will send victory to the French, and that all the
English will be flung out of France but the dead ones!
Was God on the side of the English when they were prosperous in
France?
I do not know if God hates the French, but I think that He allowed them to be
chastised for their sins.
It was a sufficiently naïve way to account for a chastisement which had now strung out
for ninety-six years. But nobody found fault with it. There was nobody there who would not
punish a sinner ninety-six years if he could, nor anybody there who would ever dream of
such a thing as the Lords being any shade less stringent than men.
Have you ever embraced St Marguerite and St Catherine?
Yes, both of them.
The evil face of Cauchon betrayed satisfaction when she said that.
When you hung garlands upon LArbre Fée de Bourlemont, did you do
it in honour of your apparitions?
No.
Satisfaction again. No doubt Cauchon would take it for granted that she hung them there
out of sinful love for the fairies.
When the saints appeared to you did you bow, did you make reverence, did you
kneel?
Yes; I did them the most honour and the most reverence that I could.
A good point for Cauchon if he could eventually make it appear that these were no
saints to whom she had done reverence, but devils in disguise.
Now there was the matter of Joans keeping her supernatural commerce a secret from
her parents. Much might be made of that. In fact, particular emphasis had been given to it
in a private remark written in the margin of the proces: 'She concealed her visions
from her parents and from every one. Possibly this disloyalty to her parents
might itself be the sign of the satanic source of her mission.
Do you think it was right to go away to the wars without getting your
parents leave? It is written, one must honour his father and his mother.
I have obeyed them in all things but that. And for that I have begged their
forgiveness in a letter and gotten it.
Ah, you asked their pardon? So you knew you were guilty of sin in going
without their leave!
Joan was stirred. Her eyes flashed and she exclaimed -
I was commanded of God, and it was right to go! If I had had a hundred fathers
and mothers and been a kings daughter to boot I would have gone.
Did you never ask your Voices if you might tell you parents?
They were willing that I should tell them, but I would not for anything have
given my parents that pain.
To the minds of the questioners this headstrong conduct savoured of pride. That sort of
pride would move one to seek sacrilegious adorations.
Did not your Voices call you Daughter of God?
Joan answered with simplicity and unsuspiciously -
Yes; before the siege of Orleans and since, they have several times called me
Daughter of God.
Further indications of pride and vanity were sought.
What horse were you riding when you were captured? Who gave it you?
The King.
You had other things - riches - of the King?
For myself I had horses and arms, and money to pay the service in my
household.
Had you not a treasury?
Yes. Ten or twelve thousand crowns. Then she said with naïveté,
It was not a great sum to carry on a war with.
You have it yet?
No. It is the Kings money. My brothers hold it for him.
What were the arms which you left as an offering in the church of St-Denis?
My suit of silver mail and a sword.
Did you put them there in order that they might be adored?
No. It was but an act of devotion. And it is the custom of men of war who had
been wounded to make such offering there. I had been wounded before Paris.
Nothing appealed to those stony hearts, those dull imaginations - not even
this pretty picture, so simply drawn, of the wounded girl-soldier hanging her toy harness
there in curious companionship with the grim and dusty iron mail of the historic defenders
of France. No, there was nothing in it for them; nothing, unless evil and injury for that
innocent creature could be gotten out of it somehow.
Which aided most - you the Standard, or the Standard you?
Whether it was the Standard or whether it was I, is nothing - the victories came
from God.
But did you base you hopes of victory in yourself or in your Standard?
In neither. In God, and not otherwhere.
Was not your Standard waved around the Kings head at the Coronation?
No. It was not.
Why was it that your Standard had place at the crowning of the King in the
Cathedral of Rheims, rather than those of the other captains?
Then, soft and low, came that touching speech which will live as long as language
lives, and pass into all tongues, and move all gentle hearts wheresoever it shall come,
down to the latest day:
It had borne the burden, it had earned the honour.
[What she said has been many times translated, but never with success.
There is a haunting pathos about the original which eludes all efforts to convey it into
our tongue. It is as subtle as an odour, and escapes in the transmission. Her words were
these: 'Il avait été a la peine, c'etait bien raison qu'il fut a l'honneur.'
Monseigneur Ricard, Honarary Vicar-General to the Archbishop of Aix, finely speaks of it
('Jean d'Arc la Vénérable,' page 197) as 'that sublime reply, enduring in the
history of celebrated sayings like the cry of a French and Christian soul wounded unto
death in its patriotism and its faith.' - Translator]
How simple it is, and how beautiful! And how it beggars the studied eloquence of the
masters of oratory! Eloquence was a native gift of Joan of Arc; it came from her lips
without effort and without preparation. Her words were as sublime as her deeds, as sublime
as her character; they had their source in a great heart and were coined in a great brain.
Chapter 12
Now as a next move, this small secret court of holy assassins did a thing so base that
even at this day, in my old age, it is hard to speak of it with patience.
In the beginning of her commerce with her Voices there at Domremy, the child Joan
solemnly devoted her life to God, vowing her pure body and her pure soul to His service.
You will remember that her parents tried to stop her from going to the wars by haling her
to the court at Toul to compel her to make a marriage with our poor, good, windy, big,
hard-fighting and most dear and lamented comrade the Standard-bearer, who fell in
honourable battle and sleeps in God these sixty years, peace to his ashes! And you will
remember how Joan, sixteen years old, stood up in that venerable court and conducted her
case all by herself, and tore the poor Paladins case to rags and blew it away with a
breath; and how the astonished old judge on the bench spoke of her as this
marvellous child.
You remember all that. Then think what I felt, to see these false priests here in the
tribunal wherein Joan had fought a fourth lone fight in three years, deliberately twist
that matter entirely around and try to make out that Joan haled the Paladin into court and
pretended that he had promised to marry her, and was bent on making him do it.
Certainly there was no baseness that those people were ashamed to stoop to in their
hunt for that friendless girls life. What they wanted to show was this - that she
had committed the sin of relapsing from her vow and trying to violate it.
Joan detailed the true history of the case, but lost her temper as she went along, and
finished with some words for Cauchon which he remembers yet, whether he is fanning himself
in the world he belongs in or has swindled his way into the other.
The rest of this day and part of the next the court laboured upon the old theme - the
male attire. It was shabby work for those grave men to be engaged in; for they well knew
one of Joans reasons for clinging to the male dress was, that soldiers of the guard
were always present in her room whether she was asleep or awake, and that the male dress
was a better protection for her modesty than the other.
The court knew that one of Joans purposes had been the deliverance of the exiled
Duke of Orleans, and they were curious to know how she had intended to manage it. Her plan
was characteristically business-like, and her statement of it as characteristically simple
and straight-forward:
I would have taken English prisoners enough in France for his ransom; and failing
that, I would have invaded England and brought him out by force.
That was just her way. If a thing was to be done, it was love first, and hammer and
tongs to follow; but no shilly-shallying between. She added with a little sigh -
If I had had my freedom three years, I would have delivered him.
Have you the permission of your Voices to break out of prison whenever you
can?
I have asked their leave several times, but they have not given it.
I think it is as I have said, she expected the deliverance of death and within the
prison walls, before the three months should expire.
Would you escape if you saw the doors open?
She spoke up frankly and said -
Yes - for I should see that the permission of Our Lord. God helps who help
themselves, the proverb says. But except I thought I had permission, I would not go.
Now, then, at this point something occurred which convinces me, every time I think of
it - and it struck me so at the time - that for a moment, at least, her hopes wandered to
the King, and put into her mind the same notion about her deliverance which Noël and I
had settled upon - a rescue by her old soldiers. I think the idea of the rescue did occur
to her, but only as a passing thought, and that it quickly passed away.
Some remark of the Bishop of Beauvais moved her to remind him once more that he was an
unfair judge, and had no right to preside there, and that he was putting himself in great
danger.
What danger? he asked.
I do not know. St Catherine has promised me help, but I do not know the form of
it. I do not know whether I am to be delivered from this prison or whether when you send
me to the scaffold there will happen a trouble by which I shall be set free. Without much
thought as to this matter, I am of the opinion that it may be one or the other.
After a pause she added these words, memorable for ever - words whose meaning she may have
miscaught, misunderstood, as to that we can never know, words which she may have rightly
understood; as to that also we can never know; but words whose mystery fell away from them
many a year ago and revealed their real meaning to all the world:
But what my Voices have said clearest is, that I shall be delivered by a
great victory. She paused, my heart was beating fast, for to me that great
victory meant that the sudden bursting in of our old soldiers with war-cry and clash of
steel at the last moment and the carrying off of Joan of Arc in triumph. But oh, that
thought had such a short life! For now she raised her head and finished, with those solemn
words which men still so often quote and dwell upon - words which filled me with fear,
they sounded so like a prediction. 'And always they say, "Submit to whatever comes; do
not grieve for your martyrdom; from it you will ascend into the Kingdom of
Paradise."
Was she thinking of fire and the stake? I think not. I thought of it myself, but I
believe she was only thinking of this slow and cruel martyrdom of chains and captivity and
insult. Surely martyrdom was the right name for it.
It was Jean de la Fontaine who was asking the questions. He was willing to make the
most he could out of what she had said:
As the Voices have told you you are going to Paradise, you feel certain that that
will happen and that you will not be damned in hell. Is that so?
I believe what they told me. I know that I shall be saved.
It is a weighty answer.
To me the knowledge that I shall be saved is a great treasure.
Do you think that after that revelation you could be able to commit mortal
sin?
As to that I do not know. My hope for salvation is in holding fast to my oath to
keep my body and my soul pure.
Since you know you are to be saved do you think it necessary to go to
confession?
The snare was ingeniously devised, but Joans simple and humble answer left it
empty-
One cannot keep his conscience too clean.
We were now arriving at the last day of this new trial. Joan had come through the
ordeal well. It had been a long and wearisome struggle for all concerned. All ways had
been tried to convict the accused, and all had failed thus far. The inquisitors were
thoroughly vexed and dissatisfied. However, they resolved to make one more effort, put in
one more days work. This was done - March 17th. Early in the sitting a notable trap
was set for Joan:
'Will you submit to the determination of the Church all your words and deeds, whether
good or bad?
That was well planned. Joan was in imminent peril now. If she should heedlessly say
yes, it would put her mission itself upon trial, and one would know how to decide
its source and character promptly. If she should say no, she would render herself
chargeable with the crime of heresy.
But she was equal to the occasion. She drew a distinct line of separation between the
Churchs authority over her as a subject member, and the matter of her mission.
She said she loved the Church and was ready to support the Christian faith with all her
strength; but as to the works done under her mission, those must be judged by God alone,
who had commanded them to be done.
The judge still insisted that she submit them to the decision of the Church. She said -
I will submit them to Our Lord who sent me. It would seem to me that He and His
Church are one, and that there should be no difficulty about this matter. Than she
turned upon the judge and said, Why do you make a difficulty where there is no room
for any?
Then Jean de la Fontaine corrected her notion that there was but one Church. There were
two - the Church Triumphant, which is God, the saints, the angels, and the redeemed, and
has its seat in heaven; and the Church Militant, which is our Holy Father the Pope, Vicar
of God, the prelates, the clergy and all good Christians and Catholics, and which Church
has its seat in the earth, is governed by the Holy Spirit, and cannot err. Will you
not submit those matter to the Church Militant?
I am come to the King of France from the Church Triumphant on high by its
commandant, and to that Church I will submit all those things which I have done. For the
Church Militant I have no other answer now.
The court took note of this straightly worded refusal, and would hope to get profit out
of it; but the matter was dropped for the present, and a long chase was then made over the
hunting-ground - the fairies, the visions, the male attire, and all that.
In the afternoon the satanic Bishop himself took the chair, and presided over the
closing scenes of the trial. Along toward the finish, this question was asked by one of
the judges:
You have said to my lord the Bishop that you would answer him as you would answer
before our Holy Father the Pope, and yet there are several questions which you continually
refuse to answer. Would you not answer the Pope more fully then you have answered before
my lord of Beauvais? Would you not feel obliged to answer the Pope, who is the Vicar of
God, more fully?
Now fell a thunder-clap out of a clear sky -
Take me to the Pope. I will answer to everything that I ought to.
It made the Bishops purple face fairly blanch with consternation. If Joan had
only known, if she had only known! She had lodged a mine under this black conspiracy able
to blow the Bishops schemes to the four winds of heaven, and she didnt know
it. she had made that speech by mere instinct, not suspecting what tremendous forces were
hidden in it, and there was none to tell her what she had done. I knew, and Manchon knew;
and if she had known how to read writing we could have hoped to get the knowledge to her
somehow; but speech was the only way, and none was allowed to approach her near enough for
that. So there she sat, once more Joan of Arc the Victorious, but all unconscious of it.
She was miserably worn and tired by all the long days struggle and by illness, or
she must have noticed the effect of that speech and divined the reason of it.
She had made many master-strokes, but this was the master-stroke. It was an
appeal to Rome. It was her clear right; and if she had persisted in it Cauchons
plot would have tumbled about his ears like a house of cards, and he would have gone from
that place the worst beaten man of the century. He was daring, but he was not daring
enough to stand up against that demand if Joan had urged it. But no, she was ignorant,
poor thing, and did not know what a blow she had struck for life and liberty.
France was not the Church. Rome had no interest in the destruction of this messenger of
God. Rome would have given her a fair trial, and that was all that her cause needed. From
that trial she would have gone forth free and honoured and blest.
But it was not so fated. Cauchon at once diverted the questions to other matters and
hurried the trial quickly to an end.
As Joan moved feebly away, dragging her chains, I felt stunned and dazed, and kept
saying to myself, Such a little while ago she said the saving word and could have
gone free; and now, there she goes to her death; yes, it is to her death; I know it, I
feel it. They will double the guards, they will never let any come near her now between
this and her condemnation, lest she get a hint and speak that word again. This is the
bitterest day that has come to me in all this miserable time.
Chapter 13
So the second trial in the prison was over. Over, and no definite result. The character
of it I have described to you. It was baser in one particular than the previous one; for
this time the charges had not been communicated to Joan, therefore she had been obliged to
fight in the dark. There was no opportunity to do any thinking beforehand; there was no
foreseeing what traps might be set, and no way to prepare for them. Truly it was a shabby
advantage to take of a girl situated as this one was. One day, during the course of it, an
able lawyer of Normandy, Ma=EEtre Lohier, happened to be in Rouen, and I will give you his
opinion of that trial, so that you may see that I have been honest with you, and that my
partisanship has not made me deceive you as to its unfair and illegal character. Cauchon
showed Lohier the = proces and asked his opinion about the trial. Now this was
the opinion which he gave to Cauchon. He said that the whole thing was null and void; for
these reasons: (1) Because the trial was secret, and full freedom of speech and action on
the part of those present not possible; (2) Because the trial touched the honour of the
King of France, yet he was not summoned to defend himself, nor any one appointed to
represent him; (3) Because the charges against the prisoner were not communicated to her;
(4) Because the accused, although young and simple, had been forced to defend her cause
without help of counsel, notwithstanding she had so much at stake.
Did that please Bishop Cauchon? It did not. He burst out upon Lohier with the most
savage cursings, and swore he would have him drowned. Lohier escaped from Rouen and got
out of France with all speed, and so saved his life.
Well, as I have said, the second trial was over, without definite result. But Cauchon
did not give up. He could trump up another. And still another and another, if necessary.
He had the half-promise of an enormous prize - the Archbishopric of Rouen - if he should
succeed in burning the body and damning to hell the soul of this young girl who had never
done him any harm; and such a prize as that, to a man like the Bishop of Beauvais, was
worth burning and damning fifty harmless girls, let alone one.
So he set to work again straight off, next day; and with high confidence, too,
intimating with brutal cheerfulness that he should succeed this time. It took him and the
other scavengers nine days to dig matter enough out of Joans testimony and their own
inventions to build up the new mass of charges. And it was a formidable mass indeed, for
it numbered sixty-six articles!
This huge document was carried to the castle the next day, March 27th; and there,
before a dozen carefully selected judges, the new trial was begun.
Opinions were taken, and the tribunal decided that Joan should hear the articles read,
this time. Maybe that was on account of Lohiers remark upon that head; or maybe it
was hoped that the reading would kill the prisoner with fatigue - for, as it turned out,
this reading occupied several days. It was also decided that Joan should be required to
answer squarely to ever article, and that if she refused she should be considered = convicted.
You see Cauchon was managing to narrow her chances more and more all the time; he was
drawing the toils closer and closer.
Joan was brought in, and the Bishop of Beauvais opened with a speech to her which ought
to have made even himself blush, so laden it was with hypocrisy and lies. he said that
this court was composed of holy and pious churchmen whose hearts were full of benevolence
and compassion toward her, and that they had no wish to hurt her body, but only a desire
to instruct her and lead her into the way of truth and salvation.
Why, this man was born a devil; now think of his describing himself and those hardened
slaves of his in such language as that.
And yet, worse was to come. For now, having in mind another of Lohiers hints, he
had the cold effrontery to make Joan a proposition which I think will surprise you when
you hear it. He said that this court, recognising her untaught estate and her inability to
deal with the complex and difficult matters which were about to be considered, had
determined, out of their pity and their mercifulness, to allow her to choose one or more
persons out of their own number to help her with counsel and advice!
Think of that - a court made up of Loyseleur and his breed of reptiles. It was granting
leave to a lamb to ask help of a wolf. Joan looked up to see if he was serious, and
perceiving that he was at least pretending to be, she declined, of course.
The Bishop was not expecting any other reply. He had made a show of fairness and could
have it entered on the minutes, therefore he was satisfied.
Then he commanded Joan to answer straightly to every accusation; and threatened to cut
her off from the Church if she failed to do that or delayed her answers beyond a given
length of time. Yes, he was narrowing her chances down, step by step.
Thomas de Courcelles began the reading of that interminable document, article by
article. Joan answered to each article in its turn; sometimes merely denying its truth,
sometimes by saying her answer would be found in the records of the previous trials.
What a strange document that was, and what an exhibition and exposure of the heart of
man, the one creature authorised to boast that he is made in the image of God! To know
Joan of Arc was to know one who was wholly noble, pure, truthful, brave, compassionate,
generous, pious, unselfish, modest, blameless as the very flowers in the fields - a nature
fine and beautiful, a character supremely great. To know her from that document would be
to know her as the exact reverse of all that. Nothing that she was appears in it,
everything that she was not appears there in detail.
Consider some of the things it charges against her, and remember who it is it is
speaking of. It calls her a sorceress, a false prophet, an invoker and companion of evil
spirits, a dealer in magic, a person ignorant of the Catholic faith, a schismatic; she is
sacrilegious, an idolater, an apostate, a blasphemer of God and His saints, scandalous,
seditious, a disturber of the peace; she incites men to war and to the spilling of human
blood; she discards the decencies and proprieties of her sex, irreverently assuming the
dress of a man and the vocation of a soldier; she beguiles both princes and people; she
usurps divine honours, and has caused herself to be adored and venerated, offering her
hands and her vestments to be kissed.
There it is - every fact of her life distorted, perverted, reversed. As a child she had
loved the fairies, she had spoken a pitying word for them when they were banished from
their home, she had played under their Tree and around their fountain - hence she was a
comrade of evil spirits. She had lifted France out of the mud and moved her to strike for
freedom, and led her to victory after victory - hence she was a disturber of the peace -
as indeed she was, and a provoker of war - as indeed she was again! and France will be
proud of it and grateful for it for many a century to come. And she had been adored - as
if she could help that, poor thing, or was in any way to blame for it. The cowed veteran
and the wavering recruit had drunk the spirit of war from her eyes, and touched her sword
with theirs and moved forward invincible - hence she was a sorceress.
And so the document went on, detail by detail, turning these waters of life to poison,
this gold to dross, these proofs of a noble and beautiful life to evidences of a foul and
odious one.
Of course the sixty-six articles were just a rehash of the things which had come up in
the course of the previous trials, so I will touch upon this new trial but lightly. In
fact Joan went but little into detail herself, usually merely saying That is not
true - passez outre; or, I have answered that before - let the clerk
read it in his record; or saying some other brief thing.
She refused to have her mission examined and tried by the earthly Church. The refusal
was taken note of.
She denied the accusation of idolatry and that she had sought mens homage. She
said -
If any kissed my hands and my vestments, it was not by my desire, and I did what
I could to prevent it.
She had the pluck to say to that deadly tribunal that she did not know the fairies to
be evil beings. She knew it was a perilous thing to say, but it was not in her nature to
speak anything but the truth when she spoke at all. Danger had no weight with her in such
things. Note was taken of her remark.
She refused, as always before, when asked if she would put off the male attire if she
were given permission to commune. And she added this:
When one receives the sacrament, the manner of his dress is a small thing and of
no value in the eyes of Our Lord.
She was charged with being so stubborn in clinging to her male dress that she would not
lay it off even to get the blessed privilege of hearing mass. She spoke out with spirit
and said:
I would rather die than be untrue to my oath to God.
She was reproached with doing mans work in the wars, and thus deserting the
industries proper to her sex. She answered, with some little touch of soldierly disdain -
As to the matter of womens work, theres plenty to do it.
It was always a comfort to me to see the soldier-spirit crop up in her. While that
remained in her she would be Joan of Arc, and able to look trouble and fate in the face.
It appears that this mission of yours which you claim you had from God, was to
make war and pour out human blood.
Joan replied quite simply, contenting herself with explaining that war was not her
first move, but her second:
To begin with I demanded that peace should be made. If it was refused, then I
would fight.
The judge mixed the Burgundians and English together in speaking of the enemy which
Joan had come to make war upon. But she showed that she made a distinction between them by
act and word, the Burgundians being Frenchmen and therefore entitled to less brusque
treatment than the English. she said:
As to the Duke of Burgundy, I required of him, both by letters and by his
ambassadors, that he make peace with the King. As to the English, the only peace for them
was that they leave the country and go home.
Then she said that even with the English she had shown a pacific disposition, since she
had warned them away by proclamation before attacking them.
If they had listened to me, she said, they would have done
wisely. At this point she uttered her prophecy again, saying with emphasis,
Before seven years they will see it themselves.
Then they presently began to pester her again about her male costume, and tried to
persuade her to voluntarily promise to discard it. I was never deep, so I think it no
wonder that I was puzzled by their persistency in what seemed a thing of no consequence,
and could not make out what their reason could be. But we all know, now. We all know now
that is was another of their treacherous projects. Yes, if they could but succeed in
getting her to formally discard it, they would play a game upon her which would quickly
destroy her. So they kept at their evil work until at last she broke out and said -
Peace! Without the permission of God I will not lay it off though you cut off my
head!
At one point she corrected the proc=E8s verbal, saying -
It makes me say that everything which I have done was done by the counsel of Our
Lord. I did not say that. I said "all which I have well done."
Doubt was cast upon the authenticity of her mission because of the ignorance and
simplicity of the messenger chosen. Joan smiled at that. She could have reminded these
people that Our Lord, who is no respecter of persons, had chosen the lowly for His high
purposes even oftener then He had chosen bishops and cardinals; but she phrased her rebuke
in simpler terms:
It is the prerogative of Our Lord to choose His instruments where He will.
She was asked what form of prayer she used in invoking counsel from on high. She said
the form was brief and simple; then she lifted her pallid face and repeated it, clasping
her chained hands:
Most dear God, in honour of your holy passion I beseech you, if you love me, that
you will reveal to me what I am to answer to these churchmen. As concerns my dress I know
by what command I have put it on, but I know not in what manner I am to lay it off. I pray
you tell me what to do.
She was charged with having dared, against the precepts of God and His saints, to
assume empire over men and make herself Commander-in-Chief. That touched the soldier in
her. She had a deep reverence for priests, but the soldier in her had but small reverence
for a priests opinions about war; so, in her answer to this charge she did not
condescend to go into any explanations or excuses, but delivered herself with bland
indifference and military brevity.
If I was Commander-in-Chief, it was to thrash the English!
Death was staring her in the face here, all the time, but no matter: she dearly loved
to make these English-hearted Frenchmen squirm, and whenever they gave her an opening she
was prompt to jab her sting into it. She got great refreshment out of these little
episodes. Her days were a desert; these were the oases in it.
Her being in the wars with men was charged against her as an indelicacy. She said -
I had a woman with me when I could - in towns and lodgings. In the field I always
slept in my armour.
That she and her family had been ennobled by the King was charged against her as
evidence that the source of her deeds was sordid self-seeking. She answered that she had
not asked this grace of the King; it was his own act.
This third trial was ended at last. And once again there was no definite result.
Possibly a fourth trial might succeed in defeating this apparently unconquerable girl.
So the malignant Bishop set himself to work to plan it.
He appointed a commission to reduce the substance of the sixty-six articles to twelve
compact lies, as a basis for the new attempt. This was done. It took several days.
Meantime Cauchon went to Joans cell one day, with Manchon and two of the judges,
Isambard de la Pierre and Martin Ladvenue, to see if he could not manage somehow to
beguile Joan into submitting her mission to the examination and decision of the church
militant - that is to say, to that part of the church militant which was represented by
himself and his creatures.
Joan once more positively refused. Isambard de la Pierre had a heart in his body, and
he so pitied this persecuted girl that he ventured to do a very daring thing; for he asked
her if she would be willing to have her case go before the Council of Basel, and said it
contained as many priests of her party as of the English party.
Joan cried out that she would gladly go before so fairly constructed a tribunal as
that; but before Isambard could say another word, Cauchon turned savagely upon him and
exclaimed -
Shut up, in the devils name!
Then Manchon ventured to do a brave thing, too, though he did it in great fear for his
life. He asked Cauchon if he should enter Joans submission to the Council of Basel
upon the minutes.
No! It is not necessary.
Ah, said poor Joan, reproachfully, You set down everything that is
against me, but you will not set down what is for me.
It was piteous. It would have touched the heart of a brute. But Cauchon was more than
that.
Chapter 14
We were now in the first days of April. Joan was ill. She had fallen ill the 29th of
March, the day after the close of the third trial, and was growing worse when the scene
which I have just described occurred in her cell. It was just like Cauchon to go there and
try to get some advantage out of her weakened state.
Let us note some of the particulars in the new indictment - the Twelve Lies.
Part of the first one says Joan asserts that she has found her salvation. She never
said anything of the kind. It also says she refuses to submit herself to the Church. Not
true. She was willing to submit all her acts to this Rouen tribunal except those done by
command of God in fulfilment of her mission. Those she reserved for the judgement of God.
She refused to recognise Cauchon and his serfs as the Church, but was willing to go before
the Pope or the Council of Basel.
A clause of another of the Twelve says she admits having threatened with death those
who would not obey her. Distinctly false. Another clause says she declares that all she
has done has been done by command of God. What she really said was, all that she had done well - a correction made by herself as you have already seen.
Another of the Twelve says she claims that she has never committed any sin. She never
made any such claim.
Another makes the wearing of the male dress a sin. If it was, she had high Catholic
authority for committing it - that of the Archbishop of Rheims and the tribunal of
Poitiers.
The Tenth Article was resentful against her for pretending that St
Catherine and St Marguerite spoke French and not English, and were French in their
politics.
The Twelve were to be submitted first to the learned doctors of theology of the
University of Paris for approval. They were copied out and ready by the night of April
4th. Then Manchon did another bold thing: he wrote in the margin that many of the Twelve
put statements in Joans mouth which were the exact opposite of what she had said. That fact would not be considered important by the University of Paris, and would not influence
its decision or stir its humanity, in case it had any - which it hadnt when acting
in a political capacity, as at present - but it was a brave thing for that good Manchon to
do, all the same.
The Twelve were sent to Paris next day, April 5th. That afternoon there was a great
tumult in Rouen, and excited crowds were flocking through all their chief streets,
chattering and seeking for news; for a report had gone abroad that Joan of Arc was sick
unto death. In truth these long seances had worn her out, and she was ill indeed. The
heads of the English party were in a state of consternation; for if Joan should die
uncondemned by the Church and go to the grave unsmirched, the pity and the love of the
people would turn her wrongs and sufferings and death into a holy martyrdom, and she would
be even a mightier power in France dead, than she had been when alive.
The Earl of Warwick and the English Cardinal (Winchester) hurried to the castle and
sent messengers flying for physicians. Warwick was a hard man, a rude, coarse man, a man
without compassion. There lay the sick girl stretched in her chains in her iron cage - not
an object to move man to ungentle speech, one would think; yet Warwick spoke right out in
her hearing and said to the physicians -
Mind you take good care of her. The King of England has no mind to have her die a
natural death. She is dear to him, for he bought her dear, and he does not want her to
die, save at the stake. Now then, mind you cure her.
The doctors asked Joan what had made her ill. She said the Bishop of Beauvais had sent
her a fish and she thought it was that.
Then Jean dEstivet burst out on her, and called her names and abused her. He
understood Joan to be charging the Bishop with poisoning her, you see; you see; and that
was not pleasing to him, for he was one of Cauchons most loving and conscienceless
slaves, and it outraged him to have Joan injure his master in the eyes of these great
English chiefs, these being men who could ruin Cauchon and would promptly do it if they
got the conviction that he was capable to saving Joan from the stake by poisoning her, and
thus cheating the English out of all the real value gainable by her purchase from the Duke
of Burgundy.
Joan had a high fever, and the doctors proposed to bleed her. Warwick said -
Be careful about that; she is smart and is capable of killing herself.
He meant that to escape the stake she might undo the bandage and let herself bleed to
death.
But the doctors bled her anyway, and then she was better.
Not for long, though. Jean dEstivet could not hold still, he was so worried and
angry about the suspicion of poisoning which Joan had hinted at; so he came back in the
evening and stormed at her till he brought the fever all back again.
When Warwick heard of this he was in a fine temper, you may be sure, for here was his
prey threatening to escape again, and all through the over-zeal of this meddling fool.
Warwick gave DEstivet a quite admirable cursing - admirable as to strength, I mean,
for it was said by persons of culture that the art of it was not good - and after that the
meddler kept still.
Joan remained ill more than two weeks; then she grew better. She was still very weak,
but she could bear a little persecution now without much danger to her life. It seemed to
Cauchon a good time to furnish it. So he called together some of his doctors of theology
and went to her dungeon. Manchon and I went along to keep the record - that is, to set
down what might be useful to Cauchon, and leave out the rest.
The sight of Joan gave me a shock. Why, she was but a shadow! It was difficult for me
to realise that this frail creature with the sad face and drooping form was the same Joan
of Arc that I had so often seen, all fire and enthusiasm, charging through a hail of death
and the lightning and thunder of the guns at the head of her battalions. It wrung my heart
to see her looking like this.
But Cauchon was not touched. He made another of those conscienceless speeches of his,
all dripping with hypocrisy and guile. He told Joan that among her answers had been some
which had seemed to endanger religion; and as she was ignorant and without knowledge of
the Scriptures, he had brought some good and wise men to instruct her, if she desired it.
Said he, We are churchmen, and disposed by our good will as well as by our vocation
to procure for you the salvation of your soul and your body, in every way in our power,
just as we would do the life for our nearest kin or for ourselves. In this we but follow
the example of Holy Church, who never closes the refuge of her bosom against any that are
willing to return.
Joan thanked him for these sayings and said:
I seem to be in danger of death from this malady; if it be the pleasure of God
that I die here, I beg that I may be heard in confession and also receive my Saviour; and
that I may be buried in consecrated ground.
Cauchon thought he saw his opportunity at last; this weakened body had the fear of an
unblessed death before it and the pains of hell to follow. This stubborn spirit would
surrender now. So he spoke out and said -
Then if you want the Sacraments, you must do as all good Catholics do, and submit
to the Church.
He was eager for her answer; but when it came there was no surrender in it, she still
stood her guns. She turned her head away and said wearily -
I have nothing more to say.
Cauchon's temper was stirred, and he raised his voice threateningly and said that the
more she was in danger of death the more she ought to amend her life; and again he refused
the things she begged for unless she would submit to the Church. Joan said -
If I die in this prison I beg you to have me buried in holy ground; if you will
not, I cast myself upon my Saviour.
There was some more conversation of the like sort, then Cauchon demanded again, and
imperiously, that she submit herself and all her deeds to the Church. His threatening and
storming went for nothing. That body was weak, but the spirit in it was the spirit of Joan
of Arc; and out of that came the steadfast answer which these people were already so
familiar with and detested so sincerely -
Let come what may, I will neither do nor say any otherwise than I have said
already in your tribunals.
Then the good theologians took turn about and worried her with reasonings and arguments
and Scriptures; and always they held the lure of the Sacraments before her famishing soul,
and tried to bribe her with them to surrender her mission to the Churchs judgement -
that is to their judgement - as if they were the Church! But it availed
nothing. I could have told them that beforehand, if they had asked me. But they never
asked me anything; I was too humble a creature for their notice.
Then the interview closed with a threat; a threat of fearful import; a threat
calculated to make a Catholic Christian feel as if the ground were sinking from under him
-
The Church calls upon you to submit, disobey, and she will abandon you as it you
were a pagan!
Think of being abandoned by the Church! - that august Power in whose hands is lodged
the fate of the human race, whose sceptre stretches beyond the furthest constellation that
twinkles in the sky, whose authority is over the millions that live in and over the
billions that wait trembling in purgatory for ransom or doom; whose smile opens the gates
of Heaven to you, whose frown delivers you to the fires of everlasting hell; a Power whose
dominion overshadows and belittles earthly empire as earthly empire overshadows and
belittles the pomps and shows of a village. To be abandoned by ones King - yes, that
is death, and death is much; but to be abandoned by Rome, to be abandoned by the Church!
Ah, death is nothing to that, for that is consignment to endless life - and such
a life!
I could see the red waves tossing in that shoreless lake of fire, I could see the black
myriads of the damned rise out of them and struggle an sink and rise again; and I knew
that Joan was seeing what I saw, while she paused musing; and I believed that she must
yield now, and in truth I hoped she would, for these men were able to make the threat good
and deliver her over to eternal suffering, and I knew that it was in their natures to do
it.
But I was foolish to think that thought and hope that hope. Joan of Arc was not made as
others are made. Fidelity to principle, fidelity to truth, fidelity to her word, all these
were in her bone and in her flesh - they were parts of her. She could not change, she
could not cast them out. She was the very genius of Fidelity, she was Steadfastness
incarnated. Where she had taken her stand and planted her foot, there she would abide;
hell itself could not move her from that place.
Her Voices had not given her permission to make the sort of submission that was
required, therefore she would stand fast. She would wait, in perfect obedience, let come
what might.
My heart was like lead in my body when I went out from that dungeon; but she - she was
serene, she was not troubled. She had done what she believed to be her duty, and that was
sufficient; the consequences were not her affair. The last thing she said, that time, was
full of this serenity, full of contented repose -
I am a good Christian born and baptised, and a good Christian I will die.
Chapter 15
Two weeks went by; the second of May was come, the chill was departed out of the air,
the wild flowers were springing in the glades and glens, the birds were piping in the
woods, all nature was brilliant with sunshine, all spirits were renewed and refreshed, all
hearts glad, the world was alive with hope and cheer, the plain beyond the Seine stretched
away soft and rich and green, the river was limpid and lovely, the leafy islands were
dainty to see, and flung still daintier reflections of themselves upon the shining water;
and from the tall bluffs above the bridge Rouen was become again a delight to the eye, the
most exquisite and satisfying picture of a town that nestles under the arch of heaven
anywhere.
When I say that all hearts were glad and hopeful, I mean it in a general sense. There
were exceptions - we who were the friends of Joan of Arc, also Joan of Arc herself, that
poor girl shut up there in that frowning stretch of mighty walls and towers: brooding in
darkness so close to the flooding downpour of sunshine yet so impossibly far away from it;
so longing for any little glimpse of it, yet so implacably denied it by those wolves in
the black gowns who were plotting her death and the blackening of her good name.
Cauchon was ready to go on with his miserable work. He had a new scheme to try, now. He
would see what persuasion could do - argument, eloquence, poured out upon the incorrigible
captive from the mouth of a trained expert. That was his plan. But the reading of the
Twelve Articles to her was not a part of it. No, even Cauchon was ashamed to lay that
monstrosity before her; even he had a remnant of shame in him, away down deep, a million
fathoms deep, and that remnant asserted itself now and prevailed.
On this fair second of May, then, the black company gathered itself together in the
spacious chamber at the end of the great hall of the castle - the Bishop of Beauvais on
his throne, and sixty-two minor judges massed before him, with the guards and recorders at
their stations and the orator at his desk.
Then we heard the far clank of chains, and presently Joan entered with her keepers and
took her seat upon her isolated bench. She was looking well, now, and most fair and
beautiful after her fortnights rest from wordy persecution.
She glanced about and noted the orator. Doubtless she divined the situation.
The orator had written his speech all out, and had it in his hand, though he held it
back of him out of sight. It was so thick that is resembled a book. He began flowingly,
but in the midst of a flowery period his memory failed him and he had to snatch a furtive
glance at his manuscript - which much injured the effect. Again this happened, and then a
third time. The poor mans face was red with embarrassment, the whole great house was
pitying him, which made the matter worse; the Joan dropped in a remark which completed his
trouble. She said:
Read your book - and then I will answer you!
Why, it was almost cruel the way those mouldy veterans laughed; and as for the orator,
he looked so flustered and helpless that almost anybody would have pitied him, and I had
difficulty to keep from doing it myself. Yes, Joan was feeling very well after her rest,
and the native mischief that was in her lay near the surface. It did not show, when she
made the remark, but I knew it was close in there back of the words.
When the orator had gotten back his composure he did a wise thing; for he followed
Joans advice: he made no more attempts at sham impromptu oratory, but read his
speech straight from his book. In the speech he compressed the Twelve Articles
into six and made these his text.
Every now and then he stopped and asked questions, and Joan replied. The nature of the
church militant was explained, and once more Joan was asked to submit herself to it.
She gave her usual answer.
Then she was asked -
Do you believe the Church can err?
I believe it cannot err; but for those deeds and words of mine which were done
and uttered by command of God I will answer to him alone.
Will you say that you have no judge upon earth? Is not our Holy Father the Pope
your judge?
I will say nothing to you about it. I have a good Master who is our Lord, and to
Him I will submit all.
Then came these terrible words:
If you do not submit to the Church you will be pronounced a heretic by these
judges here present and burned at the stake!
Ah, that would have smitten you or me dead with fright, but it only roused the lion
heart of Joan of Arc, and in her answer rang that martial note which had used to stir her
soldiers like a bugle-call -
I will not say otherwise than I have said already; and if I saw the fire before
me I would say it again!
It was uplifting to hear her battle-voice once more and see that battle-light burn in
her eye. Many there were stirred; every man that was a man was stirred, whether
friend or foe; and Manchon risked his life again, good soul, for he wrote in the margin of
the record in good plain letters these brave words: Superba responsio!
and there they have remained these sixty years, and there you may read them to this day.
Superba responsio! Yes, it was just that. For this superb
answer came from the lips of a girl of nineteen with death and hell staring her in
the face.
Of course the matter of the male attire was gone over again, and as usual at wearisome
length; also, as usual, the customary bribe was offered: if she would discard that dress
voluntarily they would let her hear mass. But she answered as she had often answered
before -
I will go in a womans robe to all services of the church if I may be
permitted, but I will resume the other dress when I return to my cell.
They set several traps for her in a tentative form; that is to say, they placed
supposititious propositions before her and cunningly tried to commit her to one end of the
propositions without committing themselves to the other. But she always saw the game and
spoiled it. The trap was in this form -
Would you be willing to do so and so if we should give you leave?
Her answer always in this form or to this effect:
When you give me leave, then you will know.
Yes, Joan was at her best that second of May. She had all her wits about her, and they
could not catch her anywhere. It was a long, long session, and all the old ground was
fought over again, foot by foot, and the orator-expert worked all his persuasions, all his
eloquence; but the result was the familiar one - a drawn battle, the sixty-two retiring
upon their base, the solitary enemy holding her original position within her original
lines.
Chapter 16
The brilliant weather, the heavenly weather, the bewitching weather made
everybodys heart to sing, as I have told you; yes, Rouen was feeling light-hearted
and gay, and most willing and ready to break out and laugh upon the least occasion; and so
when the news went around that the young girl in the tower had scored another defeat
against Bishop Cauchon there was abundant laughter - abundant laughter among the citizens
of both parties, for they all hated the Bishop. It is true, the English-hearted majority
of the people wanted Joan burned, but that did not keep them from laughing at the man they
hated. It would have been perilous for anybody to laugh at the English chiefs or at the
majority of Cauchons assistant judges, but to laugh at Cauchon or DEstivet and
Loyseleur was safe - nobody would report it.
The difference between Cauchon and cochon [hog, pig] was
not noticeable in speech, and so there was plenty of opportunity for puns: the
opportunities were not thrown away.
Some of the jokes got well worn in the course of two or three months, from repeated
use; for every time Cauchon started a new trial the folk said The sow has littered [Cochonner,
to litter, to farrow; also, 'to make a mess of!'] again; and every time a
trial failed they said it over again, with its other meaning, The hog has made a
mess of it.
And so, on the third of May, No=EBl and I, drifting about the town, heard many a
wide-mouthed lout let go his joke and his laugh, and then move to the next group, proud of
his wit, and happy to work it off again -
Ods blood, the sow has littered five times, and five times has made a mess
of it!
And now and then one was bold enough to say - but he said it softly -
Sixty-three and the might of England against a girl, and she camps on the field
five times!
Cauchon lived in the great palace of the Archbishop, and it was guarded by English
soldiery; but no matter, there was never a dark night but the walls showed, next morning,
that the rude joker had been there with his paint and brush. Yes, he had been there, and
had smeared the sacred walls with pictures of hogs in all attitudes except flattering
ones; hogs clothed in a Bishops vestments and wearing a Bishops mitre
irreverently cocked on the side of their heads.
Cauchon raged and cursed over his defeats and his impotence during seven days, then he
conceived a new scheme. You shall see what it was; for you have not cruel hearts, and you
would never guess it.
On the ninth of May there was a summons, and Manchon and I got our materials together
and started. But this time we were to go to one of the other towers - not the one which
was Joans prison. It was round and grim and massive, and built of the plainest and
thickest and solidest masonry - a dismal and forbidding structure. [The lower half of it remains today just as it was then; the upper
half is of a later date. - Translator]
We entered the circular room on the ground floor, and I saw what turned me sick - the
instruments of torture and the executions standing ready! Here you have the black heart of
Cauchon at the blackest, here you have the proof that in his nature there was no such
thing as pity. One wonders if he ever knew his mother or ever had a sister.
Cauchon was there, and the Vice-Inquisitor and the Abbot of St Corneille; also six
others, among them that false Loyseleur. The guards were in their places, the rack was
there, and by it stood the executioner and his aids in their crimson hose and doublets,
meet colour for their bloody trade. This picture of Joan rose before me stretched upon the
rack, her feet tied to one end of it, her wrists to the other, and those red giants
turning the windlass and puling her limbs out of their sockets. It seemed to me that I
could hear the bones snap and the flesh tear apart, and I did not see how that body of
anointed servants of the merciful Jesus could sit there and look so placid and
indifferent.
After a little, Joan arrived and was brought in. She saw the rack, she saw its
attendants, and the same picture which I had been seeing must have risen in her mind; but
do you think she quailed, do you think she shuddered? No, there was no sign of that sort.
She straightened herself up, and there was a slight curl of scorn about her lip; but as
for fear, she showed not a vestige of it.
This was a memorable session, but it was the shortest one of all the list. When Joan
had taken her seat a r=E9sum=E9 of her crimes was read to her. Then Cauchon
made a solemn speech. In it he said that in the course of her several trials Joan had
refused to answer some of the questions and had answered others with lies, but that now he
was going to have the truth out of her, and the whole of it.
His manner was full of confidence this time; he was sure he had found a way at last to
break this childs stubborn spirit and make her beg and cry. He would score a victory
this time and stop the mouths of the jokers of Rouen. You see, he was only just a man,
after all, and couldnt stand ridicule any better than other people. He talked high,
and his splotchy face lighted itself up with all the shifting tints and signs of evil
pleasure and promised triumph - purple, yellow, red, green - they were all there, with
sometimes the dull and spongy blue of a drowned man, the uncanniest of them all. And
finally he burst out in a great passion and said -
There is the rack, and there are its ministers! You will reveal all, now, or be
put to the torture. Speak.
Then she made that great answer, which will live for ever; made it without fuss or
bravado, and yet how fine and noble was the sound of it -
I will tell you nothing more than I told you; no not even if you tear the limbs
from my body. And even if in my pain I did say something otherwise, I would
always say afterwards that it was the torture that spoke and not I.
There was no crushing that spirit. You should have seen Cauchon. Defeated again, and he
had not dreamed of such a thing. I heard it said next day, around the town, that he had a
full confession, all written out, in his pocket and all ready for Joan to sign. I do not
know that that was true, but it probably was, for her mark signed at the bottom of a
confession would be the kind of evidence (for effect with the public) which Cauchon and
his people would particularly value, you know.
No, there was no crushing that spirit, and no beclouding that clear mind. Consider the
depth, the wisdom of that answer, coming from an ignorant girl. Why, there were not six
men in the world who had ever reflected that words forced out of a person by horrible
tortures were not necessarily words of verity and truth, yet this unlettered peasant girl
put her finger upon that flaw with an unerring instinct. I had always supposed that
torture brought out the truth - everybody supposed it; and when Joan came out with those
simple common-sense words they seemed to flood the place with light. It was like a
lightning-flash at midnight which suddenly reveals a fair valley sprinkled over with
silver streams and gleaming villages and farmsteads where was only an impenetrable world
of darkness before. Manchon stole a sidewise look at me, and his face was full of
surprise; and there was the like to be seen in other faces there. Consider - they were
old, and deeply cultured, yet here was a village maid able to teach them something which
they had not known before. I heard one of them mutter -
Verily it is a wonderful creature. She has laid her hand upon an accepted truth
that is as old as the world, and it has crumbled to dust and rubbish under her touch. Now
whence got she that marvellous insight?
The judges laid their heads together and began to talk low. It was plain, from chance
words which one caught now and then, that Cauchon and Loyseleur were insisting upon the
application of the torture, and that most of the others were urgently objecting.
Finally Cauchon broke out with a good deal of asperity in his voice and ordered Joan
back to her dungeon. That was a happy surprise for me. I was not expecting that the Bishop
would yield.
When Manchon came home that night he said he had found out why the torture was not
applied. There were two reasons. One was, a fear that Joan might die under the torture,
which would not suit the English at all; the other was, that the torture would effect
nothing if Joan was going to take back everything she said under its pains; and as to
putting her mark to a confession, it was believed that not even the rack could ever make
her do that.
So all Rouen laughed again, and kept it up for three days, saying -
The sow has littered six times, and made six messes of it.
And the palace walls got a new decoration - a mitred hog carrying a discarded rack home
on its shoulder, and Loyseleur weeping in its wake. Many rewards were offered for the
capture of these painters, but nobody applied. Even the English guard feigned blindness
and would not see the artists at work.
The Bishops anger was very high now. He could not reconcile himself to the idea
of giving up the torture. It was the pleasantest idea he had invented yet, and he would
not cast it by. So he called in some of his satellites on the twelfth, and urged the
torture again. But it was a failure. With some, Joans speech had wrought an effect;
others feared she might die under the torture; others did not believe that any amount of
suffering could make her put her mark to a lying confession. There were fourteen men
present, including the Bishop. Eleven of them voted dead against the torture, and stood
their ground in spite of Cauchons abuse. Two voted with the Bishop and insisted upon
the torture. These two were Loyseleur and the orator - the man whom Joan had bidden to
read his book Thomas de Courcelles, the renowned pleader, and master of
eloquence.
Age has taught me charity of speech; but it fails me when I think of those three names
- Cauchon, Courcelles, Loyseleur.
Chapter 17
Another ten days wait. The great theologians of that treasury of all valuable
knowledge and all wisdom, the University of Paris, were still weighing and considering and
discussing the Twelve Lies.
I had but little to do, these ten days, so I spent them mainly in walks about the town
with Noël. But there was no pleasure in them, our spirits being so burdened with cares,
and the outlook for Joan growing so steadily darker and darker all the time. And then we
naturally contrasted our circumstances with hers: this freedom and sunshine, with her
darkness and chains; our comradeship, with her lonely estate; our alleviations of one sort
and another, with her destitution in all. She was used to liberty, but now she had none;
she was an out-of-door creature by nature and habit, but now she was shut up day and night
in a steel cage like an animal; she was used to the light, but now she was always in a
gloom where all objects about her were dim and spectral; she was used to the thousand
various sounds which are the cheer and music of a busy life, but now she heard only the
monotonous footfall of the sentry pacing his watch; she had been fond of talking with her
mates, but now there was no one to talk to; she had had an easy laugh, but it was gone
dumb, now; she had been born for comradeship, and blithe and busy work, and all manner of
joyous activities, but here were only dreariness, and leaden hours, and weary inaction,
and brooding stillness, and thoughts that travel day and night and night and day round and
round in the same circle, and wear the brain and break the heart with weariness. It was
death in life; yes, death in life, that is what it must have been. And there was another
hard thing about it all. A young girl in trouble needs the soothing solace and support and
sympathy of persons of her own sex, and the delicate offices and gentle ministries which
only these can furnish; yet in all these months of gloomy captivity in her dungeon Joan
never saw the face of a girl or a woman. Think how her heart would have leaped to see such
a face.
Consider. If you would realise how great Joan of Arc was, remember that it was out of
such a place and such circumstances that she came week after week and month after month
and confronted the master intellects of France single-handed, and baffled their cunningest
schemes, defeated their ablest plans, detected and avoided their secretest traps and
pitfalls, broke their lines, repelled their assaults, and camped on the field after every
engagement; steadfast always, true to her faith and her ideals; defying torture, defying
the stake, and answering threats of eternal death and the pains of hell with a simple
Let come what may, here I take my stand and will abide.
Yes, if you would realise how great was the soul, how profound the wisdom, and how
luminous the intellect of Joan of Arc, you must study her there, where she fought out that
long fight all alone - and not merely against the subtlest brains and deepest learning of
France, but against the ignoblest deceits, the meanest treacheries, and the hardest hearts
to be found in any land, pagan or Christian.
She was great in battle - we all know that; great in foresight; great in loyalty and
patriotism; great in persuading discontented chiefs and reconciling conflicting interests
and passions; great in the ability to discover merit and genius wherever it lay hidden;
great in picturesque and eloquent speech; supremely great in the gift of firing the hearts
of hopeless men with noble enthusiasms, the gift of turning hares into heroes, slaves and
skulkers into battalions that march to death with songs upon their lips. But all these are
exalting activities; they keep hand and heart and brain keyed up to their work: there is
the joy of achievement, the inspiration of stir and movement, the applause which hails
success; the soul is overflowing with life and energy, the faculties are at white heat;
weariness, despondency, inertia - these do not exist.
Yes Joan of Arc was great always, great everywhere, but she was greatest in the Rouen
trials. There she rose above the limitations and infirmities of our human nature, and
accomplished under blighting and unnerving and hopeless conditions all that her splendid
equipment of moral and intellectual forces could have accomplished if they had been
supplemented by the mighty helps of hope and cheer and light, the presence of friendly
faces, and a fair and equal fight, with the great world looking on and wondering.
Chapter 18
Toward the end of the ten-day interval the University of Paris rendered its decision
concerning the Twelve Articles. By this finding, Joan was guilty upon all the counts: she
must renounce her errors and make satisfaction, or be abandoned to the secular arm for
punishment.
The Universitys mind was probably already made up before the Articles were laid
before it; yet it took it from the fifth to the eighteenth to produce its verdict. I think
the delay may have been caused by temporary difficulties concerning two points:
- As to who the fiends were who were represented in Joans Voices;
- As to whether her saints spoke French only.
You understand, the University decided emphatically that it was fiends who spoke in
those Voices; it would need to prove that, and did it. It found out who the fiends were,
and named them in the verdict: Belial, Satan and Behemoth. This has always seemed a
doubtful thing to me, and not entitled to much credit. I think so for this reason: if the
University had actually known it was those three, it would for very consistencys
sake have told how it knew it, and not stopped with the mere assertion, since it had made
Joan explain how she knew they were not fiends. Does not that seem reasonable? To my mind
the Universitys position was weak, and I will tell you why. It had claimed that
Joans angels were devils in disguise, and we all know that devils do disguise
themselves as angels; up to that point the Universitys position was strong; but you
see yourself that it eats its own argument when it turns around and pretends that = it can tell who such apparitions are, while denying the like ability to a person with as good
a head on her shoulders as the best one the University could produce.
The doctors of the University had to see those creatures in order to know; and if Joan
was deceived, it is argument that they in their turn could also be deceived, for their
insight and judgement were surely not clearer than hers.
As to the other point which I have thought may have proved a difficulty and cost the
University delay, I will touch but a moment upon that, and pass on. The University decided
that it was blasphemy for Joan to say that her saints spoke French and not English, and
were on the French side in political sympathies. I think that the thing which troubled the
doctors of theology was this: they had decided that the three Voices were Satan and two
other devils; but they had also decided that these Voices were not on the French side -
thereby tacitly asserting that they were on the English side; and if on the English side,
then they must be angels and not devils. Otherwise, the situation was embarrassing. You
see, the University being the wisest and deepest and most erudite body in the world, it
would like to be logical if it could, for the sake of its reputation; therefore it would
study and study, days and days, trying to find some good common-sense reason for proving
the Voices devils in Article No. 1 and proving them angels in Article No.10. However, they
had to give it up. They found no way out; and so, to this day the Universitys
verdict remains just so - devils in No.1, angels in No.10; and no way to reconcile the
discrepancy.
The envoys brought the verdict to Rouen, and with it a letter for Cauchon which was
full of fervid praise. The University complimented him on his zeal in hunting down this
woman whose venom had infected the faithful of the whole West, and as
recompense it as good as promised him a crown of imperishable glory in heaven.
Only that! - a crown in heaven; a promissory note and no indorser; always
something away off yonder; and not a word about the Archbishopric of Rouen, which was the
thing Cauchon was destroying his soul for. A crown in heaven; it must have sounded like a
sarcasm to him, after all his hard work. What should he do in heaven? he did not
know anybody there.
On the nineteenth of May a court of fifty judges sat in the archiepiscopal palace to
discuss Joans fate. A few wanted her delivered over to the secular arm at once for
punishment, but the rest insisted that she be once more charitably admonished
first.
So the same court met in the castle on the twenty-third, and Joan was brought to the
bar. Pierre Maurice, a canon of Rouen, made a speech to Joan in which he admonished her to
save her life and her soul by renouncing her errors and surrendering to the Church. He
finished with a stern threat: if she remained obstinate the damnation of her soul was
certain, the destruction of her body probable. But Joan was immovable. She said -
If I were under sentence, and saw the fire before me, and the executioner ready
to light it - more, if I were in the fire itself, I would say none but the things which I
have said in these trials; and I would abide by them till I died.
A deep silence followed, now, which endured some moments. It lay upon me like a weight.
I knew it for an omen. Then Cauchon, grave and solemn, turned to Pierre Maurice -
Have you anything further to say?
The priest bowed low, and said -
Nothing, my lord.
Prisoner at the bar, have you anything further to say?
Nothing.
Then the debate is closed. Tomorrow, sentence will be pronounced. Remove the
prisoner.
She seemed to go from the place erect and noble. But I do not know; my sight was dim
with tears.
Tomorrow - twenty-fourth of May! Exactly a year since I saw her go speeding across the
plain at the head of her troops, her silver helmet shining, her silvery cape fluttering in
the wind, her white plumes flowing, her sword held aloft; saw her charge the Burgundian
camp three times, and carry it; saw her wheel to the right and spur for the Dukes
reserves; saw her fling herself against it in the last assault she was ever to make. And
now that fatal day was come again - and see what it was bringing!
Chapter 19
Joan had been adjudged guilty of heresy, sorcery, and all the other terrible crimes set
forth in the Twelve Articles, and her life was in Cauchons hands at last. He could
send her to the stake at once. His work was finished now, you think? He was satisfied? Not
at all. What would his Archbishopric be worth if the people should get the idea into their
heads that this faction of interested priests, slaving under the English lash, had wrongly
condemned and burned Joan of Arc, Deliverer of France? That would be to make her a holy
martyr. Then her spirit would rise from her bodys ashes, a thousand-fold reinforced,
and sweep the English domination into the sea, and Cauchon along with it. No, the victory
was not complete yet. Joans guilt must be established by evidence which would
satisfy the people. Where was that evidence to be found? There was only one person in the
world who could furnish it - Joan of Arc herself. She must condemn herself, and
in public - at least she must seem to do it.
But how was this to be managed? Weeks had been spent already in trying to get her to
surrender - time wholly wasted; what was to persuade her now? Torture had been threatened,
the fire had been threatened; what was left? Illness, deadly fatigue, and the sight of the
fire, the presence of the fire! That was left.
Now that was a shrewd thought. She was but a girl, after all, and, under illness and
exhaustion, subject to a girl's weaknesses.
Yes, it was shrewdly thought. She had tacitly said, herself, that under the bitter
pains of the rack they would be able to extort a false confession from her. It was a hint
worth remembering, and it was remembered.
She had furnished another hint at the same time: that as soon as the pains were gone,
she would retract the confession. That hint was also remembered.
She had herself taught them what to do, you see. First, they must wear out her
strength, then frighten her with the fire. Second, while the fright was on her, she must
be made to sign a paper.
But she would demand a reading of the paper. They could not venture to refuse this,
with the public there to hear. Suppose that during the reading her courage should return?
she would refuse to sign, then. Very well, even that difficulty could be got over. They
could read a short paper of no importance, then slip a long and deadly one into its place
and trick her into signing that.
Yet there was still one other difficulty. If they made her seem to abjure, that would
free her from the death penalty. They could keep her in a prison of the Church, but they
could not kill her. That would not answer; for only her death would content the English.
alive she was a terror, in a prison or out of it. She had escaped from two prisons
already.
But even that difficulty could be managed. Cauchon would make promises to her; in
return, she would promise to leave off the male dress. He would violate his promises, and
that would so situate her that she would not be able to keep hers. Her lapse would condemn
her to the stake, and the stake would be ready.
There were the several moves; there was nothing to do but to make them, each in its
order, and the game was won. One might almost name the day that the betrayed girl, the
most innocent creature in France, and the noblest, would go to her pitiful death.
And the time was favourable - cruelly favourable. Joans spirit had as yet
suffered no decay, it was as sublime and masterful as ever; but her bodys forces had
been steadily wasting away in those last ten days, and a strong mind needs a healthy body
for its rightful support.
The world knows, now, that Cauchons plan was as I have sketched it to you, but
the world did not know it at that time. There are sufficient indications that Warwick and
all the other English chiefs except the highest one - the Cardinal of Winchester - were
not let into the secret; also, that only Loyseleur and Beaupère, on the French side, knew
the scheme. Sometimes I have doubted if even Loyseleur and Beaupère knew the whole of it
at first. However, if any did, it was these two.
It is usual to let the condemned pass their last night of life in peace, but this grace
was denied to poor Joan, if one may credit the rumours of the time. Loyseleur was smuggled
into her presence, and in the character of priest, friend, and secret partisan of France
and hater of England, he spent some hours in beseeching her to do the only right and
righteous thing - submit to the Church, as a good Christian should; and that then
she would straightway get out of the clutches of the dreaded English and be transferred to
the Churchs prison, where she would be honourably used and have women about her for
jailers. He knew where to touch her. He knew how odious to her was the presence of her
rough and profane English guards; he knew that her Voices had vaguely promised something
which she interpreted to be escape, rescue, release of some sort, and the chance to burst
upon France once more and victoriously complete the great work which she had been
commissioned of Heaven to do. Also there was that other thing: if her failing body could
be further weakened by loss of rest and sleep, now, her tired mind would be dazed and
drowsy on the morrow, and in ill condition to stand out against persuasions, threats, and
the sight of the stake, and also be purblind to traps and snares which it would be swift
to detect when in its normal estate.
I do not need to tell you that there was no rest for me that night. Nor for Noël. We
went to the main gate of the city before nightfall, with a hope in our minds, based upon
that vague prophecy of Joans Voices which seemed to promise a rescue by force at the
last moment. The immense news had flown swiftly far and wide that at last Joan of Arc was
condemned, and would be sentenced and burned alive on the morrow; and so, crowds were
being refused admission by the soldiery; these being people who brought doubtful passes or
none at all. We scanned these crowds eagerly, but there was nothing about them to indicate
that they were our old war-comrades in disguise, and certainly there were no familiar
faces among them. And so, when the gate was closed at last, we turned away grieved, and
more disappointed than we cared to admit, either in speech or thought.
The streets were surging tides of excited men. It was difficult to make ones way.
Toward midnight our aimless tramp brought us to the neighbourhood of the beautiful church
of St Ouen, and there all was bustle and work. The square was a wilderness of torches and
people; and through a guarded passage dividing the pack, labourers were carrying planks
and timbers and disappearing with them through the gate of the churchyard. We asked what
was going forward; the answer was -
Scaffolds and the stake. Dont you know that the French witch is to be burnt
in the morning?
Then we went away. We had no heart for that place. At dawn we were at the city gate
again; this time with a hope which our wearied bodies and fevered minds magnified into a
large probability. We had heard a report that the Abbot of Jumièges with all his monks
was coming to witness the burning. Our desire, abetted by our imagination, turned those
nine hundred monks into Joans old campaigners, and their Abbot into La Hire or the
Bastard or DAlençon; and we watched them file in, unchallenged, the multitude
respectfully dividing and uncovering while they passed, with our heart in our throats and
our eyes swimming with tears of joy and pride and exultation, and we tried to catch
glimpses of the faces under the cowls, and were prepared to give signal to any recognised
face that were Joans men and ready and eager to kill and be killed in the good
cause. How foolish we were; but we were young, you know, and youth hopeth all things,
believeth all things.
Chapter 20
In the morning I was at my official post. It was on a platform raised the height of a
man, in the churchyard, under the eaves of St Ouen. On this same platform was a crowd of
priests and important citizens, and several lawyers. Abreast it, with a small space
between, was another and larger platform, handsomely canopied against sun and rain, and
richly carpeted, also it was furnished with comfortable chairs, and with two which were
more sumptuous than the others, and raised above the general level. One of these two was
occupied by a prince of the royal blood of England, his Eminence the Cardinal of
Winchester; the other by Cauchon, Bishop of Beauvais. In the rest of the chairs sat three
bishops, the Vice-Inquisitor, eight abbots, and the sixty-two friars and lawyers who had
sat as Joans judges in her late trials.
Twenty steps in front of the platforms was another - a table-topped pyramid of stone,
built up in retreating courses, thus forming steps. Out of this rose that grisly thing the
stake; about the stake bundles of fagots and firewood were piled. On the ground at the
base of the pyramid stood three crimson figures, the executioner and his assistants. At
their feet lay what had been a goodly heap of brands, but was now a smokeless nest of
ruddy coals; a fagot or two from this was a supplemental supply of wood and fagots
compacted into a pile shoulder high and containing as much as six pack-horse loads. Think
of that. We seem so delicately made, so destructable, so insubstantial; yet it is easier
to reduce a granite statue to ashes than it is to do that with a mans body.
The sight of stake sent physical pains tingling down the nerves of my body; and yet,
turn as I would, my eyes would keep coming back to it, such fascination has the gruesome
and the terrible for us.
The space occupied by the platforms and the stake was kept open by a wall of English
soldiery, standing elbow to elbow, erect and stalwart figures, fine and sightly in their
polished steel; while from behind them on every hand stretched far away a level plain of
human heads; and there was no window and no housetop within our view, howsoever distant,
but was black with patches and masses of people.
But there was no noise, no stir; it was as if the world was dead. The impressiveness of
this silence and solemnity was deepened by a leaden twilight, for the sky was hidden by a
pall of low-hanging storm-clouds; and above the remote horizon faint winkings of
heat-lightning played, and now and then one caught the dull mutterings and complainings of
distant thunder.
At last the stillness was broken. From beyond the square rose in indistinct sound, but
familiar - curt, crisp phrases of command; next I saw the plain of heads dividing, and the
steady swing of a marching host was glimpsed between. My heart leaped for a moment. Was it
La Hire and his hellions? No - that was not their gait. No, it was the prisoner and her
escort; it was Joan of Arc, under guard, that was coming; my spirits sank as low as they
had been before. Weak as she was, they made her walk; they would increase her weakness all
they could. The distance was not great - it was but a few hundred yards - but short as it
was it was a heavy tax upon one who had been lying chained in one spot for months, and
whose feet had lost their powers from inaction. Yes, for a year Joan had know only the
cool damps of a dungeon, and now she was dragging herself through this sultry summer heat,
this airless and suffocating void. As she entered the gate, drooping with exhaustion,
there was that creature Loyseleur at her side with his head bent to her ear. We knew
afterwards that he had been with her again this morning in the prison wearying her with
his persuasions and enticing her with false promises, and that he was now still at the
same work at the gate, imploring her, and assuring her that if she would do this all would
be well with her: she would be rid of the dreaded English and find safety in the powerful
shelter and protection of the Church. A miserable man, a stony hearted man!
The moment Joan was seated on the platform she closed her eyes and allowed her chin to
fall; and so sat with her hands nestling in her lap, indifferent to everything, caring for
nothing but rest. And she was so white again; white as alabaster.
How the faces of that packed mass of humanity lighted up with interest and with what
intensity all eyes gazed upon this fragile girl! And how natural it was, for these people
realised that at last they were looking upon that person whom they had so long hungered to
see; a person whose name and fame filled all Europe, and made all other names and all
other renowns insignificant by comparison: Joan of Arc, the wonder of the time, and
destined to be the wonder of all times! And I could read as by print, in their marvelling
countenances, the words that were drifting through their minds: Can it be true; is
it believable, that it is this little creature, this girl, this child with the good face,
the sweet face, the beautiful face, the dear and bonny face, that has carried fortresses
by storm, charged at the head of victorious armies, blown the might of England out of her
path with a breath, and fought a long campaign, solitary and alone, against the massed
brains and learning of France - and had won if the fight had been fair!
Evidently Cauchon had grown afraid of Manchon because of his pretty apparent leanings
toward Joan, for another recorder was in the chief place here, which left my master and me
nothing to do but sit idle and look on.
Well, I supposed that everything had been done which could be thought of to tire
Joans body and mind, but it was a mistake; one more device had been invented. This
was to preach a long sermon to her in that oppressive heat.
When the preacher began, she cast up one distressed and disappointed look, then dropped
her head again. This preacher was Guillaume Erard, an oratorical celebrity. He got his
text from the Twelve Lies. He emptied upon Joan all the calumnies, in detail, that had
been bottled up in that mess of venom, and called her all the brutal names that the Twelve
were labelled with, working himself into a whirlwind of fury as he went on; but his
labours were wasted, she seemed lost in dreams, she made no sign, she did not seem to
hear. At last he launched the apostrophe:
O France, how hast thou been abused! Thou hast always been the home of
Christianity; but now, Charles, who calls himself thy King and governor, indorses, like
the heretic and schismatic that he is, the words and deeds of a worthless and infamous
woman! Joan raised her head, and her eyes began to burn and flash. The preacher
turned toward her: It is to you, Joan, that I speak, and I tell you that your King
is schismatic and a heretic!
Ah, he might abuse her to his hearts content; she could endure that; but
to her dying moment she could never hear in patience a word against that ingrate, that
treacherous dog our King, whose proper place was here, at this moment, sword in hand,
routing these reptiles and saving the most noble servant that ever King had in this world
- and he would have been there if he had not been what I have called him.
Joans loyal soul was outraged, and she turned upon the preacher and flung out a few
words with a spirit which the crowd recognised as being in accordance with the Joan of Arc
traditions -
By my faith, sir! I make bold to say and swear, on pain of death, that he is the
most noble Christian of all Christians, and the best lover of the faith and the
Church!
There was an explosion of applause from the crowd, which angered the preacher, for he
had been aching long to hear an expression like this, and now that it was come at last it
had fallen to the wrong person: he had done all the work, the other had carried off all
the spoil. He stamped his foot and shouted to the sheriff -
Make her shut up!
That made the crowd laugh.
A mob has small respect for a grown man who has to call on a sheriff to protect him
from a sick girl.
Joan had damaged the preachers cause more with one sentence than he had helped it
with a hundred; so he was much put out, and had trouble to get a good start again. But he
neednt have bothered; there was no occasion. It was mainly an English-feeling mob.
It had but obeyed a law of our nature - an irresistible law - to enjoy and applaud a
spirited and promptly delivered retort, no matter who makes it. The mob was with the
preacher; it had been beguiled for a moment, but only that; it would soon return. It was
there to see this girl burnt; so that it got that satisfaction - without too much delay -
it would be content.
Presently the preacher formally summoned Joan to submit to the Church. He made the
demand with confidence, for he had gotten the idea from Loyseleur and Beaupère that she
was worn to the bone, exhausted, and would not be able to put forth any more resistance;
and indeed, to look at her it seemed that they must be right. Nevertheless, she made one
more effort to hold her ground, and said, wearily -
As to that matter, I have answered my judges before. I have told them to report
all that I have said and done to our holy Father the Pope - to whom, and to God first, I
appeal.
Again, out of her native wisdom, she had brought those words of tremendous import, but
was ignorant of their value. But they could have availed her nothing in any case, now,
with the stake there and these thousands of enemies about her. Yet they made every
churchman there blench, and the preacher changed the subject with all haste. Well might
those criminals blench, for Joans appeal of her case to the Pope stripped Cauchon at
once of jurisdiction over it, and annulled all that he and his judges had already done in
the matter and all that they should do in it thenceforth.
Joan went on presently to reiterate, after some further talk, that she had acted by
command of God in her deeds and utterances; then, when an attempt was made to implicate
the King, and friends of hers and his, she stopped that. She said -
I charge my deeds and words upon no one, neither upon my King nor any other. If
there is any fault in them, I am responsible and no other.
She was asked if she would not recant those of her words and deeds which had been
pronounced evil by her judges. Her answer made confusion and damage again:
I submit them to God and the Pope.
The Pope once more! It was very embarrassing. Here was a person who was asked to submit
her case to the Church, and who frankly consents - offers to submit it to the very head of
it. What more could anyone require? How was one to answer such a formidably unanswerable
answer as that?
The worried judges put their heads together and whispered and planned and discussed.
Then they brought forth this sufficiently shambling conclusion - but it was the best they
could do, in so close a place: they said the Pope was so far away; and it was not
necessary to go to him, anyway, because these present judges had sufficient power and
authority to deal with the present case, and were in effect the Church to that
extent. At another time they could have smiled at this conceit, but not now; they were not
comfortable enough, now.
The mob was getting impatient. It was beginning to put on a threatening aspect; it was
tired standing, tired of the scorching heat; and the thunder coming nearer, the lightning
was flashing brighter. It was necessary to hurry this matter to a close. Erard showed Joan
a written form, which had been prepared and made all ready beforehand, and asked her to
abjure.
Abjure? What is abjure?
She did not know the word. It was explained to her by Massieu. She tried to understand,
but she was breaking, under exhaustion, and she could not gather the meaning. It was all a
jumble and confusion of strange words. In her despair she sent out this beseeching cry -
I appeal to the Church universal whether I ought to abjure or no!
Erard exclaimed -
You shall abjure instantly, or instantly be burnt!
She glanced up, at those awful words, and for the first time she saw the stake and the
mass of red coals - redder and angrier than ever, now, under the constantly deepening
storm-gloom. She gasped and staggered up out of her seat muttering and mumbling
incoherently, and gazed vacantly upon the people and the scene about her like one who is
dazed, or thinks he dreams, and does not know where he is.
The priests crowded about her imploring her to sign the paper, there were many voices
beseeching and urging her at once, there was great turmoil and shouting and excitement,
amongst the populace and everywhere.
Sign! sign! from the priests; sign - sign and be saved! And
Loyseleur was urging at her ear, Do as I told you - do not destroy yourself!
Joan said plaintively to these people -
Ah, you do not do well to seduce me.
The judges joined their voices to the others. Yes, even the iron in their hearts melted, and they said -
Oh, Joan, we pity you so! Take back what you have said, or we must deliver you up
to punishment.
And now there was another voice - it was from the other platform - pealing solemnly
above the din: Cauchons - reading the sentence of death!
Joans strength was all spent. She stood looking about her in a bewildered way a
moment, then slowly she sank to her knees, and bowed her head and said -
I submit.
They gave her no time to reconsider - they knew the peril of that. The moment the words
were out of her mouth Massieu was reading to her the abjuration, and she was repeating the
words after him mechanically, unconsciously - and smiling; for her wandering mind
was far away in some happier world.
Then this short paper of six lines was slipped aside and a long one of many pages was
smuggled into its place, and she, noting nothing, put her mark to it, saying, in pathetic
apology, that she did not know how to write. But a secretary of the King of England was
there to take care of that defect; he guided her hand with his own, and wrote her name - Jehanne.
The great scheme was accomplished. She had signed - what? She did not know - but the
others knew. She had signed a paper confessing herself a sorceress, a dealer with devils,
a liar, a blasphemer of God and His angels, a lover of blood, a promoter of sedition,
cruel, wicked, commissioned of Satan; and this signature of hers bound her to resume the
dress of a woman. There were other promises, but that one would answer, without the
others; that one could be made to destroy her.
Loyseleur pressed forward and praised her for having done such a good days
work.
But she was still dreamy, she hardly heard.
Then Cauchon pronounced the words which dissolved the excommunication and restored her
to her beloved Church, with all the dear privileges of worship. Ah, she heard that! You
could see it in the deep gratitude that rose in her face and transfigured it with joy.
But how transient was that happiness! For Cauchon without a tremor of pity in his
voice, added these crushing words -
And that she may repent of her crimes and repeat them no more, she is sentenced
to perpetual imprisonment, with the bread of affliction and the water of anguish!
Perpetual imprisonment! She had never dreamed of that - such a thing had never
been hinted to her by Loyseleur or by any other. Loyseleur had distinctly said and
promised that all would be well with her. And the very last words spoken to
her by Erard, on that very platform, when he was urging her to abjure, was a straight,
unqualified promise - that if she would do it she should go free from captivity.
She stood stunned and speechless a moment; then she remembered, with such solacement as
the thought could furnish, that by another clear promise - a promise made by Cauchon
himself - she would at last be the Churchs captive, and have women about her in
place of a brutal foreign soldiery. So she turned to the body of priests and said, with a
sad resignation -
Now, you men of the Church, take me to your prison, and leave me no longer in the
hands of the English; and she gathered up her chains and prepared to move.
But alas, now came these shameful words from Cauchon - and with them a mocking laugh:
Take her to the prison whence she came!
Poor abused girl! She stood dumb, smitten, paralysed. It was pitiful to see. She had
been beguiled, lied to, betrayed; she saw it all, now.
The rumbling of a drum broke upon the stillness, and for just one moment she thought of
the glorious deliverance promised by her Voices - I read it in the rapture that lit her
face; then she saw what it was - her prison escort - and that light faded, never to revive
again. And now her head began a piteous rocking motion, swaying slowly this way and that,
as is the way when one is suffering unwordable pain, or when ones heart is broken;
then drearily she went from us, with her face in her hands, and sobbing bitterly.
Chapter 21
There is no certainty that any one in all Rouen was in the secret of the deep game
which Cauchon was playing except the Cardinal of Winchester. Then you can imagine the
astonishment and stupefaction of that vast mob gathered there, and those crowds of
churchmen assembled on the two platforms, when they saw Joan of Arc moving away, alive and
whole - slipping out of their grip at last, after all this tedious waiting, all this
tantalising expectancy.
Nobody was able to stir or speak, for a while, so paralysing was the universal
astonishment, so unbelievable the fact that the stake was actually standing there
unoccupied and its prey gone. Then suddenly everybody broke into a fury of rage;
maledictions and charges of treachery began to fly freely; yes, and even stones: a stone
came near killing the Cardinal of Winchester - it just missed his head. But the man who
threw it was not to blame, for he was excited, and a person who is excited never can throw
straight.
The tumult was very great indeed, for a while. In the midst of it a chaplain of the
Cardinal even forgot the properties so far as to opprobriously assail the august Bishop of
Beauvais himself, shaking his fist in his face and shouting:
By God, you are a traitor!
You lie! responded the Bishop.
He a traitor! Oh, far from it; he certainly was the last Frenchman that any
Briton had a right to bring that charge against.
The Earl of Warwick lost his temper, too. He was a doughty soldier, but when it came to
the intellectuals - when it came to delicate chicane, and scheming, and trickery - he
couldnt see any further through a millstone than another. So he burst out in his
frank warrior fashion, and swore that the King of England was being treacherously used,
and that Joan of Arc was going to be allowed to cheat the stake. But they whispered
comfort into his ear -
Give yourself no uneasiness, my lord; we shall soon have her again.
Perhaps the like tidings found their way all around, for good news travels fast as well
as bad. At any rate the ragings presently quieted down, and the huge concourse crumbled
apart and disappeared. And thus we reached the noon of that fearful Thursday.
We two youths were happy; happier than any words can tell - for we were not in the
secret any more than the rest. Joans life was saved. We knew that, and that was
enough. France would hear of this days infamous work - and then! Why, then her
gallant sons would flock to her standard by thousands and thousands, multitudes upon
multitudes, and their wrath would be like the wrath of the ocean when the storm-winds
sweep it; and they would hurl themselves against this doomed city and overwhelm it like
the resistless tides of that ocean, and Joan of Arc would march again! In six days - seven
days - one short week - noble France, grateful France, indignant France, would be
thundering at these gates - let us count the hours, let us count the minutes, let us count
the seconds! Oh happy day, oh day of ecstasy, how our hearts sang in our bosoms!
For we were young, then; yes, we were very young.
Do you think the exhausted prisoner was allowed to rest and sleep after she had spent
the small remnant of her strength in dragging her tired body back to the dungeon?
No; there was no rest for her, with those sleuth-hounds on her track. Cauchon and some
of his people followed her to her lair, straightway; they found her dazed and dull, her
mental and physical forces in a state of prostration. They told her she had abjured; that
she had made certain promises - among them, to resume the apparel of her sex; and if she
relapsed, the Church would cast her out for good and all. She heard the words, but they
had no meaning to her. She was like a person who has taken a narcotic and is dying for
sleep, dying for rest from nagging, dying to be let alone, and who mechanically does
everything the persecutor asks, taking but dull note of the things done, and but dully
recording them in the memory. And so Joan put on the gown which Cauchon and his people had
brought; and would come to herself by-and-by, and have at first but a dim idea as to when
and how the change had come about.
Cauchon went away happy and content. Joan had resumed womans dress without
protest; also she had been formally warned against relapsing. He had witnesses to these
facts. How could matters be better?
But suppose she should not relapse?
Why, then she must be forced to do it.
Did Cauchon chose to make their prisoners captivity crueller and bitterer than
ever, no official notice would be taken of it? Perhaps so; since the guards did begin that
policy at once, and no official notice was taken of it. Yes, from that moment
Joans life in that dungeon was made almost unendurable. Do not ask me to enlarge
upon it. I will not do it.
Chapter 22
Friday and Saturday were happy days for Noël and me. Our minds were full of our
splendid dream of France aroused - France shaking her mane - France on the march - France
at the gates - Rouen in ashes, and Joan free! Our imagination was on fire; we were
delirious with pride and joy. For we were very young, as I have said.
We knew nothing about what had been happening in the dungeon the yester-afternoon. We
supposed that as Joan had abjured and been taken back into the forgiving bosom of the
Church, she was being gently used, now, and her captivity made as pleasant and comfortable
for her as the circumstances would allow. So, in high contentment, we planned out our
share in the great rescue, and fought our part of the fight over and over again during
those two happy days - as happy days as ever I have known.
Sunday morning came. I was awake, enjoying the balmy, lazy weather, and thinking.
Thinking of the rescue - what else? I had no other thought now. I was absorbed in that,
drunk with the happiness of it.
I heard a voice shouting, far down the street, and soon it came nearer, and I caught
the words -
Joan of Arc has relapsed! The witchs time has come!
It stopped my heart, it turned my blood to ice. That was more than sixty years ago, but
that triumphant note rings as clear in my memory to day as it rang in my ear that
long-vanished summer morning. We are so strangely made; the memories that could make us
happy pass away; it is the memories that break our hearts that abide.
Soon other voices took up that cry - tens, scores, hundreds of voices; all the world
seemed filled with the brutal joy of it. And there were other clamours - the clatter of
rushing feet, merry congratulations, bursts of coarse laughter, the rolling of drums, the
boom and crash of distant bands profaning the sacred day with the music of victory and
thanksgiving.
About the middle of the afternoon came a summons for Manchon and me to go to
Joans dungeon - a summons from Cauchon. But by that time distrust had already taken
possession of the English and their soldiery again, and all Rouen was in an angry and
threatening mood. We could see plenty of evidences of this from our own windows -
fist-shaking, black looks, tumultuous tides of furious men billowing by along the street.
And we learned that up at the castle things were going very badly indeed; that there
was a great mob gathered there who considered the relapse a lie and a priestly trick, and
among them many half-drunk English soldiers. Moreover, these people had gone beyond words.
They had laid hands upon a number of churchmen who were trying to enter the castle, and it
had been difficult work to rescue them and save their lives.
And so Manchon refused to go. He said he would not go a step without a safeguard from
Warwick. So next morning Warwick sent an escort of soldiers, and then we went. Matters had
not grown peacefuller meantime, but worse. The soldiers protected us from bodily damage,
but as we passed through the great mob at the castle we were assailed with insults and
shameful epithets. I bore it well enough, though, and said to myself, with secret
satisfaction, In three or four days, my lads, you will be employing your tongues in
a different sort from this - and I shall be there to hear.
To my mind these were as good as dead men. How many of them would still be alive after
the rescue that was coming? Not more than enough to amuse the executioner a short
half-hour, certainly.
It turned out that the report was true. Joan had relapsed. She was sitting there in her
chains clothed again in her male attire.
She accused nobody. That was her way. It was not in her character to hold a servant to
account for what his master had made him do, and her mind had cleared, now, and she knew
that the advantage which had been taken of her the previous morning had its origin, not in
the subordinate, but in the master - Cauchon.
Here is what had happened. While Joan slept, in the early morning of Sunday, one of the
guards stole her female apparel and put her male attire in its place. When she woke she
asked for the other dress, but the guards refused to give it back. She protested, and said
she was forbidden to wear the male dress. But they continued to refuse. She had to have
clothing, for modestys sake; moreover, she saw that she could not save her life if
she must fight for it against treacheries like this; so she put on the forbidden garments,
knowing what the end would be. She was weary of the struggle, poor thing.
We had followed in the wake of Cauchon, the Vice-Inquisitor, and the others - six or
eight - and when I saw Joan sitting there, despondent, forlorn, and still in chains, when
I was expecting to find her situation so different, I did not know what to make of it. The
shock was very great. I had doubted the relapse, perhaps; possibly I had believed in it,
but had not realised it.
Cauchons victory was complete. He had had a harassed and irritated and disgusted
look for a long time, but that was all gone now, and contentment and serenity had taken
its place. His purple face was full of tranquil and malicious happiness. He went trailing
his robes and stood grandly in front of Joan, with his legs apart, and remained so more
than a minute, gloating over her and enjoying the sight of this poor ruined creature, who
had won so lofty a place for him in the service of the meek and merciful Jesus, Saviour of
the World, Lord of the Universe - in case England kept her promise to him, who kept no
promises himself.
Presently the judges began to question Joan. One of them, named Marguerie, who was a
man with more insight than prudence, remarked upon Joans change of clothing, and
said -
There is something suspicious about this. How could it have come about without
connivance on the part of others? Perhaps even something worse?
Thousand devils! screamed Cauchon, in a fury. Will you shut your
mouth?
Armagnac! Traitor! shouted the soldiers on guard, and made a rush for
Marguerie with their lances levelled. It was with the greatest difficulty that he was
saved from being run through the body. He made no more attempts to help the inquiry, poor
man. The other judges proceeded with the questionings.
Why have you resumed this male habit?
I did not quite catch her answer, for just then a soldiers halberd slipped from
his fingers and fell on the stone floor with a crash; but I thought I understood Joan to
say that she had resumed it of her own motion.
But you have promised and sworn that you would not go back to it.
I was full of anxiety to hear her answer to that question; and when it came it was just
what I was expecting. She said - quite quietly -
I have never intended and never understood myself to swear I would not resume
it.
There - I had been sure, all along, that she did not know what she was doing and saying
on the platform Thursday, and this answer of hers was proof that I had not been mistaken.
Then she went on to add this -
But I had a right to resume it, because the promises made to me have not been
kept - promises that I should be allowed to go to mass, and receive the communion, and
that I should be freed from the bondage of these chains - but they are still upon me, as
you see.
Nevertheless, you have abjured, and have especially promised to return no more to
the dress of a man.
Then Joan held out her fettered hands sorrowfully toward these unfeeling men and said -
I would rather die than continue so. But if they may be taken off, and I may hear
mass, and be removed to a penitential prison, and have a woman about me, I will be good,
and will do what shall seem good to you that I do.
Cauchon sniffed scoffingly at that. Honour the compact which he and his had made with
her? Fulfil its conditions? What need of that? Conditions had been a good thing to
concede, temporarily, and for advantage; but they had served their turn - let something of
a fresher sort and of more consequence be considered. The resumption of the male dress was
sufficient for all practical purposes, but perhaps Joan could be led to add something to
that fatal crime, so Cauchon asked her if her Voices had spoken to her since Thursday -
and reminded her of her abjuration.
Yes, she answered; and then it came out that the Voices had talked with her
about the abjuration - told her about it, I suppose. She guilelessly reasserted the
heavenly origin of her mission, and did it with the untroubled mien of one who was not
conscious that she had ever knowingly repudiated it. So I was convinced once more that she
had had no notion of what she was doing that Thursday morning on the platform. Finally she
said, My Voices told me I did very wrong to confess that what I had done was not
well. Then she sighed, and said with simplicity, But it was the fear of the
fire that made me do so.
That is, fear of the fire had made her sign a paper whose contents she had not
understood then, but understood now by revelation of her Voices and by testimony of her
persecutors.
She was sane now, and not exhausted; her courage had come back, and with it her inborn
loyalty to the truth. She was bravely and serenely speaking it again, knowing that it
would deliver her body up to that very fire which had such terrors for her.
That answer of hers was quite long, quite frank, wholly free from concealments or
palliations. It made me shudder; I knew she was pronouncing sentence of death upon
herself. So did poor Manchon. And he wrote in the margin abreast of it -
RESPONSION MORTIFERA.
Fatal answer. Yes, all present knew that it was indeed a fatal answer. Then
there fell a silence such as falls in a sickroom when the watchers by the dying draw a
deep breath and say softly one to another, All is over.
Here, likewise, all was over; but after some moments Cauchon, wishing to clinch this
matter and make it final, put this question -
Do you still believe that your Voices are St Marguerite and St Catherine?
Yes - and that they come from God.
Yet you denied them on the scaffold?
Then she made direct and clear affirmation that she had never had any intention to deny
them; and that if - I noted the if - if she had made some retractions and
revocations on the scaffold it was from fear of the fire, and was a violation of the
truth.
There it is again, you see. She certainly never knew what it was she had done on the
scaffold until she was told of it afterwards by these people and by her Voices.
And now she closed this most painful scene with these words; and there was a weary note
in them that was pathetic -
I would rather do my penance all at once; let me die. I cannot endure captivity
any longer.
The spirit born for sunshine and liberty so longed for release that it would take it in
any form, even that.
Several among the company of judges went from the place troubled and sorrowful, the
others in another mood. In the court of the castle we found the Earl of Warwick and fifty
English waiting, impatient for news. As soon as Cauchon saw them he shouted - laughing - think of a man destroying a friendless poor girl and then having the heart to laugh at
it:
Make yourselves comfortable - its all over with her!
Chapter 23
The young can sink into abysses of despondency, and it was so with Noël and me, now;
but the hopes of the young are quick to rise again, and it was so with ours. We called
back that vague promise of the Voices, and said the one to the other that the glorious
release was to happen at the last moment - that other time was not the
last moment, but this is; it will happen now; the King will come, La Hire will come, and
with them our veterans, and behind them all France! And so we were full of heart
again, and could already hear, in fancy, that stirring music the clash of steel and the
war-cries and the uproar of the onset, and in fancy see our prisoner free, her chains
gone, her sword in her hand.
But this dream was to pass also, and come to nothing. Late at night, when Manchon came
in, he said -
I am come from the dungeon, and I have a message for you from that poor
child.
A message to me! If he had been noticing I think he would have discovered me -
discovered that my indifference concerning the prisoner was a pretence; for I was caught
off my guard, and was so moved and so exalted to be so honoured by her that I must have
shown my feeling in my face and manner.
A message for me, you reverence?
Yes. It is something she wishes done. She said she had noticed the young man who
helps me, and that he had a good face; and did I think he would do a kindness for her? I
said I knew you would, and asked her what it was, and she said a letter - would you write
a letter to her mother? And I said you would. But I said I would do it myself, and gladly;
but she said no, that my labours were heavy, and she thought the young man would not mind
the doing of this service for one not able to do it for herself, she not knowing how to
write. Then I would have sent for you, and at that the sadness vanished out of her face.
Why, it was as if she was going to see a friend, poor friendless thing. But I was not
permitted. I did my best, but the orders remain as strict as ever, the doors are closed
against all but officials; as before, none but officials may speak to her. So I went back
and told her, and she sighed, and was sad again. Now this is what she begs you to write to
her mother. It is partly a strange message and to me means nothing, but she said her
mother would understand. You will "convey her adoring love to her family and her
village friends, and say there will be no rescue, for that this night - and it is the
third time in the twelvemonth, and is final - she has seen The Vision of the
Tree."
How strange!
Yes, it is strange, but that is what she said; and said her parents would
understand. And for a little time she was lost in dreams and thinkings, and her lips
moved, and I caught in her mutterings these lines, which she said over two or three times,
and they seemed to bring peace and contentment to her. I set them down, thinking they
might have some connection with her letter and be useful; but it was not so; they were a
mere memory, floating idly in a tired mind, and they have no meaning, at least no
relevancy.
I took the piece of paper, and found what I knew I should find:
And when in exile wandring we
Shall fainting yearn for glimpse of thee,
O rise upon our sight!
There was no hope any more. I knew it now. I knew that Joans letter was a message
to Noël and me, as well as to her family, and that its object was to banish vain hopes
from our minds and tell us from her own mouth of the blow that was going to fall upon us,
so that we, being her soldiers, would know it for a command to bear it as became us and
her, and so submit to the will of God; and like her, for she was always thinking of
others, not of herself. Yes, her heart was sore for us; she could find time to think of
us, the humblest of her servants, and try to soften our pain, lighten the burden of our
troubles - she that was drinking of the bitter waters; she that was walking in the Valley
of the Shadow of Death.
I wrote the letter. You will know what it cost me, without my telling you. I wrote it
with the same wooden stylus which had put upon parchment the first words ever dictated by
Joan of Arc - that high summons to the English to vacate France, two years past, when she
was lass of seventeen; it had now set down the last ones which she was ever to dictate.
Then I broke it. for the pen that had served Joan of Arc could not serve any that would
come after her in this earth without abasement.
The next day, May 29th, Cauchon summoned his serfs, and forty-two responded. It is
charitable to believe that the other twenty were ashamed to come. The forty-two pronounced
her a relapsed heretic, and condemned her be delivered over to the secular arm. Cauchon
thanked them. Then he sent orders that Joan be conveyed the next morning to the place
known as the Old Market; and that she be then delivered to the civil judge, and by the
civil judge to the executioner. That meant that she would be burnt.
All the afternoon and evening of Tuesday the 29th the news was flying, and the people
of the country-side flocking to Rouen to see the tragedy - all, at least, who could prove
their English sympathies and count upon admission. The press grew thicker and thicker in
the streets, the excitement grew higher and higher. And now a thing was noticeable again
which had been noticeable more than once before - that there was pity for Joan in the
hearts of many of these people. Whenever she had been in great danger it had manifested
itself, and now it was apparent again - manifest in a pathetic dumb sorrow which was
visible in many faces.
Early the next morning, Wednesday, Martin Ladvenu and another friar were sent to Joan
to prepare her for death; an Manchon and I went with them - a hard service for me. We
tramped through the dim corridors, winding this way and that, and piercing ever deeper and
deeper into that vast heart of stone, and at last we stood before Joan. But she did not
know it. She sat with her hands in her lap and her head bowed, thinking, and her face was
very sad. One might not know what she was thinking of. Of her home, and the peaceful
pastures, and the friends she was no more to see? Of her wrongs, and her forsaken estate,
and the cruelties which had been put upon her? Or was it of death - the death which she
had longed for, and which was now so close? Or was it the kind of death she must suffer? I
hoped not; for she feared only one kind, and that one had for her unspeakable terrors. I
believed she so feared that one that with her strong will she would shut the thought of it
wholly out of her mind, and hope and believe that God would take pity on her and grant her
an easier one; and so it might chance that the awful news which we were bringing might
come as a surprise to her at last.
We stood awhile, but she was still unconscious of us, still deep in her sad musings and
far away. then Martin Ladvenu said, softly -
Joan.
She looked up then, with a little start and a wan smile, and said -
Speak. Have you a message for me?
Yes, my poor child. Try to bear it. Do you think you can bear it?
Yes - very softly, and her head drooped again.
I am come to prepare you for death.
A faint shiver trembled through her wasted body. There was a pause. In the stillness we
could hear our breathings. Then she said, still in that low voice -
When will it be?
The muffled notes of a tolling bell floated to our ears out of the distance.
Now. The time is at hand.
That slight shiver passed again.
It is so soon - ah, it is so soon!
There was a long silence. The distant throbbings of the bell pulsed through it, and we
stood motionless and listening. But it was broken at last -
What death is it?
By fire!
Oh, I knew it, I knew it! She sprang wildly to her feet, and wound her
hands in her hair and began to writhe and sob, oh, so piteously, and mourn and grieve and
lament, and turn to first one and then another of us, and search our faces beseechingly,
as hoping she might find help and friendliness there, poor thing - she that had never
denied these to any creature, even her wounded enemy on the battle-field.
Oh, cruel, cruel, to treat me so! And must my body that has never been defiled,
be consumed today and turned to ashes? Ah, sooner would I that my head were cut off seven
times than suffer this woeful death. I had the promise of the Churchs prison when I
submitted, and if I had but been there, and not left here in the hands of my enemies, this
miserable fate had not befallen me. Oh, I appeal to God the Great Judge, against the
injustice which has been done me.
There was none there that could endure it. They turned away, with tears running down
their faces. In a moment I was on my knees at her feet. At once she thought only of my
danger, and bent and whispered in my ear: Up! - do not peril yourself, good heart.
There - God bless you always! and I felt the quick clasp of her hand. Mine was the
last hand she touched with hers in life. None saw it; history does not know of it or tell
of it, yet it is true, just as I have told it. The next moment she saw Cauchon coming, and
she went and stood before him and reproached him, saying -
Bishop, it is by you that I die!
He was not shamed, not touched, but said, smoothly -
Ah, be patient, Joan. You die because you have not kept your promise, but have
returned to your sins.
'Alas, she said, if you had put me in the Churchs prison, and given
me right and proper keepers, as you promised, this would not have happened. And for this I
summon you to answer before God!
Then Cauchon winced, and looked less placidly content than before, and he turned him
about and went away.
Joan stood awhile musing. She grew calmer, but occasionally she wiped her eyes, and now
and then sobs shook her body; but their violence was modifying now, and the intervals
between them were growing longer. Finally she looked up and saw Pierre Maurice, who had
come in with the Bishop, and she said to him:
Master Peter, where shall I be this night?
Have you not good hope in God?
Yes - and by His grace I shall be in Paradise.
Now Martin Ladvenu heard her in confession; then she begged for the sacrament. But how
grant the communion to one who had been publicly cut off from the Church, and was now no
more entitled to its privileges than an unbaptised pagan? The brother could not do this,
but he sent to Cauchon to inquire what he must do. All laws, human and divine, were alike
to that man - he respected none of them. He sent back orders to grant Joan whatever she
wished. Her last speech to him had reached his fears, perhaps: it could not reach his
heart, for he had none.
The Eucharist was brought now to that poor soul that had yearned for it with such
unutterable longing all these desolate months. It was a solemn moment. While we had been
in the deeps of the prison, the public courts of the castle had been filling up with
crowds of the humbler sort of men and women, who had learned what was going on in
Joans cell, and had come with softened hearts to do - they knew not what; to hear -
they knew not what. We knew nothing of this, for they were out of our view. And there were
other great crowds of the like caste gathered in masses outside the castle gates. And when
the lights and the other accompaniments of the Sacrament passed by, coming to Joan in the
prison, all those multitudes kneeled down and began to pray for her, and many wept; and
when the solemn ceremony of the communion began in Joans cell, out of the distance a
moving sound was borne moaning to our ears - it was those invisible multitudes chanting
the litany for a departing soul.
The fear of the fiery death was gone from Joan of Arc now, to come again no more,
except for one fleeting instant - then it would pass, and serenity and courage would take
its place and abide till the end.
Chapter 24
At nine oclock the Maid of Orleans, Deliverer of France, went forth in the grace
of her innocence and her youth to lay down her life for the country she loved with such
devotion, and for the King that had abandoned her. She sat in the cart that is used only
for felons. In one respect she was treated worse than a felon; for whereas she was on her
way to be sentenced by the civil arm, she already bore her judgement inscribed in advance
upon a mitre-shaped cap which she wore:
HERETIC, RELAPSED, APOSTATE, IDOLATER.
In the cart with her sat the friar Martin Ladvenu and Maître Jean Massieu. She looked
girlishly fair and sweet and saintly in her long white robe, and when a gush of sunlight
flooded her as she emerged from the gloom of the prison and was yet for a moment still
framed in the arch of the sombre gate, the massed multitudes of poor folk murmured A
vision! a vision! and sank to their knees praying, and many of the women weeping,
and the moving invocation for the dying rose again, and was taken up and borne along, a
majestic wave of sound, which accompanied the doomed, solacing and blessing her, all the
sorrowful way to the place of death. Christ, have pity! Saint Margaret, have pity!
Pray for her, all ye saints, archangels, and blessed martyrs, pray for her! Saints and
angels, intercede for her! From thy wrath, good Lord, deliver her! O Lord God, save her!
Have mercy on her, we beseech Thee, good Lord!
It is just and true, what one of the histories has said:
The poor and the helpless had nothing but their prayers to give Joan of Arc; but
these we may believe were not unavailing. There are few more pathetic events recorded in
history than this weeping, helpless, praying crowd, holding their lighted candles and
kneeling on the pavement beneath the prison walls of the old fortress.
And it was so all the way: thousands upon thousands massed upon their knees, and
stretching far down the distances, thick-sown with the faint yellow candle-flames, like a
field starred with golden flowers.
But there were some that did not kneel; these were the English soldiers. They stood
elbow to elbow, on each side of Joans road, and walled it in, all the way; and
behind these living walls knelt the multitudes.
By-and-by a frantic man in priests garb came wailing and lamenting, and tore
through the crowd and the barrier of soldiers and flung himself on his knees by
Joans cart and put up his hands in supplication, crying out -
O forgive, forgive!
It was Loyseleur!
And Joan forgave him; forgave him out of a heart that knew nothing but forgiveness,
nothing but compassion, nothing but pity for all that suffer, let their offence be what it
might. And she had no word of reproach for this poor wretch who had wrought day and night
with deceits and treacheries and hypocrisies to betray her to her death.
The soldiers would have killed him, but the Earl of Warwick saved his life. What became
of him is not known. He hid himself from the world somewhere, to endure his remorse as he
might.
In the square of the Old Market stood the two platforms and the stake that had stood
before in the churchyard of St Ouen. The platforms were occupied as before, the one by
Joan and her judges, the other by great dignitaries, the principal being Cauchon and the
English Cardinal - Winchester. The square was packed with people, the windows and roofs of
the blocks of buildings surrounding it were black with them.
When the preparations had been finished, all noise and movement gradually ceased, and a
waiting stillness followed which was solemn and impressive.
And now, by order of Cauchon, an ecclesiastic named Nicholas Midi preached a sermon,
wherein he explained that when a branch of the vine -which is the Church - becomes
diseased and corrupt, it must be cut away or it will corrupt and destroy the whole vine.
He made it appear that Joan, through her wickedness, was a menace and a peril to the
Churchs purity and holiness, and her death therefore necessary. When he was come to
the end of his discourse he turned toward her and paused a moment, then he said -
Joan, the Church can no longer protect you. Go in peace!
Joan had been placed wholly apart and conspicuous, to signify the Churchs
abandonment of her, and she sat there in her loneliness, waiting in patience and
resignation for the end. Cauchon addressed her now. He had been advised to read the form
of her abjuration to her, and had brought it with him; but he changed his mind fearing
that she would proclaim the truth - that she had never knowingly abjured - and so bring
shame upon him and eternal infamy. He contented himself with admonishing her to keep in
mind her wickednesses, and repent of them, and think of her salvation. Then he solemnly
pronounced her excommunicated and cut off from the body of the Church. With a final word
he delivered her over to the secular arm for judgement and sentence.
Joan weeping, knelt and began to pray. For whom? Herself? Oh no - for the King of
France. Her voice rose sweet and clear, and penetrated all hearts with its passionate
pathos. She never thought of his treacheries to her, she never thought of his desertion of
her, she never remembered that it was because he was an ingrate that she was here to die a
miserable death; she remembered only that he was her King; that she was his loyal and
loving subject, and that his enemies had undermined his cause with evil reports and false
charges, and he not by to defend himself. And so, in the very presence of death, she
forgot her own troubles to implore all in her hearing to be just to him; to believe that
he was good and noble and sincere, and not in any way to blame for any acts of hers,
neither advising them nor urging them, but being wholly clear and free of all
responsibility for them. Then, closing she begged in humble and touching words that all
here present would pray for her and would pardon her, both her enemies and such as might
look friendly upon her and feel pity for her in their hearts.
There was hardly one heart there that was not touched - even the English, even the
judges showed it, and there was many a lip that trembled and many an eye that was blurred
with tears; yes even the English Cardinals - that man with a political heart of
stone but a human heart of flesh.
The secular judge who should have delivered judgement and pronounced sentence was
himself so disturbed that he forgot his duty, and Joan went to her death unsentenced -
thus completing with an illegality what had begun illegally and had so continued to the
end. He only said - to the guards -
Take her; and to the executioner, Do your duty.
Joan asked for a cross. None was able to furnish one. But an English soldier broke a
stick in two and crossed the pieces and tied them together, and this cross he gave her,
moved to it by the good heart that was in him; and she kissed it and put it in her bosom.
Then Isambard de la Pierre went to the church near by and brought her a consecrated one;
and this one also she kissed, and pressed it to her bosom with rapture, and then kissed it
again and again, covering it with tears and pouring out her gratitude to God and the
saints.
And so, weeping, and with her cross to her lips, she climbed up the cruel steps to the
face of the stake, with the friar Isambard at her side. Then she was helped up to the top
of the pile of wood that was built around the lower third of the stake, and stood upon it
with her back against the stake, and the world gazing up at her breathless. The
executioner ascended to her side and wound chains about her slender body, and so fastened
her to the stake. Then he descended to finish his dreadful office; and there she remained
alone - she that had had so many friends in the days when she was free, and had been so
loved and so dear.
All these things I saw, albeit dimly and blurred with tears, but I could bear no more.
I continued in my place, but what I shall deliver to you now I got by others eyes
and others mouths. Tragic sounds there were that pierced my ears and wounded my
heart as I sat there, but it is as I tell you: the latest image recorded by my eyes in
that desolating hour was Joan of Arc with the grace of her comely youth still unmarred;
and that image, untouched by time or decay, has remained with me all my days. Now I will
go on.
If any thought that now, in that solemn hour when all transgressors repent and confess,
she would revoke her revocation and say her great deeds had been evil deeds and Satan and
his friends their source, they erred. No such thought was in her blameless mind. She was
not thinking of herself and her troubles, but of others, and of woes that might befall
them. And so, turning her grieving eyes about her, where rose the towers and spires of
that fair city, she said -
Oh Rouen, Rouen, must I die here, and must you be my tomb? Ah, Rouen, Rouen, I
have great fear that you will suffer for my death.
A whiff of smoke swept upward past her face, and for one moment terror seized her and
she cried out, Water! Give me holy water! but the next moment her fears were
gone, and they came no more to torture her.
She heard the flames crackling below her, and immediately distress for a fellow
creature who was in danger took possession of her. It was the friar Isambard. She had
given him her cross and begged him to raise it toward her face and let her eyes rest in
hope and consolation upon it till she was entered into the peace of God. She made him go
out from the danger of the fire. Then she was satisfied, and said -
Now keep it always in my sight until the end.
Not even yet could Cauchon, that man without shame, endure to let her die in peace, but
went toward her, all black with crimes and sins as he was, and cried out -
I am come, Joan, to exhort you for the last time to repent and seek the pardon of
God.
I die through you, she said, and these were the last words she spoke to any
upon earth.
Then the pitchy smoke, shot through with red flashes of flame, rolled up in a thick
volume and hid her from sight; and from the heart of this darkness her voice rose strong
and eloquent in prayer, and when by moments the wind shredded somewhat of the smoke aside,
there were veiled glimpses of an upturned face and moving lips. At last a merciful swift
tide of flame burst upward, and none saw that face any more not that form, and the voice
was still.
Yes, she was gone from us: JOAN OF ARC! What little words they are, to tell of a rich
world made empty and poor.
Conclusion
Joans brother Jacques died in Domremy during the Great Trial at Rouen. This was
according to the prophecy which Joan made that day in the pastures the time that she said
the rest of us would go to the great wars.
When her poor old father heard of the martyrdom it broke his heart and he died.
The mother was granted a pension by the City of Orleans, and upon this she lived out
her days, which were many. Twenty-four years after her illustrious childs death she
travelled all the way to Paris in winter time and was present at the opening of the
discussion in the Cathedral of Notre-Dame which was the first step in the Rehabilitation.
Paris was crowded with people, from all about France, who came to get sight of the
venerable dame, and it was a touching spectacle when she moved through these reverent
wet-eyed multitudes on her way to the grand honours awaiting her at the cathedral. With
her were Jean and Pierre, no longer the light-hearted youths who marched with us from
Vaucouleurs, but war-worn veterans with hair beginning to show frost.
After the martyrdom Noël and I went back to Domremy, but presently when the Constable
Richemont superseded La Tremouille as the Kings chief adviser, and began the
completion of Joans great work, we put on our harness and returned to the field and
fought for the King all through the wars and skirmished until France was freed of the
English. It was what Joan would have desired of us; and dead or alive, her desire was law
for us. All the survivors of the personal staff were faithful to her memory and fought for
the King to the end. Mainly we were well scattered, but when Paris fell we happened to be
together. It was a great day and a joyous; but it was a sad one at the same time, because
Joan was not there to march into the captured capital with us.
Noël and I remained always together, and I was by his side when death claimed him. It
was in the last great battle of the war. In that battle fell also Joans sturdy old
enemy, Talbot. He was eighty-five years old, and had spent his whole life in battle. A
fine old lion he was, with his flowing white mane and his tameless spirit; yes, and his
indestructible energy as well; for he fought as knightly and vigorous a fight that day as
the best man there.
La Hire survived the martyrdom thirteen years, and always fighting, of course, for that
was all he enjoyed in life. I did not see him in all that time, for we were far apart, but
one was always hearing of him.
The Bastard of Orleans and DAlençon and DAulon lived to see France free,
and to testify with Jean and Pierre dArc and Pasquerel and me at the Rehabilitation.
But they are all at rest now, these many years. I alone am left of those who fought at the
side of Joan of Arc in the great wars. She said I should live until these wars were
forgotten - a prophecy which failed. For whatsoever had touch with Joan of Arc, that thing
is immortal.
Members of Joans family married, and they have left descendants. Their
descendants are of the nobility, but their family name and blood bring them honours which
no other nobles receive or may hope for. You have seen how everybody along the way
uncovered when those children came yesterday to pay their duty to me. It was not because
they are noble, it is because they are grandchildren of the brothers of Joan of Arc.
Now as to the Rehabilitation. Joan crowned the King at Rheims. For reward he allowed
her to be hunted to her death without making one effort to save her. During the next
twenty-three years he remained indifferent to her memory; indifferent to the fact that her
good name was under a damning blot put there by the priests because of the deeds which she
had done in saving him and his sceptre; indifferent to the fact that France was ashamed,
and longed to have the Deliverers fair name restored. Indifferent all that time.
Then he suddenly changed, and was anxious to have justice for poor Joan, himself. Why? Had
he become grateful at last? Had remorse attacked his hard heart? No, he had a better
reason - a better one for his sort of man. This better reason was that, now that the
English had been finally expelled from the country, they were beginning to call attention
to the fact that this King had gotten his crown by the hands of a person proven by the
priests to have been in league with Satan and burnt for it by them as a sorceress -
therefore, of what value or authority was such a kingship as that? Of no value at all; no
nation could afford to allow such a king to remain on the throne.
It was high time to stir, now, and the King did it. That is how Charles VII came to be
smitten with anxiety to have justice done the memory of his benefactress.
He appealed to the Pope, and the Pope appointed a great commission of churchmen to
examine into the facts of Joans life and award judgement. The Commission sat at
Paris, at Domremy, at Rouen, at Orleans, and at several other places, and continued its
work during several months. It examined the records of Joans trials, it examined the
Bastard of Orleans, and the Duke dAlençon, and DAulon and Pasquerel, and
Courcelles, and Isambard de la Pierre, and Manchon, and me, and many others whose names I
have made familiar to you; also they examined more than a hundred witnesses whose names
are less familiar to you - friends of Joan in Domremy, Vaucouleurs, Orleans, and other
places, and a number of judges and other people who had assisted at the Rouen trials, the
abjuration, and the martyrdom. And out of this exhaustive examination Joans
character and history came spotless and perfect, and this verdict was placed upon record,
to remain for ever.
I was present upon most of these occasions, and saw again many faces which I have not
see for a quarter of a century; among them some well-beloved faces - those of our generals
and that of Catherine Boucher (married, alas!), and also among them certain other faces
that filled me with bitterness - those of Beaupère and Courcelles and a number of their
fellow-fiends. I saw Haumette and Little Mengette - edging along toward fifty, now, and
mothers of many children. I saw Noëls father, and the parents of the Paladin and
the Sunflower.
It was beautiful to hear the Duke dAlençon praise Joans splendid
capacities as a general, and to hear the Bastard endorse these praises with his eloquent
tongue and then go on and tell how sweet and good Joan was, and how full of pluck and fire
and impetuosity, and mischief, and mirthfulness, and tenderness, and compassion, and
everything that was pure and fine and noble and lovely. He made her live again before me,
and wrung my heart.
I have finished my story of Joan of Arc, that wonderful child, that sublime
personality, that spirit which in one regard has had no peer and will have none - this:
its purity from all alloy of self-seeking, self-interest, personal ambition. In it no
trace of these motives can be found, search as you may, and this cannot be said of any
other person whose name appears in profane history.
With Joan of Arc love of country was more than a sentiment - it was a passion. She was
the Genius of Patriotism - she was Patriotism embodied, concreted, made flesh, and
palpable to the touch and visible to the eye.
Love, Mercy, Charity, fortitude, War, Peace, Poetry, Music - these may be symbolised as
any shall prefer: by figures of either sex and of any age; but a slender girl in her first
young bloom, with the martyrs crown upon her head, and in her hand the sword that
severed her countrys bonds - shall not this, and no other stand for PATRIOTISM
through all the ages until time shall end?
THE END